CORNELL UNIVERSITY LIBRARY FROM The original of tliis bool< is in tine Cornell University Library. There are no known copyright restrictions in the United States on the use of the text. http://www.archive.org/details/cu31924013174226 ROBINSON CRUSOE CDamiiriijgc: PRINTED BV C. J. CLAY, M. -v, AT THE UNIVERSITY PRBSS. €\)t (Bloht Ciiition. ROBINSON CRUSOE - ) EDITED AFTER THE ORIGINAL EDITIONS WITH A BIOGRAPHICAL INTRODUCTION HENRY KINGSLEY AUTHOR OF CEOFFRY HAMLYN HonSon: MACMILLAN AND CO. 1868 BIOGRAPHICAL INTRODUCTION. Few persons have ever read for the first time the splen- did fiiflion which we now present to our readers, without having some slight reflefled interest about the author of it. " Who," they are apt to say, " was this most won- derful man ? In what calm, sedate, and luxurious seclu- sion did he dream out this wonderful dream, and think out these beautiful, peaceful thoughts about God's rela- tions with man, and about eternity ? What is the name, and what was the age of this wondrous young man ? for it is evidently the work of one in the full vigour and vitality of healthy youth ; it is so fresh and brisk, though at times so sad." Such are the questions which most readers ask themselves about the author of the book, as soon as the wonderful interest felt in the book itself has had time to cool. One remembers well the shock it was to one, as a boy unable to understand his offence, when one learned that John Bunyan had been in prison, I remember also a similar shock on hearing that this present book — the book which by its fresh vitality has sent generation after generation of boys to sea for the last 147 years — the book which one's great grandfather was reading at school, while his father was clanking about in command at Min- vi PREFACE. den — that this imperishable book was written by a poor bankrupt and nearly broken-hearted old hosier ; a man who had almost like Mad Tom been whipped from tything to tything, who had spent his life fighting, who had been three times in Newgate, three times in the pillory, and twice bankrupt ; I remember even now how it jarred on one to learn that. That his misfortunes were his highest honour, I was unable, like most boys, to understand. I propose to give a slight, a very slight sketch of the book and its author, so as to enable at least the younger readers of the book to gratify in some measure the curi- osity which I hope they will feel to poor Defoe, when they have read it. - To those who wish to know more, I would recommend the life by George Chalmers, of Morayshire, F.R.S., ,F.S.A. ; to those who wish to know more still, to the Memoirs of Mr Walter Wilson, a splendid piece of standard biography. I have followed Mr Chalmers principally as being more handy and terse, but have thankfully accepted any further information from Mr Wilson, Mr Chadwick, and many other sources. Of original information, I frankly confess, that I have none ; I doubt if any one could glean after Wilson : and this is the place to say, that if any of the readers of this preface care for a really good book, they will find few better than Walter Wilson's Life of Defoe. One is ashamed to write after him. A chronologically tabulated list of Defoe's works by Mr Chalmers, gives as No. \,An Essay on Progress, 1697 ; and as No. 140, " The life and strange surprising Adven- tures of Robinson Crusoe, of York, mariner ; who lived Eight-and-twenty years all alone in an uninhabited Island on the Coast of America, near the mouth of the PREFACE. vii great River Oroonoque, having been cast on shore by shipwreck, wherein all the men perished but himself. With an Account how he was at last strangely delivered by Pirates. Written by Himself. London : printed for W. Taylor, at the Ship, in Paternoster-row. 17 19. 8vo. pp. 364." This is obviously incorreifl on the face of it as to date. The Compiler has put in the dates of his editions, instead of the dates in his author's life. Defoe, born in 1 661, wrote (at the age of twenty-one) a satire on the clergy called Speculum Crape gownorum, and in the following year a pamphlet against the policy of allowing the Turks to ruin the house of Austria : preferring even that the papist emperor of Austria should oppress his, Defoe's, beloved protestants in Hungary ; than that the barbarism of the Ottoman should be admitted further west into Europe. It was not until 1719, when he was fifty-eight, that he wrott Robinson Crusoe, his i6t th work. Let us see slightly who and what this man was, and what passed in his life, between the time when the young hosier's apprentice wrote his clever protest against the threatened " Crimean War" of those days, and the time when the battered, disappointed, vilified, nay, pilloried old man of 58 withdrew for a time from the bitter strife, and going into another world, in which the fierce noises of ordinary life were dimly heard, wrote nearly the freshest and pleasantest fiftion in our language. One of Defoe's biographers, Mr Chadwick, is strongly inclined to believe that the butcher's son, and . farmer's grandson, was one of the Vaux, Faux, or even Deve- reuxs, of Northamptonshire. I must confess my belief that Chalmers and Mr Wilson are right, and that Daniel Defoe was the grandson of old Daniel Foe of Elton in viii PREFACE. Huntingdonshire, in spite of their both making the sHght topographical error of putting Elton in Northamp- tonshire. I only mention this excusable little mistake (for what Englishman could mark out from memory the patches of the county of Cromarty in Scotland?) • on sentimental grounds. Daniel Defoe was fellow-countryman of Oliver Cromwell. It is rather provoking that John Bunyan should have been born a few miles off in the next county : still those curious in such things may console themselves by considering that the localities of the three great dissenters'; Elton, Elstow or Bedford, and Huntingdon ; of Defoe, Bunyan and Cromwell, are almost in sight of one another. The three places lie in an isosceles tri- angle, with Huntingdon for the apex, and Elton and Bedford, distant twenty-seven- miles from one another, at the other two angles. Huntingdon on the apex of the triangle is equidistant eighteen miles from Bedford, and from Elton. Elton lies five miles N.E. from Oundle, where the river Nene, flowing past Peterborough to the Wash, has nearly done his windings, and is preparing to enter the straight artificial cut which carries him to the sea. The site of Fotheringay castle, so effeftually de- stroyed by James in revenge for the execution of his mother, is but two miles' distance : generally a highly interesting neighbourhood between the deep woodlands of Northamptonshire and the fen. Such was the cradle of the Defoe family. Daniel Foe the elder must have been a yeoman of some substance, for he kept a pack of hounds, naming them politically, "Roundhead, Cavalier, Goring, Waller." This fadl would seem to shew that Daniel Defoe's father, James, was the first dissenter of the family. PREFACE. ix James Foe, the son of the first Daniel, came to seek his fortune in London, and having served his time with one John Levit, became citizen and butcher in Cripple- gate. Here his son Daniel was born in 1661, as is sup- posed, though being born of dissenting parents, his name does not appear in the register. At the age of fourteen he was sent to school with the Rev. Charles Morton, of Newington Green, who seems to have been a man of great piety and learning, as well as an eminent in- struflor ; having educated not only Defoe, but the father of John Wesley, and many others of distinftion, including one who concerns us more nearly than any, Timothy Cruso. Defoe gives this school and its master the highest charadler : there is no doubt that he himself got a firstrate education there or elsewhere. He challenges his enemy Tutchin, to translate against him in Latin, French, or Italian, for £,10 a volume. He himself distinfbly asserts that he was out with Monmouth. " No man in this country ever had a more rivetted aversion to the pretender, and to all the family he pretended to come of, than I : a man -who had been in arms under the Duke of Monmouth." There is no doubt at all about this language, yet one cannot help sharing Mr Chadwick's wonder that the author of such a very prononcee work as the Speculun^ should have escaped ; while the Mr Tutchin of Lymington before mentioned had passed on him a sentence, so inconceiv- ably worse than death, that he sends a humble petition "that his Majesty will be mercifully pleased to have him hanged, along with such of his fellow-prisoners as are condemned to die.'' He now wrote a book earnestly warning his fellow- dissenters from accepting the insidious toleration of the X PREFACE. papist James towards them, and shewed them that tole- ration for them meant likewise toleration for the dan- gerous and detestable papacy. Defoe was but a poor hater, being a gentle-hearted though extremely pugna- cious man ; three things he did hate however with all the bitterness which was in his mild nature — the Pope, the Devil, and the Pretender : en passant, his History of the Devil is a book which I can take up anywhere, and am loth to lay down again'. He became liveryman of London by birth in 1687-8, and the arrival of King William in the same year was a glorious day for him. We find him a young man of twenty-eight, gorgeously attired, on horseback, assisting with a regiment of volunteers to escort his beloved prince to the Mansion-house banquet in Odlober, 1689. His devotion and gratitude to this prince is very pleasing. Singularly enough he seems to have almost originated the words of a very famous toast. The expression, " glorious and immortal memory," occurs more than once. On one occasion in the Reviews he says, "his ' He was a desperately hard and open hitter. It is impos- sible to resist laughing at the extreme precision of some of his titles. Tliere is no doubt about the contents of this one for instance. The title-page itself must have been enough to exas- perate Sacheverell to madness, one would think. " Instrudlions from Rome in favour of the Pretender. Inscribed to the most elevated Don Sacheverellio, and his brother Don Higginisco ; and which all Perkinites, Nonjurors, Highflyers, Popish desirers, Wooden Shoe admirers, and absolute non-resistance drivers, are obliged to pursue and maintain, under pain of his Unholinesses Damnation, in order to carry on their intended Subversion of a Government fixed upon Revolution principles." There is no mistake about the meaning of this. PREFACE. xi name is a word of congratulation : the immortal memory of King William will be a health as long as the drinking of healths is suffered in this part of the world." This is a singular, prophecy. The popery, whiggery, brass money and wooden shoes, part of the great toast, has been added since, I suppose in Ulster. It was not, however, until the year 1701 that he made the friendship of the man whom he loves to call his dearly beloved prince and master, " whose memory I never patiently heard abused, and who had he lived would never have suffered me to be treated as I have been in this world." {Appeal to Honour and yustice, ed. 1841, p. 7.) This mournful and pitiable appeal to the memory of his master seems to me the saddest passage in that very sad piece of writing. At that time Tutchin of Lymington, whom we noticed just now as praying for death, and who, though on the same side, was always irritating and insulting Defoe, wrote "a vile, abhorred pamphlet, in very ill verse," faUing personally upon the king himself, and upon the Dutch nation, calling them "foreigners;" which they could hardly deny. This roused Defoe's anger, and he wrote The True-born Englishman; in which he ridi- cules the pretences which the Englishmen of that day put up to being a purely bred nation, and compares them most unfavourably with the honest and valiant Dutch. "These are the heroes which despise the Dutch And rail at new come foreigners so much, Forgetting that themselves are all derived From the most scoundrel race that ever lived: A horrid crowd of rambling thieves and drones Who ransacked kingdoms and depeopled towns." xii PREFACE. "Pidls," Britons, Scots, Danes, each with an oppro- brious adjeflive, are next enumerated : ' ' Who joined with Norman-French compound the hreed From which your true-bom EngUshmen proceed: Dutch, Walloons, Flemings, Irishmen and Scots, Vaudois and VahoHns and Huguenots." This is a fair specimen of his versification. It may be ignoble, but it generally scans, and, what is more, never misses its point. Certainly not in such lines as " An EngKshman will fairly drink as much As will maintain two families of Dutch." Such is the poetry of the author of Robinson Crusoe and The Plague. This brought him to the notice of the king; and he now entered on the brightest days of his life, though they were extremely short, for he began to negledl his business for political writing. With regard to his business it will surely be safe to take his own word about it, and allow that he was at one time a hose-fafbor or hosier. In one of his disputes with Tutchin he distinftly speaks of Tutchin, the gentleman, and Defoe, the hosier. At another time, in another dis- pute with the same man, he denies that he ever was a hosier, or even an apprentice. Whatever his exaft trade was, whether wholesale or retail, one thing is certain, that about the year 1692 he was forced to keep out of the way of his creditors, owing at that time ^17,000. His larger creditors, however, refused to allow him to be made bankrupt, but had such confidence in his integrity, that they allowed him to trade on the simple security of his own bond. He continued to carry on the pantile works at Tilbury until the year 1703, when he was PREFACE. xiii totally ruined, with a loss of ^3,000, by a Government prosecution for libel. In 1694 merchants with whom he had been connefled offered him a lucrative agency at Cadiz, but he wisely, or unwisely, stayed at home, and employed himself at political economy and at political writings. In 1695 he was, without solicitation, made accountant to the Commissioners of Glass Duty; which office he held until the suppression of the duty by Parliament, Aug. 1699. It seems almost likely that he started his pantile works near Tilbury with the savings from this office. He had a small property of his own, probably some remains of the Elton property, but when he inhe- rited it I cannot read. With regard to his travels there is but little information, either as to time or direflion. They could not have been extensive, for his time is pretty well accounted for by his writings. He makes one dis- tinft allusion to a residence in Spain, but it must have been a very short one. To give a mere list of his political writings at this time would take up more space than could be possibly spared in a mere preface to his greatest work ; to give the very shortest account of the political schemes in which he was engaged would fill a volume nearly as large as this, and would require a very praftised hand merely to epitomize. From an elegy on Dr Annesley (the Nonconformist clergyman of St Giles', Cripplegate, at whose feet he had sat as a boy) to a pamphlet to prove that a standing army, existing with the consent of ParUament, contained no danger to public liberty; nothing was too hot or too heavy for him. Finance, charity (his deaf and dumb asylum, for instance), rehgion, foreign politics, reform (Freeholder^ Plea against Stockjobbing EleStions of Par- xiv PREFACE. liament Men, where, en passant, he mentions that £\ i,ooo was spent on the seat of Winchelsea) — nothing came amiss to this amazing author of Robinson Crusoe. He covered all the ground lately occupied by Mr Cobden, Mr Bright, Lord Shaftesbury, and our different foreign ministers. Had he lived in this age of shorthand writing he would simply have made speeches and have had them reported. As it was, he had to write all that was in him down, and have it printed. It is, therefore, no wonder that he is, with the exception, I believe, of Sir Walter Scott, the most voluminous British author we have. The mere list of his works is confusing and appalling. And a:t the end of his career, when he had once been struck with apoplexy, and had said that he had nearly come to an end of a long day's work, he amused himself by turn- ing out to be the rival of Cervantes in fiftion. To com- pare Robinson Crusoe with Le Sage's Gil Bias would be to insult Defoe. The good King William died, in a somewhat untimely manner, at Kensington, in 1702, through the stupidity of the stupidest of known animals, a horse ; before Defoe, with his reckless, headlong. Radical plain-speaking, had succeeded in alienating from him his best friend and kind- est protedlor. In his intense love for " moderation," as he calls it, while receiving the favour and protedlion of William, he wrote his Reasons against a War with France, which must have given the deepest offence even to the large-minded William. The gist of the piece is, that it is no casus belli for the French king to acknow- ledge the Prince of Wales as King of England : this is headlong Radicalism with a vengeance. Defoe, before this unhappy accident, had been almost a courtier. The queen (whose death he mourned in com- PREFACE. XV pany with his master) had once shewn him her flower- garden, and William had been his kind and true friend ; but the kind Mary was dead, and the kind William had followed, and was lying stark at Kensington, with the lock of his beloved Mary's hair upon his left arm, while creatures calling themselves men, aye, and gentlemen, were drinking the health of the horse which had killed him, and of the mole, "the little gentleman in black velvet," which threw up the mound on which the horse stumbled. A dark night of misery and disgrace, such as none of us could bear now and live, was coming on rapidly. To us, in these days, such a phase in our lives would be unbearable : the author of Moll Flanders, tougher in mental fibre than we are, the author of Robinson Crusoe, tenderer in mental fibre than we are, lived through it, and wrote Robinson Crusoe, almost the tenderest, gentlest, purest book in the language afterwards. It may be supposed that he was not long before he got into trouble with the High Church party, who came into power on the accession of Anne. It could hardly '' be otherwise. In William's reign dissenters could hold positions of public trust by " occasional conformity," that is to say, by receiving, at certain times, the Sacrament of the Lord's Supper at church, and by being allowed to attend their conventicles at other times. The inexorable Defoe, as a dissenter, had attacked even this compro- mise, in his Address on Occasional Conformity, first published in 1697. In 1701 the then Lord Mayor, a dissenter, had complied with this rule, and Defoe had" attacked the dissenting Lord Mayor's spiritual direflor, the Rev. Mr How, a man of his, Defoe's, own party, in very severe terms. It was hardly likely that such a very xvi PREFACE. uncompromising man should long keep out of trouble with the "Highflying" party, full of long-suppressed confidence and boldness by the accession of another Stuart, Anne ; whose absolute tendencies were only kept within even moderate bounds by the Lutheran Prince- Consort. But the " Highflyers " were determined to take even this stumblingblock out of the way of the conscientious Defoe. On Nov. 4th Mr Annesley and Mr Bromley, with Mr St John, afterwards Bohngbroke, brought in a bill for preventing the occasional conformity of dissenters : and so utterly excluding them from office. The bill was lost in the Lords, through, says one biographer, the good sense of the Bishops appointed by William. With this, here, I have little to do : I only wish to call your atten- tion to the state of temper in which Defoe must have found himself at this fearful onslaught on his beloved "religious liberty." I merely go into these details, be- cause I remember well the jar it was to me, when I first learnt that my beloved author of Robinson Crusoe had been set in the pillory. One's feelings for respeftabi- lity are so strong. I never read the book with the same pleasure again until I had learnt why Defoe was' set in the pillory, and that it was more an honour to him than a disgrace. As I said before, it was the same kind of check which one felt when one was told that Bunyan wrote another very dear book in Bedford jaiL Mr George Chalmers sums up his previous offences against the party which ruined Anne, far better than I can do. I shall take the liberty to quote him. " During the previous twenty years of his life, De Foe had busied himself unconsciously in charging a mine. PREFACE. xvii which now blew himself and his family into air. He had fought for Monmouth ; he had opposed king James ; he had vindicated the Revolution ; he had panegyrised king William ; he had defended the rights of the coUeflive body of the people ; he had displeased the treasurer and the general, by objefling to the Flanders war ; he had bantered Sir Edward Seymour and Sir Christopher Mus- grave, the tory leaders of the commons ; he had just ridiculed all the high-fliers in the kingdom; and he was at length obliged to seek for shelter from the in- dignation of persons and parties, thus overpowering and resistless." He now wrote this lamentable Shortest way with the Dissenters. Loosely speaking, his argument is this : These dissenters have no business on this earth ; destroy them " the shortest way " at once, and without any more to do, by fire and faggot, and have done with them. In one place he goes as far as to say, that although numerous, they are not so numerous as were the Protestants, yet the French king effe^ually cleared the nation of them at once. It was written in ridicule of the language which was habitually used from the pulpits of the more advanced of the high party. Sacheverell had more than once used language against the dissenters nearly as violent ; and Defoe's was but very little overdrawn. The irony was so fine as to be imperceptible to the coarser spirits, and some of them adlually hailed it as a "piece" on their own side, and praised it in their pulpits ; others, however, saw how very damaging it was, and discovered the author : the storm whirled about his ears so sharply that he had recourse to flight. He soon, however, in generosity to his printers, gave himself up, and published his Explanation; which explanation, seeing that he only explained that his objefl, b xviii PREFA CE. was to make fools of the dominant party, scarcely did him any good. The hue and cry after him is curious : " St James's Jan. loth, 1702-3. " Whereas, Daniel de Foe, alias De Fooe, is charged with writing a scandalous and seditious pamphlet, enti- tuled The Shortest Way with the Dissenters : he is a mid- dle-sized spare man, about forty years old, of a brown complexion, and dark brown coloured hair, but wears a wig, a hooked nose, a sharp chin, grey eyes, and a large mole near his mouth ; was born in London, and for many years was a hose-fadlor in Freeman's yard, in Cornhill, and now is owner of the brick and pantile works near Tilbury-fort in Essex : &c. &c." I fear that the above is the only pifture I can give my reader of the acflual appearance of the man himself. There was no portrait of him at South Kensington, but I have at present before me three carefully engraved portraits of him. I have got, in addition to my own, the opinion of a tolerably good Art critic, and our judgments, given perfeftly independently, are similar. These three por- traits are scarcely of the same person. Faces may alter very much with age, but the crux of historical portraits is the nose ; in these three portraits the nose is different, though they all give the mole. The portrait prefixed to the edition of The History of the Union, of 1786, edited by George Chalmers, is very like that of his first master, the Duke of Monmouth. The one which I conceive to be nearest the reality, is the one prefixed to Wilson's life. It is a very mournful and worn, but tender face, of great length, with a very large mouth, and a very broad though short lower jaw; a face very refined and very pleasing. PREFACE. xix He was put on trial, and he pleaded guilty under promise of pardon from Lord Nottingham. He was, however, sentenced to stand in the pillory three times, to pay a fine of 200 marks, to be imprisoned during her majesty's pleasure, and to find sureties for seven years. The book was also burnt by the common hang- man. "On the 29th instant, Daniel Foe, alias De Foe, stood in the pillory before the Royal Exchange in Cornhill, as he did yesterday near the Conduit in Cheapside, and this day in Temple Bar ; in pursuance of his sentence given against him at the last sessions at the Old Bailey, for writing and publishing a seditious libel, entitled The Shortest Way with the Dissenters. By which sentence he is also fined 200 marks, to find sureties for his good behaviour for seven years ; and to remain in prison till all be performed." Once again at the age of forty-two he was utte>}y ruined, having lost £3500. In the pillory the mob treated him kindly and well, which was fortunate for him, as it was not very uncommon, even in this century, for people to be killed in the pillory, if the mob was violently against them. He was now left to consider himself in Newgate, but still the busy ceaseless pen went on : besides more than one piece which he wrote there, he projecfted one of his most important undertakings, the Review of the affairs of France. It is difficult to be got now. It began Feb. 10, 1704, as a weekly publication of half a sheet ; it was aftervv^irds published twice a week, and contained a whole sheet. It contained news, foreign and domestic, and politics, the state of trade, and The Scandal Club, in which every kind of subjefl was discussed. The first .volume was published in February, 1705, 102 numbers. b^ XX PREFACE. It was the Saturday Review on a small scale, of the day, and it was all written by Defoe himself. Under other titles, Review of the State of the English Nation (1706), Of the British Nation (1708) (1710), it ran on until May, 1713, when it ended with its ninth volume. Yet his pen was busy enough at other things. While this "was coming out, and he still in Newgate, herding with Moll Flanders, Bob Singleton, and Mother Mid- night, he published a piece which is doubtless familiar to many of our readers. The Storm, being an account of the tempest which swept over London in November 1703. He lay in Newgate until August 1704, thirteen months. The story of his release is often told. Both space, and the epigrammatic nature of the story, force us to tell it shortly, but it is a very pretty one. Harley wrote to him and asked him what he could do for him ; he answered, " Lord that I may receive my sight." The queen was kind to him after this, and he' acknowledged her kindness afterwards. My main objeft has only been to point out the ex- traordinary versatility of Defoe's pen before he wrote the book which will live for ever. The life of Defoe until 1713 is the history of British politics. It would be to- tally impossible to go. into the subjefl here. Wilson and Chalmers have done so far more ably than I possibly could ; it would be mere weariness for me to epitomise them for the reader, and Walter Wilson's book is far too charming for a clumsy epitome. Defoe, however, was in Newgate once more in 171 3 for his History of Trade. In 171 5 he published his Appeal to Honour and fustice, which I have had to quote two or three times before, as being the most authentic account of himself which we PREFACE. xxi have. He now began to weary of the fight, which for him had lasted forty years, during which time he had been twice certainly in Newgate, and three times in the pillory. From 171 5 to 1719 his most noticeable work was the Family Instruiior. In the year 17 19, he for the first time (unless we accept The Storm as fiflion) wrote what is now called a "Novel." It is about this story I have to speak, from such lights as we have got above or elsewhere ft am most reluctantly obliged to confess that I have come into the belief that this wondrous romance of Robin- son Crusoe is no romance at all, but a merely allegorical account of Defoe's own life for twenty-eight yearsJ That this allegory will fit everywhere I do not assert. Qrusoe's island in the Caribbean Sea does not entirely suit Eng- land, for England was not in a state of primitive solitude when Defoe arrived in it. The parrot who awoke him (in the night of Newgate) is scarcely the Earl of Oxford. That his captivity among the Moors was his first bank- ruptcy, and that the kind-hearted Moor whom he threw overboard was Tutchin, is again scarcely credible, any more than that the shipwreck meant the revolution of 1688, and that William the Third was his umbrella. But that by Crusoe he meant himself, that by the cannibal Caribbees he meant the Tories, and that the name of the first savage he killed with his gun was called Sacheverell, there is no doubt at all. He half confesses to it himself, in his preface to the Serious Confessions, giving, of course, no names, and at the same time allows that the book, taken as a whole, is an allegory of his life. His fine imagination ran away with him, and the allegory, as far as we know of his Hfe, does not exadlly correspond to it ; for who was man Friday in the flesh ? xxii PREFACE. Did Defoe ever make a personal friend, and if so what was his name ? I have said before that I thought Defoe was a bad hater ; that he was genial and affeflionate at heart, Robinson Crusoe alone would testify; but his almost fierce attack on How, a man who in the main was with him, and who should have been his friend, shews that his tertlper was too inexorable, even to keep friends, leaving alone the making of them. ■So he was a man who lived alone. No one could come up to the standard of his absolute precision, and so he lived alone in the world of England as Crusoe did among the beasts and birds of the West 'India island. That, I take it, is the history of this most wonderful book, written at the close of a stormy, restless life, after the author had said nearly everything, and suffered nearly everything. "I am sick of time, And I desire my rest." The worn-out, sensitive nature of the man threw itself into his Protestant Utopia, where everything was perfeflly ordered, and where there was peace, alone, with God. Crusoe is merely an ideal Protestant monk, a man who has got himself out of the turmoils of the world, with regulated order all around him, and his God face to face with him, — the Bible, in this case, standing for the priest. Eight years afterwards Defoe wrote his plan for a " Pro- testant monastery." Crusoe's life is, I think, Defoe's life, as he would have had it at nearly sixty years of age. For a man like Defoe, who had done and suffered so much for the cause of freedom and religion, to ask for religious peace is reasonable and tolerable. For boys and girls, who have done nothing whatever, to do so, is, on the other hand, quite another matter. PREFACE. xxiii His overwrought mind rested itself on this book. There were lands far away from this weary England — with its eternal worry, and, moreover, its pillory — where a man could face God by himself. He conceived such a land, and wrote Robinson Crusoe. I think that that is the history of the book: I can conceive no other. So far, I believe that the book is part of the man ; as to details of allegory, I utterly give them up. Probably but few people were ever possessed of a larger amount of general knowledge than Defoe, yet, looking at the list of his works, we should hardly think that he was well read in travels and geography. Such, however, was undoubtedly the case. Speaking of his works before Crusoe one would say that voyages, adven- tures, and geography, were of the few things to which he was indifferent. Looking at the wonderful tide of ro- mances which followed it so quickly, one would say that voyages and travels had been eagerly studied by him throughout his life. There is scarcely one of them which does not contain some voyage ; even Moll Flanders must be transported to Virginia. Defoe must have read travels largely ; Hackluyt, Purchas, and probably Ramusio', must have been familiar to him ; but in addition to this he must have had some special knowledge of geography, gained from some very singular source, very probably from talking to the Portuguese merchants and sailors. For instance, he had, I think, read of Robert Everard's adventures in Madagascar, for it seems to me that they ' The second part of Robinson Crusoe shews that he had read Marco Polo. Whether in Ramusio, or in the spurious re-translation which gave rise to the literary squabble between Hackluyt and Purchas, I am not able to deteift. xxiv PREFACE. gave the hint for the first part of Bob Singleton. I am not aware that they were pubhshed before Churchill pub- lished them in 1726. Again, this pleasant rogue, Bob Singleton, had a knowledge of the interior of Africa, which was very much in advance of the age. Defoe makes him cross Africa from Zanzibar to the mouth of the Congo, and describes the route. He is hazy about Lake Tanganyika, though not many degrees wrong ; but remark- ably accurate about both Speke's lake and Baker's lake, passing between the two, and distinflly saying that the second one carried him north across the Line before he could round the end of it. He also recognizes the great Nile coming out of these two lakes, and sees it flowing north. This information must have been given to Defoe by some Portuguese merchant or captain, who must have got it from the Arab slave-dealers. Defoe got but the barest hint oi Robinson Crusoe from Alexander Selkirk ; indeed Selkirk himself had a prede- cessor in Juan Fernandez, for Ringrose mentions that a buccaneer vessel was cast away here, and only one man escaped, who lived here for five years alone ; and, again, a Mosquito Indian was accidentally left there' by Captain Watling in i68r, with only a gun, knife, and a little powder and shot, who was fetched off by Captain Dam- pier himself three years afterwards, who gives an account of it. This Indian used his knife to saw up his gun- barrel, and by that means made harpoons, living thus on goats and fish. It is most likely that Defoe knew of these two other adventurers as well as he did of Alexander Selkirk. It is this confusion between Robinson Crusoe and Alexander Selkirk, combined with abbreviated editions of Defoe's Romance, which inake a very great majority of PREFACE. XXV people think that Robinson Crusoe's island is identical with Juan Fernandez. It has nothing on earth in com- mon with it, except that there are caves in it, and goats. Juan Fernandez is a large island in the South Pacific, off the Chilian coast, the nearest island, that of Massafuera, being ninety miles off, — it is a larger island, and has one peak of 3,000 feet high ; it is as well-known now to the Californian ships as Madeira is to the Australian. The imaginary Robinson Crusoe island is an utterly different one in the Atlantic, 10 deg. north of the line, close off the coast of Venezuela, in the very estuary, if estuary it may be called, of the Orinoco. The mainland which Robin- son Crusoe sees, from which the Caribs or cannibals come, is our own island of Trinidad. The currents be- side his island are the flux and reflux of the tide into the mouths of the Orinoco, which I should say, did I not know the extreme carefulness of Defoe, were purely imaginary, as the main mouth of the Orinoco is at least 100 miles S.E., and the mouths opposite Crusoe's island are a mere series of swampy bifurcations. Mark his wonderful accuracy in making Robinson Crusoe fall sick of the Demerara ague. It is almost impossible to catch Defoe in a blunder; he was master of the only true way of escaping all blunders — if he was not sure of a thing he did not write it down. The beloved friend of our boyhood, Friday, was a Carib: for Trinidad is the most southerly and the largest, (with the exception of Porto Rico the most northerly,) of the Caribbee islands. For the history of these peopile you must go to Spencer and others. His straight hair, his handsome body, everything about him shews that Defoe was as careful in writing ficflion as he was in writing politics. The more you examine xxvi PREFACE. Robinson Crusoe, by such lights as we have now, the more probable does it appear : you get, if you will give up the Selkirk-Juan Fernandez theory, almost to believe in it. Why has this story of the man Friday, written by a battered old man of fifty-nine, who had spent his life in fierce political objurgation — why has this story lived in every mouth and in every heart until now ? And why will it live for ever among the speakers of the English language, soon to become the most numerous speakers of any language on the face of the earth ? After reading it once again I have little hesitation in saying why. The story lives, and will live, because it is one of the most beautiful stories ever told. Mark Crusoe, bringing well-ordered decorous pro- testantism out of the disorder of nature, until he has got himself into a (may I say it) somewhat self-righteous, nay, even priggish state of mind. Mark how the whole of his religious castle tumbles into the dust at the first sight of the footprint on the sand. Pass through his phases of blind fury and anger, and once more of his doglike cowardice, when he at one time determines to murder these cannibals like dogs ; and again goes about with God in his solitude, as to whether or no he would not be a murderer for killing any of them, seeing that their sin was gregarious and national, not individual. Pass on until the time when the footprint in the sand, with what came after, brought on him a dull terror of the solitude he had endured so long, and / a terrible Storm indeed, and now I began to see Terror and Amazement in the Faces even of the Seamen themselves. The Master tho' vigilant to the Business of preserving the Ship, yet as he went in and out of his Cabbin by me, 1 could hear him softly to himself say' several times, Lord be merciful to us, we shall be all lost, we shall be all undone; and the like. During these first Hurries, I was stupid, lying still in my Cabbin, which was in the Steerage, and cannot describe my Temper; I could ill re-assume the first Penitence, which I had so apparently trampled upon, and harden'd my self against : I thought the Bitterness of Death had been past, and that this would be nothing too like the first. But when the Master himself came by me, as I said just now, and said we should be all lost, I was dread- fully frighted : I got up out of my Cabbin, and look'd out ; but such a dismal Sight I nevei- saw: The Sea went Mountains high, and broke upon us every three or four Minutes : When I could look about, I could see nothing but Distress round us: Two Ships that rid near us we found had cut their Masts by the Board, being deeply loaden; and our Men cry'd out, that a Ship which rid about a Mile a-Head of us was foundered. Two more Ships being driven from their Anchors, were run out of the Roads to Sea at all Adventures, and that with not a Mast standing. The light Ships fared the best, as not so 10 ADVENTURES OF much labouring in the Sea ; but two or three of them drove, and came close by us, running away with only their Sprit-sail out before the Wind. Towards Evening the Mate and Boat-Swain begg'd the Master of our Ship to let them ,cut away the Foremast, which he was very unwilling to : But the Boat-Swain pro- testing to him, that if he did not, the Ship would founder, he consented ; and when they had cut away the Foremast, the Main Mast stood so loose, and shook the Ship so much, they were obliged to cut her away also, and make a clear Deck. Any one may judge what a Condition I must be in at all this, who was but a young Sailor, and who had been in such a Fright before at but a little. But if I can express at this Distance the Thoughts I had about me at that time, I was in tenfold more Horror of Mind upon Account of my former Conviflions, and the having re- turned from them to the Resolutions I had wickedly taken at first, than I was at Death it self; and these added to the Terror of the Storm, put me into such a Condition, that I can by no Words describe it. But the worst was not come yet, the Storm continued with such Fury, that the Seamen themselves acknowledged they had never known a worse. We had a good Ship, but she was deep loaden, and wallowed in the Sea, that the Seamen every now and then cried out, she would founder. It was my Advantage in one respecfl, that I did not know what they meant by Founder, till I enquir'd. -However, the Storm was so violent, that I saw what is not often seen, the Master, the Boat-Swain, and some others more sensible than the rest, at their Prayers, and expefling every Moment when the Ship would go to the Bottom. In the Middle of the Night, and under all the rest of our Distresses, one of the Men that had been down on Purpose to see, cried out we had sprung a Leak; another said there was four Foot Water in the Hold. Then all Hands were called to the Pump. At that very Word my Heart, as I thought, died within me, and I fell ROBINSON CRUSOE. u backwards upon the Side of my Bed where I sat, into the Cabbin. However, the Men roused me, and told me, that I that was able to do nothing before, was as well able to pump as another ; at which I stirr'd up and went to the Pump and work'd very heartily. While this was doing, the Master seeing some light Colliers, who not able to ride out the Storm, were oblig'd to slip and run away to Sea, and would come near us, ordered to fire a Gun as a Signal of Distress. I who knew nothing what that meant, was so surprised, that I thought the Ship had broke, or some dreadful thing had happen'd. In a word, 1 was so surprised, that I fell down in a Swoon. As this was a time when every Body had his own Life to think of, no Body minded me, or what was become of me; but another Man stept up to the Pump, and thrusting me aside with his Foot, let me lye, thinking I had been dead ; and it was a great while before I came to my self. We work'd on, but the Water increasing in the Hold, it was apparent that the Ship would founder, and tho' the Storm began to abate a little, yet as it was not possible she could swim till we might run into a Port, so the Mas- ter continued firing Guns for Help ; and a light Ship, who had rid it out just a Head of us ventured a Boat out to help us. It was with the utmost Hazard the Boat came near us, but it was impossible for us to get on Board, or for the Boat to lie near the Ship Side, till at last the Men rowing very heartily, and venturing their Lives to save ours, our Men cast them a Rope over the Stern with a Buoy to it, and then vered it out a great Length, which they after great Labour and Hazard took hold of, and we hal'd them close under our Stern, and got all into their Boat. It was to no Purpose for them or us after we were in the Boat, to think of reaching to their own Ship, so all agreed to let her drive," and only to pull her in towards Shore as much as we could, and our Master promised them. That if the Boat was stav'd upon Shore he would make it good to their Master, so partly rowing and partly driving, our Boat went away to the Norward 12 ADVENTURES OF sloaping towards the Shore almost as far as Winterton Ness. We were not much more than a quarter of an Hour out of our Ship but we saw her sink, and then I under- stood for the first time what was meant by a Ship found- ering in the Sea ; I must acknowledge I had hardly Eyes to look up when the Seamen told me she was sink- ing ; for from that Moment they rather put me into the Boat than that I might be said to go in, my Heart was as it were dead within me, partly with Fright, partly with Horror of Mind and the Thoughts of what was yet before me. While we were in this Condition, the Men yet labour- ing at the Oar to bring the Boat near the Shore, we could see, when our Boat mounting the Waves, we were able to see the Shore, a great many People running along the Shore to assist us when we should come near, but we made but slow -way towards the Shore, nor were we able to reach the Shore, till being past the Light-House at Winterton, the Shore falls off to the Westward towards Cromer, and so the Land broke off a little the Violence of the Wind: Here we got in, and tho' not without much Difficulty got all safe on Shore and walk'd afterwards on Foot to Yarmouth, where, as unfortunate Men, we were used with great Humanity as well by the Magistrates of the Town, who assign'd us good Quarters, as by parti- cular Merchants and Owners of Ships, and had Money given us sufficient to carry us either to London or back to Hull, as we thought fiit. Had I now had the Sense to have gone back to Hull, and have gone home, I had been happy, and my Father, an Emblem of our Blessed Saviour's Parable, had even kill'd the fatted Calf for me; for hearing the Ship I went away in was cast away in Yarmouth Road, it was a great while before he had any Assurance that I was not drown'd. But my ill Fate push'd me on now with an Obstinacy that nothing could resist; and tho' I had several times ROBINSON CRUSOE. 13 loud Calls from my Reason and my more composed Judg- ment to go home, yet I had no Power to do it. I know not what to call this, nor will I urge, that it is a secret over- ruling Decree that hurries us on to be the Instruments of our own Destrudlion, even tho' it be before us, and that we rush upon it with our Eyes open. Certainly nothing but some such decreed unavoidable Misery at- tending, and which it was impossible for me to escape, could have push'd me forward against the calm Reason- ings and Perswasions of my most retired Thoughts, and against two such visible Instrudlions as I had met with in my first Attempt. My Comrade, who had help'd to harden me before, and who was the Master's Son, was now less forward than I ; the first time he spoke to me after we were at Yarmouth, which was not till two or three Days, for we were separated in the Town to several Quarters ; I say, the first time he saw me, it appear'd his Tone was alter'd, and looking very melancholy and shaking his Head, ask'd me how I did, and telling his Father who I was, and how I had come this Voyage only for a Trial in order to go farther abroad ; his Father turning to me with a very grave and concern'd tone, Young Man, says he, you ought never to go to Sea any more, you ought to take this for a plain and visible Token, that you are not to be a Seafaring Man. Why, Sir, said I, will you go to Sea no more? That is another Case, said he; it is my Calling, and therefore my Dutyj but as you made this Voyage for a Trial, you see what a Taste Heaven has given you , of what you are to expe£l if you persist; perhaps this is all befallen us on your Account, like Jonah in the ship of Tarshish. Pray, continues he, what are you? and on •what Account did you go to Sea? Upon that I told him some of my Story ; at the End of which he burst out with a strange kind of Passion, What had I done, says he, that such an unhappy Wretch should come into my Ship? I would not set my Foot in the same Ship with thee again for a Thousand Pounds. This indeed was, as I said, an 14 .ADVENTURES OF Excursion of his Spirits which were yet agitated by the Sense of his Loss, and was farther than he could have Authority to go. However he afterwards talk'd very gravely to me, exhorted me to go back to my Father, and not tempt Providence to my Ruine ; told me I might see a visible Hand of Heaven against me. And young Man, said he, depend upon it, if you do not go back, ivhere- ever you go, you will meet with nothing but Disasters and Disappointments, till your Father's Words are ful- filled upon you. We parted soon after ; for I made him little Answer, and I saw him no more ; which way he went, I know not. As- for me, having some Money in my Pocket, I travelled to London by Land ; and there, as well as on the Road, had many Struggles with my self, what Course of I^ifer' I should take, and whether I should go Home, or go to Sea. \ As to going Home, Shame opposed the best Motions that offered to my Thoughts ; and it immediately occurr'd to me how I should be laugh'd at among the Neighbours, and should be asham'd to see, not my Father and Mother only, but even every Body else ; from whence I have sing£„ often observed, how incongruous and irrational- the-cgm- mon Temper of Mankind is, especially of Youth, to that Reason which ought to guide them in such Cases, viz. That they are not asham'd to sin, and yet are asham'd to repent ; not asham'd of the Adlion for which they ought justly to be esteemed Fools, but are asham'd of the returning, which only can make them be esteem'd wise Men. In this State of Life however I remained somgjime, uncertain what Measures to take, and what Course^oT Life to lead. An irresistible Reludlance continu'd to going Home ; and as I stay'd a while, the Remembrance of the Distress I had been in wore off; and as that abated, the little Motion I had in my Desires to a Return wore off with it, till at last I quite lay'd aside the Thoughts of it, and lookt out for a Voyage. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 15 That evil Influence which carryed me first away from my Father's House, that hurried me into the wild and indigested Notion of raising my Fortune; and that im- prest those Conceits so forcibly upon me, as to make me deaf to all good Advice, and to the Entreaties and even Command of my Father: I say the same Influence, what- ever it was, presented the most unfortunate of all En- terprises to my View; and I went on board a Vessel bound to the Coast of Africaj or, as our Sailors vulgarly call it, a Voyage to Guinea. It was my great Misfortune, that in all these Adven- tures I did not ship my self as a Sailor ; whereby, tho' I might indeed have workt a little harder than ordinary, yet at the same time I had learn'd the Duty and Office of a Fore-Mast Man ; and in time might have qualifled my self for a Mate or Lieutenant, if not for a Master: But as it was always my Fate to choose for the worse, so I did here ; for having Money in my Pocket, and good Cloaths upon my Back, I would always go on board in the Habit of a Gentleman ; and so I neither had any Business in the Ship, or learn'd to do any. It was my Lot first of all to fall into pretty good Com- pany in London, which does not always happen to such loose and misguided young Fellows as I then was ; the Devil generally not omitting to lay some Snare for them very early: But it was not so with me, I first fell ac- quainted with the Master of a Ship who had been on the Coast of Guinea; and who having had very good Success there, was resolved to go again ; and who taking a Fancy to my Conversation, which was not at all dis- agreeable at that time, hearing me say I had a mind to see the World, told me if I wou'd go the Voyage with him I should be at no Expence; I should be his Mess- mate and his Companion, and if I could carry any thing with me, I should have all the Advantage of it that the Trade would admit ; and perhaps I might meet with some Encouragement. I embrac'd the Offer, and, entring into a stridl Friend- I6 ADVENTURES OF ship with this Captain, who was an honest and plain- dealing Man, I went the Voyage with him, and carried a small Adventure with me, which by the disinterested Honesty of my Ji'riend the Captain, I encreased very con- siderably; for I carried about 40/. in such Toys and Trifles as the Captain diredled me to buy. This 40/. I had mustered together by the Assistance of some of my Relations whom I corresponded with, and who, I believe, got my Father, or at least my Mother, to contribute so much as that to my first Adventure. This was the only Voyage which I may say was suc- cessful in all my Adventures, and which I owe to the Integrity and Honesty of my Friend the Captain, under whom also I got a competent Knowledgeisf the Mathe- maticks and the Rules of Navigation, learn^rtt6wto~6eep an Account of the Ship's Course, take an Observation; and in short, to understand some things that were need- ful to be understood by a Sailor : For, as he totJirSelight to introduce me, I took Delight to learn ; andy-iiK3- word, this Voyage made me both a Sailor and a Mer- chant: for I brought home L. 5. 9 Ounces of Gold Dust for my Adventure, which yielded me in- London at my Return, almost 300/. and this fill'd me with those aspiring Thoughts which have since so compleated my Riiin. " Yet even in this Voyage I had my Misfortunes too ; particularly, that I was continually sick, being-thrown^ into a violent Calenture by the excessive Heat_of the Climate ; our principal Trading being upon the Coastj^ from the Latitude of 15 Degrees North even to the Line it self I was now set up for a Guiney Trader ; and my Friend, to my great Misfortune, dying soon after his Arriv^ I resolved to go the same Voyage again, and I embark'd in the same Vessel with one who was his Mate in the former Voyage, and had now got the Command of the Ship. This was the unhappiest Voyage that ever Man made; for tho' I did not carry quite 100/. of my new gain'd Wealth, so that I had 200 left, and which I lodg'd vith ROBINSON CRUSOE. 17 my Friend's Widow, who was very just to me, yet I fell into terrible Misfortunes in this Voyage; and the first was this, Tjiz. Our Ship making her Course towards the Canary Islands, or rather between those islands and the African Shore, was surprised in the Gfeyof the Morning, by a Turkish Rover of Sallee^vfba_^2^e. Chase to us with all the Sail she could makeT^We^owded also as much Canvass as our Yards_weuli_spread, or our Masts cai-ry, to have got clear; but finding the^Pirate gain'd upon us, and would certainly come up with us in a few Hours, we prepar'd to fight; our Ship having 12 Guns, and the Rogue 18. About three in the Afternoon he came up witli us, and bringing to by Mistake, just athwart our Quarter, instead of athwart our Stern, as he intended, we brought 8 of our Guns to bear on that Side, and pour'd in a Broadside upon him, which made him sheer off again, after returning our Fire, and pouring in also his small Shot from near 200 Men which he had on Board. However, we had not a Man touch'd, all our Men keep- ing close. _ He prepar'd to attack us again, and we to defend our selves ; but laying us on Board the next time upon our other Quarter, he enter'd 60 Men upon our Decks, who immediately fell to cutting and hacking the Decks and Rigging. We ply'd them with Small-shot, Half- Pikes, Powder-Chests, and such like, and clear'd our Deck of them twice. However, to cut short this melan- choly Part of our Story, our Ship being disabled, and three of our Men kill'd, and eight wounded, we were obliged to yield, and were carry'd all Prisoners into Sallee, a Port belonging to the Moors. The Usage I had there was not so dreadful as at first I apprehended, i^or was I carried up the Country to the Emperor's Court, as the rest of our Men were, but was kept by the Captain of the Rover, as his proper Prize, and made his Slave, being young and nimble, and fit for his Business. At this surprising Change' of my Circum- stances from a Merchant to a miserable Slave, I was per- fe<5lly overwhelmed; and now I look'd back upon my R. c. 2 i8 ADVENTURES OF Father's prophetick Discourse to me, that I should be miserable, and have none to relieve me, which I thought was now so efifeftually brought to pass, that it could not be worse ; that now the Hand of Heaven had overtaken me, and I was undone without Redemption. But alas ! this was but a Taste of the Misery I was to go t^ro',3s will appear in the Sequel of this Story. '^ As my new Patron or Master had taken me Hwneto his House, so I was in hopes that he would take mewltii him when he went to Sea again, beheving that it would some time or other be his Fate to be taken by a Spanish or Portugal Man of War ; and that then I should be set at Liberty. But this Hope of mine was soon taken away ; for when he went to Sea, he left me on Shore to look after his little Garden, and do the common Drudgery of Slaves about his House ; and when he came home again from his Cruise, he order'd me to lye in the Cabbin to look after the Ship. Here I meditated nothing but my Escape ; and what Method I might take to effeft it, but found no Way that had the least Probability in it: Nothing presented to make the Supposition of it rationalj for I had no Body to communicate it to, that would embark with me ; no Zel- low-Slave, no Englishman, Irishman, or Scotsman there but my self; so that for two Years, tho' I oftenj)leased; my self with the Imagination, yet I never Tiad the least encouraging Prospefl of putting it in Pradlice. After about two Years an odd Circumstance presented it self, which put the old Thought of making some At- tempt for my Liberty, again in my Head : My Patron lying at Home longer than usual, without fitting out his Ship, which, as I heard, was for want of Money ; he used^ constantly, once or twice a Week, sometimes oftner, if the Weather was fair, to take the Ship's Pinnace, and go out into the Road a-fishing ; and as he always took me and a young Maresco with hipi to row the Boat,^ we made- him very merry, and I prov'd very dexterous in catching^ Fish ; insomuch that sometimes he would send me with - a.^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. 19 Moor, one of his Kinsmen, and the Youth the MdrescOf as they call'd him, to catch a Dish of Fish for him. It happen'd one time, that going a fishing in a stark calm Morning, a Fog rose so thick, that tho' we were not half a League from the Shore we lost Sight of it; and rowing we knew not wh ither or which way, we labour'd all Day and all the next-Night, and when the Morning came we found we had ..puH^d off to Sea instead of pull- ing in for the Shore ; and that we were at least two Leagues from the Shore : . However we got well in again, tho' with a great deal of Labour, and some Danger ; for the Wind began to blow pretty fresh in the Morning; but particularly we were all very hungry. But our Patron warn'd by this Disaster, resolved to take more Care of himself for the future ; and having lying by him the Longboat of our English Ship which he had taken, he resolved he would not go a fishing any more without a Compass and some Provision ; so he ordered the Carpenter of his Ship, who also was an English Slave, to build a little State-room or Cabin in the middle of the Longboat, like that of a Barge, with a Place to stand behind it to steer and hale home the Main-sheet; and Room before for a hand or two to stand and work the Sails ; she sail'd with what we call a Shoulder of Mutton Sail; and the Boom gib'd over the Top of the Cabbin, which lay very snug and low, and had in it Room for him to lye, with a Slave or two, and a Table to eat on, with some small Lockers to put in some Bottles of such Liquor as he thought fit to drink; particularly his Bread, Rice and Coffee. We went frequently out with this Boat a fishing, and as I was most dextrous to catch fish for him, he never went without me : It happen'd that he had appointed to go out in this Boat, either for Pleasure or for Fish, with two or three Moors of some Distinftion in that Place, and for whom he had provided extraordinarily; and had therefore sent on board the Boat over Night, a larger Store of Provisions than ordinary; and had order'd me 2 — 2 20 ADVENTURES OF to get ready three Fuzees with Powder and Shot, which were on board his Ship; for that they design'd some Sport of Fowling as well as Fishing. I got all things ready as he had direfted, and waited the next Morning with the Boat, washed clean, her Antient and Pendants out, and every thing to accomo- date his Guests; when by and by my Patron came on board alone, and told me his Guests had put off going, upon some Business jhaLiell_ out, and order'd me with the Man and Boy, as usual, to gS'Tsut with the Boat and catch them some Fish, for that his friends were to sup at his House; and commanded that as soon as I had got some Fish I should bring it home to his House; all which I prepar'd to do. This Moment my former Notions of Deliverance dart- ed into my Thoughts, for now I found I was like to have a little Ship at my Command; and my Master being gone, I prepar'd to furnish my self, not for a fishing Busi- ness, but for a Voyage ; tho' I knew not, neither did I so much as consider whither I should steer ; for any where to get out of that Place was my Way. My first Contrivance was to make a Pretence to speak to this Moor, to get something for our Subsistence on board ; for I told him we must not presume to eat of our Patron's Bread ; he said, that was true ; so he brought a large Basket of Rusk or Bisket of their kind, and three Jarrs with fresh Water into the Boat ; I knew where my Patron's Case of Bottles stood, which it was evident by the make were taken out of some English Prize ; aii3" I conveyd them into the Boat while the Moor was on Shore, as if they had been there before, for our Master: I convey'd also a great Lump of Bees- Wax into the Boat, which weighed above half a Hundred Weight, with a Parcel of Twine or Thread, a Hatchet, a Saw, and a Hammer, all which were of great Use to us afterwards ; especially the Wax to make CandleSj_^Another Trick I try'd upon him, which he innocently came into also ; his Name was Istnael, who they call Muly, or Moefy, so I ROBINSON CRUSOE. 21 call'd' to him, Moely said I, our Patron's Guns are on board the Boat, can you not get a httle Powder and Shot, it may be. we may kill some Alcamies (a Fowl like our Curlieus) for our selves, for I know he keeps the Gunner's Stores in the Ship? Yes, says he, I'll bring some, and accordingly he brought a great Leather Pouch which held about a Pound and half of Powder, or rather more ; and another with Shot, that had five or six Pound, with some Buflets; and put all intoihe Boat: At the same time I had found some Powder of my Master's in the Great Cabbin, with which I fill'd one of the large Bottles in the Case, which was almost empty; pouring what was in it into another: and thus furnished with every thing need- ful, we sail'd out of the Port to fish : The Castle which is at the Entrance of the Port knew who we were, and took no Notice of us ; and we were not above a Mile out of the Port before we hal'd in our Sail, and set us down to fish: The Wind blew from the N.NE. which was con- trary to my Desire; for had it blown southerly I had been sure to have made the Coast of Spain, and at least reacht to the Bay of Cadiz j but my Resolutions were, blow which way it would, I would be gone from' the hor- rid Place where I was, and leave the rest to Fate. After we had fisht some time and catcht nothing, for when I had Fish on my Hook, I would not pull them up, that he might not see them ; I said to the Moor, this will not do, our Master will not be thus serv'd, we must stand farther off: He thinking no harm agreed, and being in the head of the Boat set the Sails ; and as I had the Helm I run the Boat out near a League farther, and then brought her too as if I would fish ; when giving the Boy the Helm, I stept forward to where the Moor was, and making as if I stoopt for something behind him, I took him by Surprize with my Arm under his Twist, and tost him clear over board into the Sea ; he rise immediately, for he swam like a Cork, and call'd to me, begg'd to be taken in, told me he would go all the World over with me ; he swam so strong after the Boat . that he would 22 ADVENTURES OF have reacht me very quickly, there being but little Wind{ upon which I stept into the Cabbin, and fetching one of the Fowling-pieces, I presented it at him, and told him, I had done him no hurt, and if he would be quiet, I would do him none ; but said I, you swim well enough to reach to the Shore, and the Sea is calm, make the best of your Way to Shore and I will do you no harm, but if you come near the Boat I'll shoot you thro' the Head; for I am resolved to have my Liberty; so he turn'd himself about and swam for the Shore, and I make no doubt but he reacht it with Ease, for he was an excellent-Swimmer. I could ha' been content to ha' taken 'this^^^g^^ith me, and ha' drowned the Boy, but there was no venturtng to trust him: When he was gone I turn'd to the Boy, who they call'd Xury, and said to him, Xury, if you will be faithful to me I'll make you a great Man, but if you will not stroak your Face to be true to me, that is, swear by Mahomet and his Father's Beard, I must throw you into the Sea too ; the Boy smil'd in my Face and spoke so innocently that I could not mistrust him ; and swore to be faithful to me, and go all over the World with me. While I was in View of the Moor that was swimming, I stood out diredlly to sea with the Boat, rather stretching to Windward, that they might think me gone towards the Straits-rtion^ (as indeed any one that had been in their Wits must ha' been supposed to do) for who would ha suppos'd we were saild on to the Southward to the truly Barbarian Coast, ^here whole Nations of Negroes were sure to surround us with their Canoes, and destroy us ; where we could ne'er once go on Shore but we should be devour'd by savage Beasts, or more merciless Savages of humane kind. But as soon as it grew dusk in the Evening, I chang'd my Course, and steer'd direflly South and by East, bend- ing my Course a little toward the East, that I might keep in with the Shore; and having a fair fresh Gale of Wind, and a smooth quiet Sea, I made such Sail that I believe by the next Day at Three a Clock in the Afternoon, when ROBINSON CRUSOE. 23 I first rtiade the Land, I could not be less than 150 Miles South of Salleej quite beyond the Emperor of Morocco's Dominions, or indeed of any other King thereabouts, for we saw no People. Yet such was the Fright I had taken at the Moors, and the dreadful Apprehensions I had of falling into their Hands, that I would not stop, or go on Shore, or come to an Anchor ; the Wind continuing fair, 'till I had sail'd in that manner five Days : And then the Wind shifting to the Southward, I concluded . also that if any of our Vessels were in Chase of me, they also would now give over ; so I ventur'd to make to the Coast, and came to an Anchor jn the Mouth of a little River, I knew not what, or where ; neither what Latitude, what Country, what Nation, or what River : I neither saw, or desir'd to see any People, the principal thing' I wanted was fresh Water : We came into this Creek in the Evening, ..resolving to swim on •Shore as soon as it was dark, arid discover the Country ; but as soon as it was quite dark, we heard such dreadful Noises of the Barking, Roaring, and Howling of Wild Creatures, of we knew not what Kinds, that the poor Boy was ready to die with Fear, and begg'd of me not to go on Shore till day ; well Xury, said I, then I wo'nt, but it may be we may see Men, by Day, who will be as bad to us as those Lyons ; then we give them the shoot Gun, says Xury, laughing. Make them run weyj such English Xury spoke by conversing among us Slaves, however I was glad to see the Boy so cheerful, and I gave him a Dram (out of our Patron's Case of Bottles) to chear hini up : After all, Xury's Advice was good, and I took it, we dropt our little Anchor and lay still all Night; I say still, for we slept none ! for in two or three Hours we saw vast great Creatures (we knew not what to call them), of many sorts, come down to the Sea-shore and run into the Water, wallowing and washing themselves for the Pleasure of cooling themselves; and they made such hideous Rowl- ings and Yellings, that I never indeed heard the like. XurywsLS dreadfully frighted, and indeed so was I too; 24 ADVENTURES OF but we were both more frighted when we heard one of these mighty Creatures come swimming towards our Boat, we could not see him, but we might hear him by his blowing to be a monstrous, huge and furious Beast ; Xury said it was a Lyon, and it. might be so for ought I know ; but poor Xury cryed to me to weigh the Anchor and row away ; no, says I, Xury, we can slip our Cable with the Buoy to it and go off to Sea, they cannot follow us far; I had no sooner said so, but I perceiv'd the Crea- ture (whatever it was) within two Oars Length, which something surprized me ; however I immediately stept to the Cabbin-door, and taking up my Gun fir'd at him, upon which he immediately tum'd about and swam towards the Shore again, t But it is impossible to describe the horrible Noises, and hideous Cryes and Howlings, that were raised as well upon, the Edge of thfi- Shore as higher within the Country ; upon the Noise or Report of the Gun, a ThijjgLJiave some Reason to believe those Creatures had never heMtl before: This convinc'd me that there, was no goiiig on Shore for us in the Night upon that Coast ; and how to venture on Shore in the Day was another Question too ; for to have fallen into the Hands of any of the Savages, had been as bad as t o have fallen into the Hands of Lyons and Tyggfs7 at least we were equally apprehensive of the Danger of it. Be that as it would, we were oblig'd to go on Shore somewhere or other for Water, for we had not a Pint left in the Boat ; when or where to get to it was the Point : Xury said, if I would let him go on Shore with one of the Jarrs, he would find if there was any Water and bring some to me. I ask'd him why he would go? Why I should not go and he stay in the Boat? The Boy aiiswer'd with so much Affeflion that made me love him ever after. Says he. If wild Mans come, they eat me, you go wey. Well, Xury, said I, we will both go, and if the wild Mans come, we will kill them, they shall eat neither of us ; so I gave Xury a piece of Rusk-bread to eat, and a Dram out of our ROBINSON CRUSOE. 25 Patron's Case of Bottles which I mentioned before ; and we hal'd in the Boat as near the Shore as we thought was proper, and so waded on Shore, carrying nothing but our Arms and two Jarrs for Water. I did not care to go out of Sight of the Boat, fearing the coming of Canoes with Savages down the River ; but the Boy seeing a low Place about a Mile up the Country rambled to it ; and by and by I saw him come running towards me, I thought he was pursued by some Savage, or frighted with some wild Beast, and I run forward to- wards him to help him, but when I came nearer to him, I saw something hanging over his Shoulders which was a Creature that he had shot, like a Hare but different in Colour, and longer Legs, however we were very glad of it, and it was very good Meat ; but the great Joy that poor Xury came with, was to tell me he had found good Water and seen no wild Mans. But we found afterwards that we need not take such Pains for Water, for a little higher up the Creek where we were, we found the Water fresh when the Tide was out, which flowed but a little way up ; so we filled our Jarrs and feasted on the Hare we had killed, and prepared to go on our Way, having seen no Foot-steps of any humane Creature in that part of the Country. As I had been one voyage to this Coast before, I knew very well that the Islands of the Canaries, and the Cape de Verd Islands also, lay not far off from the coast. But as I had no Instruments to take an Observation to know what Latitude we were in, and did not exadlly know, or at least remember what Latitude they were in ; I knew not where to look for them, or when to stand off to Sea to- wards them; otherwise I might now easily have found some of these Islands. But my hope was, that if I stood along this Coast till I came to that part where the English traded, I should find some of their Vessels upon their usual Design of Trade, that would relieve and take us in. By the best of my Calculation, that Place where I now was, must be that Country, which lying between the 26 ADVENTURES OF Emperor of Morocco's Dominions and the Negroes, lies wast and uninhabited, except by wild Beasts ; the Negroes having abandon'd it and gone farther South for fear of the Moors; and the Moors not thinking it worth inhabiting, by reason of its Barrenness ; and indeed both forsaking it because of the prodigious Numbers of Tygers, Lyons, Leopards and other furious Creatures which harbour there ; so that the Moors use it for their Hunting only, where they go like an Army, two or three thousand Men at a time ; and indeed for near an hundred Miles together upon this Coast, we saw nothing but a wast uninhabited Coun- try, by Day ; and heard nothing but Howlings and Roar- ing of wild Beasts, by Night. Once or twice in the Day time, I thought I saw the Pico of Teneriffe, being the high top of the Mountain Teneriffe in \i\B. Canaries; and had a great mind to venture out in hopes of reaching thither; but having tried twice I was forced in again by contrary Winds, the sea also going too high for my little Vessel, so I resolved to pursue my first Design and keep along the Shore. Several times I was obliged to land for fresh Water, after we had left this Place ; and once in particular, being early in the Morning, we came to an Anchor under a little Point of Land which was pretty high, and the Tide begin- lling to flow, we lay still to go farther in ; Xury, whose Eyes were more about him than it seems mine were, calls ' softly to me, and tells me that we had best go farther off the Shore ; for, says he, look yonder lies a dreadful Mon- ster on the side of that Hillock fast asleep : I look'd where he pointed, and saw a dreadful Monster indeed, for it was a terrible great Lyon that lay on the Side of the Shore, under the Shade of a Piece of the Hill that hung as it were a little over him. Xury, says I, you shall go on Shore and kill him ; Xury look'd frighted, and said. Me kill! he eat me at one Mouth; one Mouthful he meant ; however, I said no more to the Boy, but bad him lye still, and I took our biggest Gun, which was almost Musquet- bore, and loaded it with a good Charge of Powder, and ROBINSON CRUSOE. 27 with two Slugs, and laid it down ; then I loaded another Gun with two Bullets, and the third, for we had three Pieces, I loaded with five smaller Bullets. I took the best aim I could with the first Piece to have shot him into the Head, but he lay so with his Leg rais'd a Httle above his Nose, that the Slugs hit his Leg about the Knee, and broke the Bone. He started up growling at first, but finding his Leg broke fell down again, and then got up upon three Legs and gave the most hideous Roar that ever I heard; I was a little surpriz'd that I had not hit him on the Head ; however I took up the second Piece immediately, and tho' he began to move off fir'd again, and shot him into the Head, and had the Pleasure to see him drop, and make but little Noise, but lay struggling for Life. Then Xury took Heart, and would have me let him go on Shore : Well, go said I, so the Boy jump'd into the Water, and taking a little Gun in one Hand, swam to Shore with the other Hand, and coming close to the Creature, put the Muzzle of the Piece to his Ear, and shot him into the Head again, which despatch'd him quite. This was Game indeed to us, but this was no Food, and I was very sorry to lose three Charges of Powder and Shot upon a Creature that was good for nothing to us. However Xury said he would have some of him ; so he comes on board, and ask'd me to give him the Hatchet; for what, Xury, said I? Me cut off his Head, said he. However Xury could not cut off his Head, but he cut off a Foot and brought it with him, and it was a monstrous great one. I bethought my self however, that perhaps the Skin of him might one way or other be of some Value to us ; and I resolved to take off his Skin if I could. So Xury and I went to work with him, but Xury was much the better Workman at it, for I knew very ill how to do it. Indeed, it took us up both the whole Day, but at last we got off the Hide of him, and spreading it on the top of our Cabbin, the Sun effedlually dried it in two Days time, and it afterwards serv'd me to lye upon. 28. , ADVENTURES OF After this Stop we made on to the Southward con- tinually for ten or twelve Days, living very sparing on our Provisions, which began to abate very much, and going no oftner into the Shore than we were obhged to for fresh Water; my Design in this was to make the river Gambia or Senegall, that is to say, any where about the Cape de Verd, where I was in hopes to meet with some European Ship, and if I did not, I knew not what Course I had to take, but to seek out for the Islands, or perish there among the Negroes. I knew that all the Ships from Europe, which sail'd either to the coast of Guyiey, or to Brasil, or to the East-Indies, made this-Capej^pr those Islands; and in a word, I put the whokTofiriy Fortune upon this single Point, either~tlratrIiJnust^^t with some Ship, or must perish, ^ajt^ f When I had pursued this Resomtion about ten Days longer, as I have said, I began to see that the Land was inhabited, and in two or three Places, as we sailed by, we saw People stand upon the Shore to look at us, wecould also perceive they were quite Black and Stark-naked. I was once inclin'd to ha' gone on Shore to them; but Xury was my better Councellor, and said to me, no go, no go; however, I hal'd in nearer the Shore, that I might talk to them, and I found they ran along the Shore by me a good way ; I observ'd they had no Weapons in their Hands, except one who had a long slender Stick, which Xury said was a Lance, and that they would throw them a great way with good Aim ; so I kept at a distance, but talk'd with them by Signs as well as I could ; and parti- cularly made Signs for some thing to Eat; they beckoned to me to stop my Boat, and that they would fetch me some Meat ; upon this I lower'd the top of my Sail, and lay by, and two of them run up into the Country, and in less than half an Hour came back and brought with them two Pieces of dry Flesh and some Corn, such as is the Produce pf their Country, but we neither knew what the one or the other was ; however, we were willing to accept it, but how to come at it was our next Dispute, for I was ROBINSON CRUSOE. 29 not for venturing on Shore to them, and they were as much affraid of us ; but they took a safe way for us all, for they brought it to the Shore and laid it down, and went and stood a great way off till we fetch'd it on Board, and then came close to us again. We made Signs of Thanks tO' them, for we had nothing to make them amends ; but an Opportunity offer'd that very Instant to oblige them wonderfully, for while we were lying by the Shore, came two mighty Creatures, one pur- suing the other, (as we took it) with great Fury, from the Mountains towards the Sea; whether it was the Male pursuing the Female, or whether they were in Sport or in Rage, we could not tell, any more than we could tell whe- ther it was usual or strange, but I believe it was the latter; because in the first Place, those ravenous Crea- tures seldom appear but in the Night ; and, in the second Place we found the People terribly frighted, especially the Women. The Man that had the Lance or Dart, did not fly from them, but the rest did ; however as the two Crea- tures ran direftly into the Water, they did not seem to offer to fall upon any of the Negroes, but plung'd them- selves into the Sea and swam about as if they had come for their Diversion ; at last one of them began to come nearer our Boat than at first I expedled, but I lay ready •for him, for I had loaded my Gun with all possible Expe- dition, and bad Xury load both the other ; as soon as he came fairly within my reach, I fir'd, and shot him diredlly into the Head, immediately he sunk down into the Water, but rose instantly and plung'd up and down as if he was struggling for Life ; and so indeed he was, he immediately made to the Shore ; but between the Wound which was his mortal Hurt, and the stranghhg of the Water, he dyed jiist before he reach'd the Shore. It is impossible to express the Astonishment of these poor Creatures at the Noise and the Fire of my Gun ; some of them were even ready to dye for Fear, and fell down as Dead with the very Terror. But when they saw the Creature dead and sunk in the Water, and that I 30 ADVENTURES OF made Signs to them to come to the Shore; they took Heart and came to the Shore and began to search for the Creature, I found him by his Blood staining the Water, and by the help of a Rope which I slung round him and gave the Negroes to hawl, they drag'd him on Shore, and found that it was a most curious Leopard, spotted and fine to an admirable Degree, and the Negroes held up their Hands with Admiration to think what it was I had kill'd him with. The other Creature frighted with the flash of Fire and the Noise of the Gun swam on Shore, and ran up diredtly to the Mountains from whence they came, nor could I at that Distance know what it was. I found quickly the Negroes were for eating the flesh of this Creature, so I was willing to have them take it as a Favour from me, which when I made Signs to them that they might take him, they were very thankful for, immediately they fell to work with him, and tho' they had no Knife, yet with a sharpen'd Piece of Wood they took off his Skin as readily, and much more readily than we cou'd have done with a Knife ; they offer'd me some of the Flesh, which I de- clined, making as if I would give it them, but made Signs for the Skin, which they gave me very freely, and brought me a great deal more of their Provision, which tho' I did not understand, yet I accepted; then I made Signs to them for some Water, and held out one of my Jarrs to them, turning it bottom upward, to shew that it was empty, and that I wanted to have it filled. They call'd immediately to some of their Friends, and there came two Women, and brought a great Vessel made of Earth, and burnt as I suppose in the Sun ; this they set down for me, as before, and I sent Xury on Shore with my Jarrs, and filled them all three. The Women were as stark naked as the Men. I was now furnished with Roots and Corn, such as it was, and Water, and leaving my friendly Negroes, I made forward for about eleven Days more without offering to go near the Shore, till I saw the Land run out a great ROBINSON CRUSOE. 31 Length into the Sea, at about the Distance of four or five Leagues before me, and the Sea being very calm I kept a large offing to make this Point ; at length, doubUng the Point at about tyro Leagues from the Land, I saw plainly Land on the other Side to Seaward ; then I concluded, as it was most certain indeed, that this was the Cape de Verd, and those the Islands, call'd from thence Cape de Verd Islands, However they were at a great Distance, and I could not well tell what I had best to do, for if I should be taken with a Fresh of Wind I might neither reach one nor the other. In this Dilemma, as I was very pensive, I stept into the Cabbin and sat me down, Xury having the Helm, when on a suddain, the Boy cry'd out, Master, Master, a Ship -with a Sail, and the foolish Boy was frighted out of his Wits, thinking it must needs be some of his Mas- ter's Ships sent to pursue us, when I knew we were gotten far enough out of their reach. I jump'd out of the Cabbin, and immediately saw not only the Ship, but what she was, i^iz) that it was a Portuguese Ship, and as I thought was bound to the Coast of Guinea for Negroes. But when \ observ'd the Course she steer'd, I was soon convinc'd they were bound some other way, and did not design to come any nearer to the Shore ; upon which I stretch'd out to Sea as much as I could, resolving to speak with them if possible. With all the Sail I could make, I found I "should not be able to come in their Way, but that they would be gone by, before I could m^ke any Signal to them; but after I had crowded t6 the utmost, and began to despair, they it seems saw me by the help of their Perspective- Glasses, and that it was some European Boat, which as they supposed must belong to some ship that was lost, so they shortened Sail to let me come up. I was encouraged with this, and as I had my Patron's Antient on Board, I made a Waft of it to them for a Signal of Distress; and fir'd a Gun, both which they saw, for they told me they saw the Smoke, tho' they did not hear the Gun; 32 . ADVENTURES OF upon these Signals they very kindly brought too, and lay by far me, and in about three Hours time I came up with them. They ask'd me what I was, in Portuguese, and in Spanish, and in French, but I understood none of them ; but at last a Scots Sailor who was on board, call'd to me, and I answer**! him, and told him I was an Englishman, that I had made my escape out of Slavery from the Moors at Salleej then they bad me come on board, and very kindly took me in, and all my Goods. It was an inexpressible Joy to me, that any one willv believe, that I was thus delivered, as I esteem'd it, from \ such a miserable and almost hopeless Condition as I was I in, and I immediately offered all I had to the Captain of"^ the Ship, as a Return for my Deliverance ; but he gene- j rously told me, he would take nothing from me, but that, all I had should be deliver'd safe to me when I came to the Brasilsj for says he, / have saifd your Life on no other Tenns than I would be glad to be saved my self, and it may one time or other be my Lot to be taken up in( the same Condition ; besides, said he, -when I carry you to \ //4« Brasils, so great a way from your own Country, if F should take from, you what you have, you will be starved there, and then I only take away that Life I have given. No, no, Seignor Inglese, says he Mr. Englishman, / will carry you thither in Charity, and those things will help you to buy your Subsistance there and your Passage home again. As he was Charitable in his Proposal, so he was just in the Performance to a tittle, for hfe ordered the Seamen that none should offer to touch any thing I had ; then he took every thing into his own Possession, and gave me back an exafl Inventory of them, that I might have them, even so much as my three Earthen Jarrs. As to my Boat it was a very good one, and that he saw, and told me he would buy it of me for the Ship's Use, and ask'd me what I would haye for it? I told him he had been so generou-s-tO'irie in every thijig, that I ■ROBINSON CRUSOE. 33 could not offer to make any Price of the Boat, but left it entirely to him, upon which, he told me he would give me a Note of his Hand to pay me 80 Pieces of Eight for it at Brasil, and when it came there, if any one offer' d to give more he would make it up ; he offer'd me also 60 Pieces of Eight more for my Boy Xury, which I was loath to take, not that I was not willing to let the Captain have him, but I was very loath to sell the poor Boy's Liberty, who had assisted me so faithfully in procuring my own. However, when I let him know my Reason, he own'd it to be just, and offer'd me this Medium, that he would give the Boy an Obligation to set him free in ten Years, if he turn'd Christian; upon this, and Xury saying he was willing to go to him, I let the Captain have him. We had a very good Voyage to the Brasils, and arriv'd in the Bay de Todos los Santos, or All-Saints Bay, in about Twenty-two Days after. And now I was once more deliver'd from the most miserable of all Conditions of Life, and what to do next with my self I was now to consider. The generous Treatment the Captain gave me, I can never enough remember; he would take nothing of me fof my Passage, gave me twenty Ducats for the Leopard's Skin, and forty for the Lyon's Skin which I had in my Boat, and caused everything I had in the Ship to be pundiually deliver'd me, and what I was willing to sell he bought, such as the Case of Bottles, two of my Guns, and a Piece of the Lump of Bees-wax, for I had made Candles of the rest ; in a word, I made about 220 Pieces of Eight of all my Cargo, and with this Stock I went on Shore in the Brasils. I had not been long here, but being recommended to the House of a good honest Man like himself, who had an Ingeino as they call it; that is, a Plantation and a Sugar-House ; I lived with him some time, and ac- quainted my self by that Means with the Manner of their planting and making of Sugar; and seeing how well the Planters liv'd, and how they grew rich suddenly, I resolv'd, R. C. 3 34 ADVENTURES OF ■ if I could get Licence to settle there, I would turn Planter among them, resolving in the inean time to find out somie Way to get my Money which I had left in London remitted to me. To this Purpose getting a kind of a Letter of Naturalization, I purchased as much Land that was Uncur'd, as my Money would reach, and form'd a Plan for my Plantation and Settlement, and such a one as might be suitable to the Stock which I proposed to my self to receive from England. I had a Neighbour, a Portugueze of Lisbon, but born of English Parents, whose Name was Wells, and in much such Circumstances as I was. I call him my Neighbour,, because his Plantation lay next to mine, and we went on very sociably together. My Stock was but low as well as his ; and we rather planted for Food, than any thing else, for about two Years. However, we began to increase, and our Land began to come into Order ; so that the third Year we planted some Tobacco, and made each of us a large. Piece of Ground ready for planting ' Canes in the Year to come ; but we both wanted Help ;' t and now I found more than before, I had done wrong in (parting with my Bgy Xury. ^ut alas ! for nle to do wrong that never did right, was no great Wonder; I had no Remedy but to go on; I was gotten into an Employment quite remote to my Genius, and direcflly contrary to the Life I delighted in, and for which I forsook my Father's House, and broke thro' all his good Advice; nay, I was coming into the very middle Station, or upper Degree of low Life, which my Father advised me to before; and which if I re- solved to go on with, I might as well ha' staid .at Homey and never have fatigu'd my self in the World as I had ^done; and I used often to say to my self, I could ha' fdonejhis as well in England among my Friends, as I ha' gone 5000 Miles off to do it among Straiigers and Savages in a Wilderness, and at such a Distance, as never to hear from ^ny Part of the World that had the deast Knowledge of me. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 35 In this manner I used to look upon my Condition with the utmost Regret. I had no body to converse with but now and then this Neighbour; no Work to be done^A but by the Labour of my Hands ; and I used to say, I ) liv'd just Uke a Man cast away upon some desolate ( Island, that had no body there but himself. But hoyc just has it been, and how should all Men j=efle'dVt&t, when they compare their present Conditions with others that are worse, Heaven may oblige them to make the Exchange, and be convinc'd of their former Felicity, by their Experience: I say, how just has it been, that the truly solitary Life I reflefled on in an Island of meer Desolation should be my Lot, who had so often unjustly compar'd it with the Life which I then led, in which had I continued, I had in all Probability been exceeding pro- sperous and rich. I was in some Degree settled in my Measures for carrying on the Plantation, before my kind Friend the Captain of the Ship that took me up at Sea, went back ; for the Ship remained there in providing his Loading, and preparing for his Voyage, near three Months, when telling him what little Stock I had left behind me in London, he gave me this friendly and sincere Advice, Seignor Inglese, says he, for so he always called me, if you will give me Letters, and a Procuration here in Form to me, with Orders to the Person who has your Money in London, to send your Eifedls to Lisbon, to such Per- sons as I shall diredi, and in such Goods as are proper for this Country, I will bring you the Produce of them, God willing, at my Return; but since human Affairs are all subjeft to Changes and Disasters, I would have you give Orders but for One Hundred Pounds Sterl. which you say is Half your Stock, and let the Hazard be run for the first ; so that if it come safe, you may order the rest the same Way ; and if it miscarry, you may have the other Half to have Recourse to for your Supply. This was so wholesome Advice, and look'd so friendly, that I could not but be convinc'd it was the best Course 3—2 36 ADVENTURES UF . I could take; so I accordingly prepared Let|:ers to the Gentlewoman with whom I had left my Money, and' a Procuration to the Portuguese Captain, as he desired. I wrote the English Captain's Widow a full Account of all my Adventures, my Slavery, Esca,pe, and how I had met with the Portugal Captain at Sea, the Humanity of his Behaviour, and in what Condition I was now in, with all other necessary Dire.) that I was in an Island environ'd every Way with the Sea, no Land to be seen, except some Rocks which lay a great Way off, and two small Islands less than this, which lay about three Leagues to the West. I found also that the Island I was in was barren, and, as I saw good Reason to believe, un-inhabited, except by wild Beasts, of whom however I saw none, yet I saw abundance of Fowls, but knew not their Kinds, neither ROBINSON CRUSOE. 53 when I kill'd them could I tell what was fit for Food, and what not; at my coming back, I shot at a great Bird which I saw sitting upon a Tree on the Side of a great Wood, I believe it was the first Gun that had been fir'd there since the Creation of the World ; I had no sooner fir'd, but from all the Parts of the Wood there arose an innumerable Number of Fowls of many Sorts, making a confus'd Screaming, and crying every one according to his usual Note ; but not one of them of any Kind that I knew : As for the Creature I kill'd, I took it to be a Kind of a Hawk, its Colour and Beak resembling it, but had no Talons or Claws more than common, its Flesh was Carrion, and fit for nothing. Contented with this Discovery, I came back to my Raft, and fell to Work to bring my Cargo on Shore, which took me up the rest of that Day, and what to do with my self at Night I knew not, nor indeed where to rest; for I was afraid to lie down on the Ground, not knowing but some wild Beast might devour me, tho', as I afterwards found, there was really no Need for those Fears. However, as well as I could, I barricado'd my self round with the Chests and Boards that I had brought on Shore, and made a kind of a Hut for that Night's Lodg- ing; as for Food, I yet saw not which Way to supply my self, except that I had seen two or three Creatures like Hares run out of the Wood where I shot the Fowl. I now began to consider, that I might yet get a great many Things out of the Ship, which would be useful to me, and particularly some of the Rigging, and Sails, and such other Things as might come to Land, and I resolv'd to make another Voyage on Board the Vessel, if possible ; and as I knew that the first Storm that blew must neces- sarily break her all in Pieces, I resolv'd to set all other Things apart, 'till I got every Thing out of the Ship that I could get ; then I call'd a Council, that is to say, in my Thoughts, whether I should take back the Raft, but this appear'd impraflicable ; so I resolv'd to go as before, 54 ADVENTURES OF when the Tide was down, and I did so, only that I stripp'd before I went from my Hut, having nothing on but a chequer'd Shirt, and a Pair of Linnen Drawers, and a Pair of Pumps on my Feet. I got on Board the Ship, as before, and prepar'd a second Raft, and having had Experience of the first, I neither made this so unweildy, nor loaded it so hard, but yet I brought away several Things very useful to me ; as first, in the Carpenter's Stores I found two or three Bags full of Nails and Spikes, a great Skrew-Jack, a Dozen or two of Hatchets, and above all, that most useful Thing, call'd a Grind-stone; all these I secur'd together, with several Things belonging to the Gunner, particularly two or three Iron Crows, and two Barrels of Musquet-BuUets, seven Musquets, and another Fowling-Piece, with some small Quantity of Powder more ; a large Bag full of small Shot, and a great Roll of Sheet Lead : But this last was so heavy, I could not hoise it up to get it over the Ship's Side. Besides these Things, I took all the Mens Cloaths that I could find, and a spare Fore-top-sail, a Hammock, and some Bedding; and with this I loaded my second Raft, and brought them all safe on Shore to my very great Comfort. I was under some Apprehensions during my Absence from the Land, that at least my Provisions might be devour'd on Shore; but when I came back, I found no Sign of any Visitor, only there sat a Creature like a wild Cat upon one of the Chests,, which when I came towards it, ran away a little Distance, and then stood still ; she sat very compos'd, and unconcern'd, and look'd full in my Face, as if she had a Mind to be acquainted with me, I presented my Gun at her, but as she did not understand it, she was perfeftly unconcern'd at it, nor did she offer to stir away ; upon which I toss'd her a bit of Bisket, tho' by the Way I was not very free of it, for my Store was not great: However, I spar'd her a bit, I say, and she went to it, smell'd of it, and ate it, and look'd (as pleas'd) ROBINSON CRUSOE. 55 for more, but I thank'd her, and could spare no more ; so she march'd off. Having got my second Cargo on Shore, tho' I was fain to open the Barrels of Powder, and bring them by- Parcels, for they were too heavy, being large Casks, I went to work to make me a little Tent with the Sail and some Poles which I cut for that Purpose, and into this Tent I brought every Thing that I knew would spoil, either with Rain or Sun, and I piled all the empty Chests and Casks up in a Circle round the Tent, to fortify it from any sudden Attempt, either from Man or Beast. When I had done this I block'd up the Door of the' Tent with some Boards within, and an empty Chest set up an End without, and spreading one of the Beds upon the Ground, laying my two Pistols just at my Head, and my Gun at Length by me, I went to Bed for the first Time, and slept very quietly all Night, for I was very weary and heavy, for the Night before I had slept little, and had labour'd very hard all Day, as well to fetch all those Things from the Ship, as to get them on Shore. I had the biggest Magazine of all Kinds now that ever were laid up, I believe, for one Man; but I was not satisfy'd still; for while the Ship sat upright in that Posture, I thought I ought to get every Thing out of her that I could ; so every Day at low Water I went on Board, and brought away some Thing or other: But par- ticularly the third Time I went, I brought away as much of the Rigging as I could, as also all the small Ropes and Rope-twine I could get, with a Piece of spare Canvass, which was to mend the Sails upon Occasion, the Barrel of wet Gun-powder: In a Word, I brought away all the Sails first and last, only that I was fain to cut them in Pieces, and bring as much at a Time as I could ; for they were no more useful to be Sails, but as meer Canvass only. But that which comforted me more still, was, that at last of all, after I had made five or six such Voyages as these, and thought I had nothing more to expeft from 56 -ADVENTURES OF the Ship that was worth my medling with, I say, after all this, I found a great Hogshead of Bread, and three l^rge Runlets of Rum or Spirits, and a Box of Sugar, and a Barrel of fine Flower; this was surprizing to me, because I had given over expefling any more Provisions, except what was spoil'd by the Water: I soon empty'd the Hogs- head of that Bread, and wrapt it up Parcel by Parcel in Pieces of the Sails, which I cut out ; and in a Word, I got all this safe on Shore also. The next Day I made another Voyage ; and now hav- ing plunder'd the Ship of what was portable and fit to hand out, I began with the Cables ; and cutting the great Cable into Pieces, such as I could move, I got two Cables and a Hawser on Shore, with all the Iron-work I could get; and having cut down the Spritsail-yard, and the Missen-yard, and every Thing I could to make a large Raft, I loaded it with all those heavy Goods, and came away: But my good Luck began now to leave me; for this Raft was so unweildy, and so overloaden, that after I was enter'd the little Cove, where I had landed the rest of my Goods, not being able to guide it so handily as I did the other, it overset, and threw me and all my Cargo into the Water ; as for my self it was no great Harm, for I was near the Shore ; but as to my Cargo, it was great Part of it lost, especially the Iron, which I expefled would have been of great Use to me : However, when the Tide was out, I got most of the Pieces of Cable ashore, and some of the Iron, tho' with infinite Labour ; for I was fain to dip for it into the Water, a Work which fatigu'd me very much; After this I went every Day on Board, and brought away what I could get. I had been now Thirteen Days on Shore, and had been eleven Times on Board the Ship ; in which Time I had brought away all that one Pair of Hands could well be suppos'd capable to bring, tho' I beheve verily, had the calm Weather held, I should have brought away the whole Ship Piece by Piece : But preparing the 12th Time to go on Board, I found the Wind begin to rise ; however at ROBINSON CRUSOE. 57 low Water I went on Board, and tho' I thought I had rumag'd the Cabbin so effeftually, as that nothing more could be found, yet I discover'd a Locker with Drawers in it, in one of which I found two or three Razors, and one Pair of large Sizzers, with some ten or a dozen of good Knives and Forks ; in another I found about Thirty six Pounds value in Money, some European Coin, some Brasil, some Pieces of Eight, some Gold, some Silver. I smil'd to my self at the Sight of this Money. O Drug ! said I aloud, what art thou good for ? Thou art not worth to me, no not the taking off of the Ground, one of those Knives is worth all this Heap, I have no Manner of use for thee, e'en remain where thou art, and go to the Bottom as a Creature whose Life is not worth saving. However upon second Thoughts, I took it away, and wrapping all this in a Piece of Canvas, I began to think of making another Raft, but while I was preparing this, I found the Sky over-cast, and the Wind began to rise, and in a Quarter of an Hour it blew a fresh Gale from the Shore ; it presently occur'd to me, that it was in vain to pi-etend to make a Raft with the Wind off Shore, and that it was my Business to be gone before the Tide of Flood began, otherwise I might not be able to reach the Shore at all : Accordingly I let my self down into the Water, and swam cross the Channel, which lay between the Ship and the Sands, and even that with Difficulty enough, partly with the Weight of the Things I had about me, and partly the Roughness of the Water, for the Wind rose very hastily, and before it was quite high Water, it blew a Storm. But I was gotten home to my little Tent, where I lay with all my Wealth about me very secure. It blew very hard all that Night, and in the Morning when I look'd out, behold no more Ship was to be seen ; I was a little surpriz'd, but recover'd my self with this satisfaftory Re- fleflion viz. That I had lost no time, nor abated no Diligence to get every thing out of her that could be useful to me, and that indeed there was little left in S8 ADVENTURES OF her that I was able to bring away, if I had had more time. I now gave over any more Thoughts of the Ship, or of any thing out of her, except what might drive on Shore from her Wreck, as indeed divers Pieces of her afterwards did ; but those things were of small use to me. My Thoughts were now wholly employ'd about secur-i ing my self against either Savages, if any should appear, or wild Beasts, if any were in the Island ; and I had many Thoughts of the Method how to do this, and what kind of Dwelling to make, whether I should make me a Cave in the Earth, or a Tent upon the Earth : And, in short, I resolv'd upon both, the Manner and Description of which it may not be improper to give an Account of. I soon found the Place I was in was not for my Settle- ment, particularly because it was upon a low moorish Ground near the Sea, and I believ'd would not be whole- some, and more particularly because there was no fresh Water near it, so I resolv'd to find a more healthy and more convenient Spot of Ground. I consulted several Things in my Situation which I found would be proper for me. ist. Health, and fresh Wa- ter I just now mentioned. 2dly, Shelter from the Heat of the Sun. 3dly, Security from ravenous Creatures, whether Men or Beasts. 4thly, a View to the Sea, that if God sent any Ship in Sight, I might not lose any Advantage for my Deliverance, of which I was not willing to banish all my Expedlation yet. In search of a Place proper for this, I found a little Plain on the side of a rising Hill, whose Front towards this little Plain was steep as a House-side, so that nothing could come down upon me from the Top ; on the side of this Rock there was a hollow Place worn a little way in like the Entrance or. Door of a Cave, but there was not really any Cave or Way into the Rock at all. On the Flat of the Green, just before this hollow Place, I resolv'd to pitch my Tent : This Plain was not above an hundred Yards broad, and about twice as long, and lay ROBINSON CRUSOE. 59 like a Green before my Door, and at the End of it de- scended irregularly every Way down into the Low-Grounds by the Sea-side. It was on the N.N. W. Side of the Hill, so that I was shellered from the Heat every Day, till it came to a W. and by S. Sun, or thereabouts, which in those Countries is near the Setting. Before I set up my Tent, I drew a half Circle before the hollow Place, which took in about Ten Yards in its Semi-diameter from the Rock, and Twenty Yards in its Diameter, from its Beginning and Ending. In this half Circle I pitch'd two Rows of strong Stakes, driving them into the Ground till they stood very firm like Piles, the biggest End being out of the Ground about five Foot and a Half, and sharpen'd on the Top; The two Rows did not stand above six Inches from one another. Then I took the Pieces of Cable which I had cut in the Ship, and laid them in Rows one upon another, with- in the Circle, between these two Rows of Stakes, up to the Top, placing other Stakes in the Inside, leaning against them, about two Foot and a half high, like a Spur to a Post, and this Fence was so strong, that neither Man or Beast could get into it or over it : This cost me a great deal of Time and Labour, especially to cut the Piles in the Woods, bring them to the Place, and drive them into the Earth. The Entrance into this Place I made to be not by a Door, but by a short Ladder to go over the Top, which Ladder, when I was in, I lifted over after me, and so I was compleatly fenc'd in, and fortify'd, as I thought, from all the World, and consequently slept secure in the Night, which otherwise I could not have done, tho' as it appear'd afterward, there was no need of all this Caution from the Enemies that I apprehended danger from. Into this Fence or Fortress, with infinite Labour, I carry'd all my Riches, all my Provisions, Ammunition and Stores, of which you have the Account above, and I made me a large Tent, which, to preserve me from the Rains that in one Part of the Year are very violent there. 6o ADVENTURES OF I made double, viz. One smaller Tent within, and one larger Tent above it, and cover'd the uppermost with a large Tarpaulin which I had sav'd among the Sails. And now I lay no more for a while in the Bed which I had brought on Shore, but in a. Hammock, which was indeed a very good one, and belong'd to the Mate of the Ship. Into this Tent I brought all my Provisions, and every thing that would spoil by the Wet, and having thus enclos'd all my Goods, I made up the Entrance, which till now I had left open, and so pass'd and repass'd, as I said, by a short Ladder. When I had done this, I began to work my way into the Rock, and bringing all the Earth and Stones that I dug down out thro' my Tent, I laid 'em up within my Fence in the Nature of a Terras, that so it rais'd the Ground within about a Foot and a Half; and thus I made me a Cave just behind my Tent, which serv'd me like a Cellar to my House. . It cost me much Labour, and many Days, before all these Things were brought to Perfeftion, and therefore I must go back to some other things which took up some of my Thoughts. At the same time it happen'd after I had laid my Scheme for the setting up my Tent, and making the Cave, that a Storm of Rain falling from a thick dark Cloud, a sudden Flash of Lightning happen'd, and after that a great Clap of Thunder, as is naturally the Effeft of it; I was not so much surpris'd with the Lightning, as I was with a Thought which darted into my Mind as swift as the Lightning it self: O my Powder ! my very Heart sunk within me, when I thought, that at one Blast all my Powder might be destroy'd ; on which, not my defence only, but the providing me Food, as I thought, entirely depended ; I was nothing near so anxious about my own Danger, tho' had the Powder took fire, I had never known who had hurt me. Such Impression did this make upon me, that after .the Storm was over, I laid aside all my Works, my Build- ROBINSON CRUSOE. 6i ing, and Fortifying, and appl/d my self to make Bags and Boxes to separate the Powder, and keep it a little and a little in a Parcel, in hope, that whatever might come, it naight not all take Fire at once, and to keep it so apart, that it should not be possible to make one part fire another. I finish'd this Work in about a Fortnight, and I think my Powder, which in all was about 240 1. weight was divided in not less than a Hundred Parcels ; as to the Barrel that had been wet, I did not apprehend any Danger from that, so I plac'd it in my new Cave, which in my Fancy I call'd my Kitchin, and the rest I hid up and down in Holes among the Rocks, so that no wet might come to it, marking very carefully where I laid it. In the Interval of time while this was doing, I went out once at least every Day with my Gun, as well to divert myself, as to see if I could kill any thing fit for Food, and as near as I could to acquaint my self with what the Island produc'd. The first time I went out I presently discover'd that there were Goats in the Island, which was a great Satisfadlion to me; but then it was attended with this Misfortune to me, viz. That they were so shy, so subtile, and so swift of Foot, that it was the difficultest thing in the World to come at them : But I was not discourag'd at this, not doubting but I might now and then shoot one, as it soon happen' d, for after I had found their Haunts a little, I laid wait in this Manner for them : I observ'd if they saw me in the Valleys, tho' they were upon the Rocks, they would run away as in a terrible Fright ; but if they were feeding in the Valleys, and I was upon the Rocks, they took no Notice of me, from whence I concluded, that by the Position of their Opticks, their Sight was so direifled downward, that they did not readily see Objedls that were above them; so afterward I took this Method, I always clim'd the Rocks first to get above them, and then had frequently a fair Mark. The first shot I made among these Creatures, I kill'd a She- Goat which had a little Kid by her which she 62 ADVENTURES OF gave suck to, which griev'd me heartily; but when the Old one fell, the Kid stood stock still by her till I came and took her up, and not only so, but when I carried the Old one with me upon my Shoulders, the Kid follow'd me quite to my Enclosure, upon which I laid down the Dam, and took the Kid in my Arms, and carried it over my Pale, in hopes to have bred it up tame, but it would not eat, so was I forc'd to kill it and eat it my self; these two supply'd me with Flesh a great while, for I eat sparingly ; and sav'd my Provisions (my Bread especially) as much as possibly I could. Having now fix'd my Habitation, I found it absolutely necessary to provide a Place to make a Fire in, and Fewel to burn ; and what I did for that, as also how I enlarg'd my Cave, and what Conveniences I made, I shall give a full Account of in its Place : But I must first give some little Account of my self, and of my Thoughts about Living, which it may well be supposed were not a few. I had a dismal Prospedl of my Condition, for as I was not cast away upon that Island without being driven, as is said, by a violent Storm quite out of the Course of our intended Voyage, and a great Way, viz. some Hundreds of Leagues out of the ordinary Course of the Trade of Mankind, I had great Reason to consider it as a Determination of Heaven, that in this desolate Place, and in this desolate Manner I should end my Life ; the Tears would run plentifully down my Face when I made these Refledlions, and sometimes I would expostulate with my self. Why Providence should thus compleatly ruin its Creatures, and render them so absolutely miser- able, so without Help abandon'd, so entirely depress'd, that it could hardly be rational to be thankful for such a Life. But something alwiays return'd swift upon me to check these Thoughts, and to reprove me ; and particularly one Day walking with my Gun in my Hand by the Sea-side; I was very pensive upon the Subject of iny present Con- dition, when Reason as it were expostulated with me t'other Way, thus: Well, you are in a desolate Condition ROBINSON CRUSOE. 63 'tis true, but pray remember^ Where are the rest of you ? Did not you come Eleven of you into the Boat, where are the Ten? Why were not they sav'd and you lost? Why were you singled out? Is it better to be here or there? and then I- pointed to the Sea. All Evils are to be con- -^ sider'd with the Good that is in them, and with what worse attends them. Then it occur'd to me again, how well I was furnish'd for my Subsistence, and what would have been my Case if it had not happen'd. Which was an Hundred Thousand to one, that the Ship floated from the Place where she first struck and was driven so near to the Shore that I had time to get all these Things out of her : What would have been my Case, if I had been to have liv'd in the Condition in which I at first came on Shore, without Necessaries of Life, or Necessaries to supply and procure them? Particularly said I aloud, (tho' to myself) what should I ha' done without a. Gun, without Ammunition, without any Tools to make any thing, or to work with, without Cloaths, Bedding, a Tent, or any manner of Covering, and that now I had all these to a sufficient Quantity, and was in a fair way to provide my self in such a manner, as to live without my Gun when my Ammunition was spent ; so that I had a tolerable View of subsisting without any Want as long as I liv'd; for I consider'd from the beginning how I would provide for the Accidents that might happen, and for the time that was to come, even not only after my Ammunition should be spent, but even after my Health or Strength should decay. I confess I had not entertain'd any Notion of my Ammunition being destroy'd at one Blast, I mean my Powder being blown up by Lightning, and this made the Thoughts of it so surprising to me when it lighten'd and thunder'd, as I observ'd just now. And now being to enter into a melancholy Relation of a Scene of silent Life, such perhaps as was never heard of in the World before, I shall take it from its Beginning, and continue it in its Order. It was, by my Account, the 64 ADVENTURES OF 30th of Sept. when, in the Manner as abovesaid, I first set Foot upon this horrid Island, when the Sun being, to us, in its Autumnal Equinox, was almost just over my Head, for I reckon'd my self, by Observation, to be in the Lati- tude of 9 Degrees 22 Minutes North of the Line. After I had been there about Ten or Twelve Days, it came into my Thoughts, that I should lose my Reck- oning of Time for want of Books and Pen and Ink, and should even forget the Sabbath Days from the working Days ; but to prevent this, I cut it with my Knife upon a large Post, in Capital Letters, and making it into a great Cross, I set it up on the Shore where I first landed, viz. I came on Shore here on the y>th of Sept. 1659. Upon the Sides of this square Post, I cut every Day a Notch with my Knife, and every seventh Notch was as long again as the rest, and every first Day of the Month as long again as that long one, and thus I kept my Kalendar, or weekly, monthly, and yearly reckoning of Time. In the next place we are to observe, that among the many things which I brought out of the Ship in the several Voyages, which, as abovemention'd, I made to it, I got several things of less Value, but not all less useful to me, which I omitted setting down before ; as in parti- cular, Pens, Ink, and Paper, several Parcels in the Cap- tain's, Mate's, Gunner's, and Carpenter's keeping, three or four Compasses, some Mathematical Instruments, Dials, Perspedtives, Charts, and Books of Navigation, all which I huddled together, whether I might want them or no ; also I found three very good Bibles which came to me in my Cargo from England, and which I had pack'd up among my things ; some Portugueze Books also, and among them two or three Popish Prayer-Books, and seve- ral other Books, all which I carefully secur'd. And I must not forget, that we had in the Ship a Dog and two Cats, of whose eminent History I may have occasion to say something in its Place ; for I carry'd both the Cats with me ; and as for the Dog, he jump'd out of the Ship of himself, and swam on Shore to me the Day after I ROBINSON CRUSOE. 65 went on Shore with ipy first Cargo, and was a trusty Servant to me many Years; I wanted nothing that he could fetch me, nor any Company that he could make up to me, I only wanted to have him talk to me, but that would not do: As I observ'd before, I found Pen, Ink and Paper, and I husbanded them to the utmost ; and I shall shew, that while my Ink lasted, I kept things very exadl ; but after that was gone, I could not, for I could not make any Ink, by any Means that I could devise. And this put me in mind that I wanted many things, notwithstanding all that I had amass'd together ; and of these, this of Ink was one, as also Spade, Pick-Ax and Shovel, to dig or remove the Earth, Needles, Pins, and Thread; as for Linen, I' soon learn'd to want that without much Difficulty. This want- of Tools made every Work I did go on heavily, and it was near a whole Year before I had entirely finished my little Pale or surrounded Habitation : The Piles or Stakes, which were as heavy as I could well lift, were a long time in cutting and preparing in the Woods, and more by far in bringing home; so that I spent sometimes two Days in cutting and bringing home one of those Posts, and a third Day in driving it into the Ground ; for which Purpose I got a heavy Piece of Wood at first, but at last bethought myself of one of the Iron Crows, which however, tho' I found it, yet it made driv- ing those Posts or Piles very laborious and tedious Work. But what need I ha' been concerned at the Tedious- ness of any thing I had to do, seeing I had time enough to do it in, nor had I any other Employment if that had been over, at least, that I could foresee, except the rang- ing the Island to seek for Food, which I did more or less every Day. I now began to consider seriously my Condition, and the Circumstance I was reduc'd to, and I drew up the State of my Affairs in Writing, not so much to leave them to any that were to come after me, for I was like to R. C. -? 66 ADVENTURES OF have but few Heirs, as to deliver my Thoughts from daily poring upon them, and afflidling my Mind ; and as my Reason began now to master my Despondency, I began to comfort myself as well as I could, and to set the Good against the Evil, that I might have something to dis- tinguish my Case from worse ; and I stated it very impar- tially, like Debtor and Creditor, the Comforts I enjoy* d, against the Miseries I suffer'd, thus : Evil. Good. I am cast upo?i a horrible But I am alive, and not desolate Island, void of all drowned, as all my Ships hope of Recovery. Company was. I am singled out and se- But I am singled out too parated, as it were, from all from all the Ship's Crew to the World to be miserable. I am. divided from Man- kind, a Solitaire, one ba- nished from humane Society. I have not Cloaths to co- I am without any De- fence or Means to resist any Violence of Man or Beast. I have no Soul to speak to, or relieve me. be spared from Death; and he that miraculously saved me from Death, can deliver me from this Condition. But J am notstarv'd and perishing on a barren Flace, affording no Sustenance. But I am in a hot Cli- mate, where if I had Cloaths I could hardly wear them. But I am cast on an Is- land, where I see no wild Beasts to hurt me, as I saw on the Coast ^Africa: Arid what if I had been Ship- wreck d there? But God wonderfully sent the Ship in near enough to the Shore, that I have gotten out so many necessary things as will either supply my Wants, or enable me to supply my self even as long as I live. ' ROBINSON CRUSOE. 67 Upon the whole, here was an undoubted Testimony, that there was scarce any Condition in the World so miserable, but there was something negative or something positive to be thankful for in it ; and let this stand as a Direftion from the Experience of the most miserable of all Conditions in this World, that we may always find in it something to comfort ourselves from, and to set in the Description of Good and Evil, on the Credit Side of the Account. Having now brought my Mind a little to relish my Condition, and given over looking out to Sea, to see if I could spy a Ship ; I say, giving over these things, I began to apply myself to accommodate my way of Living, and to make things as easy to me as I could. I have already described my Habitation, which was a Tent under the Side of a Rock, surrounded with a strong Pale of Posts and Cables, but I might now rather call it a Wall, for I rais'd a kind of Wall up against it of Turfs, about two Foot thick on the Outside, and after some time, I think it was a Year and half, I rais'd Rafters from it leaning to the Rock, and thatch'd or cover'd it with Boughs of Trees, and such things as I could get to keep out the Rain, which I found at some times of the Year very violent. I have already observed how I brought all my Goods into this Pale, and into the Cave which I had made be- hind me : But I must observe too that at first this was a confus'd Heap of Goods, which as they lay in no Order, so they took up all my Place ; I had no room to turn myself; So I set myself to enlarge my Cave and Works farther into the Earth; for it was a loose sandy Rock, which yielded easily to the Labour I bestowed on it: And so when I found I was pretty safe as to Beasts of Prey, I work'd sideways to the Right Hand into the Rock; and then turning to the Right again, work'd quite out, and made me a Door to come out, on the Outside of my Pale 1 or Fortification. This gave me not only Egress and Regress, as it were 5—2 68 ADVENTURES OF a Back-way to my Tent and to my Storehouse, but gave me room to stow my Goods. And now I began to apply my self to make such neces- sary things as I found I most wanted, as particularly a Chair and a Table ; for without these I was not able to enjoy the few Comforts I had in the World ; I could not write or eat, or do several things with so much Pleasure without a Table. So I went to work; and here I must needs observe, that as Reason is the Substance and Original of the Mathematicks, so by stating and squaring every thing by ^"'j Reason, and by making the most rational Judgment of ]'-, things, every Man may be in time Master of every me- "Chanick Art. I had never handled a Tool in my Life, and yet in time by Labour, Application and Contrivance, I found at last that I wanted nothing but I could have made it, especially if I had had Tools ; however, I made abundance of things, even without Tools, and some with no more Tools than an Adze and a Hatchet, which per- haps were never made that way before, and that with in- finite^ Labour: For Example, If I wanted a Board, I had no other Way but to cut down a Tree, set it on an Edge before me, and hew it flat on either Side with my Ax, till I had brought it to be thin as a Plank, and then dubb it smooth with my Adze. It is true, by this Method I could make but one Board out of a whole Tree, but this I had no Remedy for but Patience, any more than I had for the prodigious deal of Time and Labour which it took me up to make a Plank or Board : But my Time or Labour was little worth, and so it was as well employ'd one way as another. However, I made me a Table and a Chair, as I ob- serv'd above, in the first Place, and this I did out of the short Pieces of Boards that I brought on my Raft from the Ship: But when I had wrought out some Boards, as , above, I made large Shelves of the Breadth of a Foot and a Half one over another, all along one Side of my Cave, to lay all my Tools, Nails, and Iron-work, and in a Word, ROBINSON CRUSOE. 69 to separate every thing at large in their Places, that I might come easily at them; I knock' d Pieces into the Wall of the Rock to hang my Guns and all things that would hang up. So that had my Cave been to be seen, it look'd like a general Magazine of all necessary things, and I had every thing so ready at my Hand, that it was a great Plea- sure to me to see all my Goods in such Order, and espe- cially to find my Stock of all Necessaries so great. And now it was when I began to keep a Journal of every Day's Employment, for indeed at first I was in too much Hurry, and not only Hurry as to Labour, but in too much Discomposure of Mind, and my Journal would ha' been full of many dull things. For Example, I must have said thus : Sept. the 30th, After I got to Shore and had escap'd drowning, instead of being thankful to God for my Deliverance, having first vomited with the great Quan- tity of salt Water which was gotten into my Stomach, and recovering my self a little, I ran about the Shore, wring- ing my Hands and beating my Head and Face, exclaim- ing at my Misery, and crying out, I was undone, undone, till tir'd and faint I was forc'd to lye down on the Ground to repose, but durst not sleep for fear of being devour' d. Some Days after this, and after I had been on board the Ship, and got all that I could out of her, yet I could not forbear getting up to the Top of a little Mountain and looking out to Sea in hopes of seeing a Ship, then fancy at a vast Distance I spy'd a Sail, please my self with the Hopes of it, and then after looking steadily till I was almost blind, lose it quite, and sit down and weep like a Child, and thus encrease my Misery by my Folly. But having gotten over these things in some Measure, and having settled my houshold Stuff and Habitation, made me a Table and a Chair, and all as handsome about me as I could, I began to keep my Journal, of witich I shall here give you the Copy (the' in it will be told all these Particulars over again) as long as it lasted, for hav- ing no more Ink' I was forced to leave it off. 70 Adventures of THE JOURNAL. i^eptember ya, 1659. I poor miserable Robinson Crusoe, •^ being shipwreck'd, during a dreadful Storm, in the offing, came on Shore on this dismal unfortunate Island, which I call'd the Island of Despair, all the rest of the Ship's Company being drown'd, and my self almost dead. All the rest of that Day I spent in afflifting my self at the dismal Circumstances I was brought to, viz. I had neither Food, House, Cloaths, Weapon, or Place to fly to, and in Despair of any Relief, saw nothing but Death be- fore me, either that I should be devoured by wild Beasts, murther'd by Savages, or starv'd to Death for want of Food. At the Approach of Night, I slept in a Tree for fear, of wild Creatures, but slept soundly tho' it rain'd all Night. O^iober I. In the Morning I saw to my great Surprise the Ship had floated with the high Tide, and was driven on Shore again much nearer the Island, which as it was some Cjimfort on one hand, for seeing her sit upright, and not broken to pieces I hop'd, if the Wind abated, I might get on board, and get some Food and Necessaries out of her for my Relief; so on the other hand, it renew'd my Grief at the Loss of my Comrades, who I imagin'd if we had all staid on board might have sav'd the Ship, or at least that they would not have been all drown'd as they were ; and that had the Men been sav'd, we might per- haps have built us a Boat out of the Ruins of the Ship, to have carried us to some other Part of the World. I spent great Part of this Day in perplexing my self on these things ; but at length seeing the Ship almost dry, I went upon the Sand as near as I could, and then swam on board; this Day also it continu'd raining, tho' with no Wind at all. From the ist of Odober to the 24th. All these Days entirely spent in many several Voyages to get all I could out of the Ship, which I brought on Shore, every Tide of Flood, upon R^afts, Much Rain also in these Days, tho'' ROBINSON CRUSOE. 71 with some Intervals of fair Weather: But, it seems, this was the rainy Season. Oil. 20. I overset my Raft, and all the Goods I had got upon it, but being in shoal Water, and the things being chiefly heavy, I 'recover'd many of them when the Tide was out. O^. 25. It rain'd all Night and all Day, with some Gusts of Wind, during which time the Ship broke in pieces, the Wind blowing a little harder than before, and was no more to be seen, except the Wreck of her, ajjd that only at low Water. I spent this Day in covering and securing the Goods which I had sav'd, that the Rain might not spoil them. 0£l. 26. I walk'd about the Shore almost all Day to find Out a Place to fix my Habitation, greatly concern'd to secure my self from an Attack in the Night, either from wild Beasts or Men. Towards Night I fix'd upon a proper Place under a Rock, and mark'd out a Semi-Circle for my Encampment, which I resolv'd to strengthen with a Work, Wall, or Fortification made of double Piles, lin'd within with Cables, and without with Turf. From the 26th to the 30th I work'd very hard in carry- ing all my Goods to my new Habitation, tho' some part of the time it rain'd exceeding hard. The 31st in the Morning I went out into the Island with my Gun to see for some Food, and discover the Country ; when I kill'd a She-Goat, and her Kid foUow'd me home, which I afterwards kill'd also, because it would not feed. November i. I set up my Tent under a Rock, and lay there for the first Night, making it as large as I could with Stakes driven in to swing my Hammock upon. Nov. 2. I set up all my Chests and Boards, and the Pieces of Timber which made my Rafts, and with them form'd a Fence round me, a little within the Place I had mark'd out for my Fortification. Nov. 3. I went out with my Gun, and kill'd two 72 ADVENTURES OF Fowls like Ducks, which were very good Food. In the Afternoon went to work to make me a Table. Nov. 4. This Morning I began to order my times of Work, of going out with my Gun, time of Sleep, and time of Diversion, viz. Every Morning I walk'd out with my Gun for two or three Hours if it did not rain, then employ'd my self to work till about Eleven a-clock, then eat what I had to live on, and from Twelve to Two I lay down to sleep, the Weather being excessive hot, and then in the Evening to work again; The working Part of this Day and of the next were wholly employed in making my Table, for I was yet but a very sorry Workman, tho' Time and Necessity made me a compleat natural Me- chanic soon after, as I believe it would do any one else. Nov. 5. This Day went abroad with my Gun and my Dog, and kill'd a wild Cat, her Skin pretty soft, but her Flesh good for nothing: Every Creature I kill'd, I took* off the Skins and preserv'd them. Coming back by the Sea-Shore, I saw many sorts, of Sea-Fowls, which I did not understand; but was surpriz'd, and almost frighted with two or three Seals, which, while I was gazing at, not well knowing what they were, got into the Sea, and es- cap'd me for that time. Nov. 6. After my Morning Walk I went to work with my Table again, and finish'd it, tho' not to my liking ; nor was it long before I learnt to mend it. Nov. 7. Now it began to be settled fair Weather. The 7th, 8th, 9th, loth, and part of the 12th, (for the nth was Sunday) 1 took wholly up to make me a Chair, and with much ado brought it to a tolerable Shape, but never to please me ; and even in the making I puU'd it in pieces several times. Note, I soon negledled my keeping Sun- days, for omitting my Mark for them on my Post, I forgot which was which. Nov. 13. This Day it rain'd, which refresh'd me ex- ceedingly, and cool'd the Earth, but it was accompany'd with terrible Thunder and Lightning, which frighted me dreadfully, for fear of my Powder: As soon as it was ROBINSON CRUSOE. 73 over, I resolv'd to separate my Stock of Powder into as many little Parcels as possible, that it might not be in danger. Nov. 14, 15, 16. These three Days I spent in making little square Chests or Boxes, which might hold about a Pound, or two Pound, at most, of Powder ; and so putting the Powder in, I stowed it in Places as secure and remote from one another as possible. On one of these three Days I kill'd a large Bird that was good to eat, but I know not what to call it. Nov. 17. This Day I began to dig behind my Tent into the Rock, to make room for my farther Conveniency. Note, Three Things I wanted exceedingly for this Work, viz. a Pick-ax, a Shovel, and a Wheel-barrow or Basket, so I desisted from my Work, and began to consider how to supply that Want, and make me some Tools : As for a Pick-ax, I made use of the Iron Crows, which were proper .enough, tho' heavy ; but the next thing was a Shovel or Spade ; this was so absolutely necessary, that indeed I could do nothing effeflually without it ; but what kind of one to make I knew not. Nov. 18. The next Day. in searching the Woods I found a Tree of that Wood, or like it, which in the Brasils they call the Iron Tree, for its exceeding Hardness; of this, with great Labour and almost spoiling my Ax, I cut a piece, and brought it home too with Difficulty enough, for it was exceeding heavy. The excessive Hardness of the Wood, and having no other way, made me a long while upon this Machine ; for . I work'd it effedlually by little and little into the Form of a Shovel or Spade, the Handle exadlly shap'd like ours in England, only that the broad Part having no Iron shod upon it at Bottom, it would not last me so long ; however it serv'd well enough for the uses which I had occasion to. put it to ; but never was a Shovel, I believe, made afterJEat-Fashion, or so long a making. i was still deficient, for I wanted a Basket or a Wheel- barrowT^ Basket I could not make by any means, having 74 ADVENTURES OF no such things as Twigs that would bend to make Wicker Ware, at least none yet found out ; and as to a Wheel- barrow, I fancy'd I could make all but the Wheel, but that I had no notion of, neither did I know how to go about it ; besides I had no possible way to make the Iron Gudgeons for the Spindle or Axis of the Wheel to run in, so I gave it over ; and so for carrying away the Earth which I dug out of the Cave, I made me a Thing like a Hod which the Labourers carry Mortar in, when they serve the Bricklayers. This was not so difficult to me as the makipg the Shovel; and yet this, and the Shovel, and the Attempt which I made in vain, to make a Wheel-barrow, took me up no less than four Days, I mean always, excepting my Morning Walk with my Gun, which I seldom fail'd, and very seldom fail'd also bringing Home something fit to eat. Nov. 23. My other Work having now stood still, be- cause of my making these Tools ; when they were finish' d, I went on, and working every Day, as my Strength and Time allow'd, I spent eighteen Days entirely in widening and deepening my Cave, that it might hold my Goods commodiously. Note, During all this Time, I work'd to make this Room or Cave spacious enough to accommodate me as a Warehouse or Magazine, a Kitchen, a Dining-room, and a Cellar; as for my Lodging, I kept to the Tent, except that sometimes in the wet Season of the Year, it rain'd so hard that I "could not keep my self dry, which caus'd me afterwards to cover all my Place within my Pale with long Poles in the Form of Rafters, leaning against the Rock, and load them with Flags and large Leaves of Trees like a Thatch. December \o'Cd., I begaji now to think my Cave or Vault finished, when on a sudden (it seems I had made it too large) a great Quantity of Earth fell down frdm the Top and one Side, so much, that in short it frighted me, and not without Reason too ; for if I had been under ROBINSON CRUSOE. 75 it I had never wanted a Grave-digger : Upon this Dis- aster I had a great deal of Work to do over again ; for I had the loose Earth to carry out ; and which was of more Importance, I had the Cieling to prop up, so that I might be sure no more would come down. Dec. II. This Day I went to Work with it accord- ingly, and got two Shores or Posts pitch'd upright to the Top, with two Pieces of Boards a-cross over each Post, this I finish'd the next Day ; and setting more Posts up with Boards, in about a Week more I had the Roof secur'd ; and the Posts standing in Rowsy serv'd me for Partitions to part of my House. Dec. 17. From this Day to tlae Twentieth I plac'd Shelves, and knock'd up Nails on the Posts to hang every Thing up that could be hung up, and now I began to be in some Orde:; within Doors. Dec. 20. Now I carry'd every Thing into the Cave, and began to furnish my House, and set up some Pieces of Boards, like a Dresser, to order my Vicfluals upon, but Boards began to be very scarce with me ; also I made me another Table. Dec. 24. Much Rain all Night and all Day, no stir- ring out. Dec. 25. Rain all Day. Dec. 26. No Rain, and the Earth much cooler than before and pleasanter. Dec. 27. Kill'd a young Goat, and lam'd another so that I catch'd it, and led it Home in a String ; when I had it Home, I bound and spHnter'd up its Leg which was broke. N. B. I took such Care of it, that it liv'd, and the Leg grew well and as strong as ever ; but by my nursing it so long it grew tame, and fed upon the little Green at my Door, and would not go away: This was the .first Time that I entertain'd a Thought of breeding up some tame Creatures, that I might have Food when my Powder and Shot was all spent. Dec. 28, 29, 3a Great Heats and no Breeze ; so that there was no stirring abroad, except in the Evening for 76 ADVENTURES OF Food; this Time I spent in putting all my Things in Order within Doors. January i. Very hot still, but I went abroad early and late with my Gun, and la!y still in the middle of the Day ; this Evening going farther into the Valleys which lay towards the Center of the Island, I found there was plenty of Goats, tho' exceeding shy and hard to come at, however I resolv'd to try if I could not bring my Dog to hunt them down. Jan. 2. Accordingly, the next Day, I went out with my Dog, and set him upon the Goats ; but I was mis- taken, for they all fac'd about upon the Dog, and he knew his Danger too well, for he would not come near them. Jan. 3. I began my Fence or Wall; which, being still jealous of my being attack'd by some Body, I re- solv'd to make very thick and strong. N. B. This Wall being descriVd before, I pur- posely omit what was said in the Journal; it is stiffi-cient to observe, that I was no less Time than from the ■yd of January to the 14th of April, working, finishing and perfeiiing this Wall, thd it was no more than about 24 Yards in Length, being a half Circle from one Place in the Rock to another Place about eight Yards from it, the Door of the Cave being in the Center behind it. All this Time I work'd very hard, the Rains hindering me many Days, nay, sometimes Weeks together ; but I thought I should never be perfeflly secure 'till this Wall was finish'd ; and it is scarce credible what inexpressible Labour every Thing was done with, especially the bring- ing Piles out of the Woods, and driving them into the Ground, for I made them much bigger than I need to have done. When this Wall was finished, and the Out-side double fenc'd with a Turf- Wall rais'd up close to it, I perswaded my self that if any People were to come on ROBINSON CRUSOE. 77 Shore there, they would not perceive any Thing like a Habitation; and it was very well I did so, as may be observ'd hereafter upon a very remarkable Occasion. During this Time, I made my Rounds in the Woods for Game every Day when the Rain admitted me, and made frequent Discoveries in these Walks of something or other to my Advantage ; particularly I found a kind of wild Pidgeons, who built not as Wood Pidgeons in a Tree, but rather as House Pidgeoils, in the Holes of the Rocks ; and taking some young ones, I endeavoured to breed them up tame, and did so; but when they grew older they flew all away, which perhaps was at first for Want of feeding them, for I had nothing to give them ; however I frequently found their Nests, and got their young ones, which were very good Meat. And now in the managing my Houshold Affairs, I found my self wanting in many Things, which I thought at first it was impossible for me to make, as indeed as to some of them it was ; for Instance, I could never make a Cask to be hoop'd, I had a small Runlet or two, as I observ'd before, but I cou'd never arrive to the Capacity of making one by them, tho' I spent many Weeks about it ; I could neither put in the Heads, or joint the Staves so true to one another, as to make them hold Water, so I gave that also over. In the next Place, I was at a great Loss for Candle; so that as soon as ever it was dark, which was generally by Seven-a-Clock, I was oblig'd to go to Bed : I remem- bred the Lump of Bees-wax with which I made Candles in my African Adventure, but I had none of that now ; the only Remedy I had, was, that when I had kill'd a Goat, I sav'd the Tallow, and with a little Dish made of Clay, which I bak'd in the Sun, to which I added a Wick of some Oakum, I made me a Lamp ; and this gave me Light, tho' not a clear steady Light like a Candle ; in the Middle of all my Labours it happen'd, that rumaging my Things, I found a little Bag, which, as I hinted before had been fiU'd with Corn for the feeding of Poultry, not 78 ADVENTURES OF for this Voyage, but before, as I suppose, when the Ship came from Lisbon, what little Remainder of Corn had been in the Bag, was all devour'd with the Rats, and I saw nothing in the Bag but Husks and Dust ; and being willing to have the Bag for some other Use, I think it was to put Powder in, 'when I divided it for fear of 'the Lightning, or some such Use, I shook the Husks of Corn out of it on one Side of my Fortification under the Rock. It was a little befcfre the great Rains, just now men- tion'd,'that I threw this Stuff away, taking no Notice of any Thing, and not so much as remembring that I had thrown any Thing there ; when about a Month after, or thereabout, I saw some few Stalks of something green shooting out of the Ground, which I fancy'd might be some Plant I had not seen, but I was surpriz'd and per- feftly astonish' d, when after a little longer Time, I saw about ten or twelve Ears come out, which were perfeifl green Barley of the same Kind as our European, nay, as our English Barley. It is impossible to express the Astonishment and Con- fusion of my Thoughts on this Occasion ; I had hitherto afted upon no religious Foundation at all ; indeed I had very few Notions of Religion in my Head, or had enter- tain'd any Sense of any Thing that had befallen me, otherwise than as a Chance, or, as we lightly say, what pleases God; without so much as enquiring into the End of Providence in these Things, or his Order in governing Events in the World ; But afterT saw Barley grow there, in a Climate which I know was not proper for Corn, and especially that I knew not how it came there, it startled me strangely, and I began to suggest, that God had mira- culously caus'd this Grain to grow without any help of Seed sown, and that it was so direfted purely for my Sus- tenance on that wild miserable Place. This touch'd my Heart a httle, and brought Tears out of my Eyes, and I began to bless my self, that such a Prodigy of Nature should happen upon my Account; and this was the more strange to me, because I saw near ROBINSON CRUSOE. 79 it still all along by the side of the Rock, some other strag- gling Stalks, which prov'd to be Stalks of Rice, and which I knew, because I had seen it grow in Africa, when I was ashore there. I not only thought these the pure Produflions of Pro- vidence for my Support, but not doubting, but that there was more in the Place, I went all over that part of the Island, where I had been before peering in every Corner, and under every Rock, to see for more of it, but I could not find any ; atr last it occur'd to my Thoughts, that I had shook a Bag of Chickens Meat out in that Place, and then the Wonder began to cease ; and I must confess, my religious Thankfulness to God's Providence began to abate too upon the Discovering that all this was nothing but what was common ; tho' I ought to have been as thankful for so strange and unforeseen Providence, as if it had been miraculous ; for it was really the Work of Providence as to me, that should order or appoint, that 10 or 12 Grains of Corn should remain unspoil'd (when the Rats had destroyed all the rest,) as if it had been dropt from Heaven ; as also that I should throw it out in that particular Place, where it being in the Shade of a high Rock, it sprang up immediately ; whereas, if I had thrown it any where else at that time, it had been burnt up and destroyed. I carefully sav'd the Ears of this Corn, you may be sure, in their Season, which was about the End of June; and laying up every Corn, I resolv'd to sow them all again, hoping in time to have some Quantity sufficient to supply me with Bread ; but it was not till the 4th Year that I could allow myself the least Grain of this Corn to eat, and even then but sparingly, as I shall say afterwards in its Order ; for I lost all that I sow'd the first Season, by not observing the proper Time ; for I sow'd it just before the dry Season, so that it never came up at all, at least, not as it would ha' done : Of which in its Place. Besides this Barley, there was, as above, 20 or 30 Stalks of Rice, which I preserv'd with the same Care, 8o ADVENTURES OF and whose Use was of the same Kind or to the same Purpose, iyiz) to make me Bread, or rather Food ; for I found ways to cook it up without baking, tho' I did that also after some time. But to return to my Journal. I work'd excessive hard these three or four Months to get my Wall done ; and the 14th of April I closed it up, contriving to go into it, not by a Door, but over the Wall by a Ladder, that there might be no Sign in the Outside of my Habitation. April 16. I finish'd the Ladder, so I went up with the Ladder to the Top, and then puli'd it up after me, and let it down on the Inside : This was a compleat Enclosure to me ; for within I had Room enough, and nothing could come at me from without, unless it could first mount my Wall. The very next Day after this Wall was finished, I had almost had all my Labour overthrown at once, and my self kill'd ; the Case was thus : As I was busy in the In- side of it, behind my Tent, just in the Entrance into my Cave, I was terribly frighted with a most dreadfiil surpriz- ing Thing indeed ; for all on a sudden I found the Earth come crumbling down from the Roof of my Cave, and from the Edge of the Hill over my Head, and two of the Posts I had set up in the Cave crack'd in a frightful manner: I was heartily scared, but thought nothing of what was really the Cause, only thinking that the top of my Cave was falling in, as some of it had done before ; and for fear I shou'd be bury'd in it, I ran forward to my Ladder, and not thinking my self safe there neither, I got over my Wall for fear of the Pieces of the Hill which I expedled might roll down upon me: I was no sooner stept down upon the firm Ground, but I plainly saw it was a terrible Earthquake, for the Ground I stood on shook three times at about eight Minutes distance, with three such Shocks, as would have overturned the strongest Building that could be suppos'd to have stood on the Earth ; and a great Piece of the Top of a Rock, which stood about half a Mile from me next the Sea, fell ROBINSON CRUSOE. 8i down with such a terrible Noise, as I never heard in all my Life: I perceiv'd also, the very Sea was put into violent Motion by it; and I believe the Shocks were stronger under the Water than on the Island. I was so amaz'd with the Thing itself, having never felt the like, or discoursed with any one that had, that I was like one dead or stupify'd ; and the Motion of the Earth made my Stomach sick, like one that was toss'd at Sea; but the Noise of the falling of the Rock awak'd me, as it were, and rousing me from the stupified Condition I was in, fill'd me with Horror, and I thought of nothing then but the Hill falling upon my Tent and all my Household Goods, and burying all at once ; and this sunk my very Soul within me a second time. After the third Shock was over, and I felt no more for some Time, I began to take Courage, and yet I had not Heart enough to go over my Wall again, for fear of being buried alive, but sat still upon the Ground, greatly cast down and disconsolate, not knowing what to do : All this while I had not the least serious religious Thought, no- thing but the common, Lord hoC Mercy -upon mej and when it was over, that went away too. While I sat thus, I found the Air over-cast, and grow cloudy, as if it would rain ; soon after that the Wind rose by little and little, so that in less than half an Hour it blew a most dreadful Hurricane: The Sea was all on a sudden covered over with Foam and Froth, the Shore was cover'd with the Breach of the Water, the Trees were torn up by the Roots, and a terrible Storm it was ; and this held about three Hours, and then began to abate, and in two Hours more it was stark calm, and began to rain very hard. All this while I sat upon the Ground very much ter- rify'd and dejeifled, when on a sudden it came into my Thoughts, that these Winds and Rain being the Con- sequences of the Earthquake, the Earthquake it self was spent and over, and I might venture into my Cave again : With this Thought my Spirits began to revive, and the R. C. 6 82 ADVENTURES OF Rain also helping to perswade me, I went in and sat down in my Tent, but the Rain was so violent, that my Tent was ready to be beaten down with it, and I was forc'd to go into my Cave, tho' very much afraid and imeasy for fear it should fall on my Head. This violent Rain forc'd me to a new Work, -viz. To cut a Hole thro' my new FortificatioiTlSie a Sink to let tlie Water go out, which would else have drown'd my Cave. After I had been in my Cave some time, and found still no more Shocks of the Earthquake follow, I began to be more compos'd; and now to support my Spirits, which indeed wanted it very much, I went to my little Store and took a small Sup of Rum, which however I did then and always very sparingly, knowing I could have no more when that was gone. It continu'd raining all that Night, and great Part of the next Day, so that I could not stir abroad, but my Mind being more compos'd, I began to think of what I had best do, concluding that if the Island was subjeft to these Earthquakes, there would be no living for me in a Gave, but I must consider of building me some little Hut in an open Place which I might surround with a Wall as I had done here, and so make my self secure from wild Beasts or Men; but concluded, if I staid where I was, I should certainly, one time or other, be bury'd alive. With these Thoughts I resolv'd to remove my Tent from the Place where it stood, which was just under the hanging Precipice of the Hill, and which, if it should be shaken again, would certainly fall upon my Tent : And I spent the two next Days, being the 19th and 20th of April, in contriving where and how to remove my Habi- tation. The fear of being swallow'd up alive, made me that I never slept in quiet, and yet the Apprehension of lying abroad without any Fence was almost equal to it; but still when I look'd about and saw how every thing was put in order, how pleasantly conceal'd I was, and how safe from Danger, it made me very loth to remove. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 83 In the mean time it occurr'd to me that it would re- quire a vast deal of time for me to do this, and that I must be contented to run the Venture where I was, till I had form'd a Camp for my self, and had secured it so as to remove to it • So with this Resolution I compos'd my self for a time, and resolv'd that I would go to work with all Speed to build me a Wall with Piles and Cables, dr^c. in a Circle as before, and set my Tent up in it when it was finish' d, but that I would venture to stay where I was till it was finish'd and fit to remove to. This was the 2 1 St. April 22. The next Morning I began to consider of Means to put this Resolve in Execution, but I was at a great loss about my Tools ; I had three large Axes and abundance of Hatchets, (for we carried the Hatchets for TrafHck with the Indians) but with much chopping and cutting knotty hard Wood, they were all full of Notches and dull, and tho' I had a Grindstone, I could not turn it and grind my Tools too ; this cost me as much Thought as a Statesman would have bestow'd upon a grand Point of Politicks, or a Judge upon the Life and Death of a Man. At length I contriv'd a Wheel with a String, to turn it with my Foot, that I might have both my Hands at Liberty: Note, I had never seen any such thing in England, or at least not to take notice howit was done, tho' since I have observ'd it is very common there ; be- sides that, my Grind-stone was very large and heavy. This Machine cost me a full Week's Work to bring it to Perfedlion. April 28, 29. These two whole Days I took up m grinding my Tools, my Machine for turning my Grind- stone performing very well. April 30. Having perceiv'd my Bread had been low a great while, now I took a Survey of it, and reduc'd my- self to one Bisket-cake a Day, which made my Heart very heavy. , , r, • •, May I. In the Morning looking towards the Sea-side, the Tide being low, I saw something lie on the Shore 6 — 2 84 ADVENTURES OF bigger than ordinary, and it look'd like a Cask; when I came to it, I found a small Barrel, and two or three Pieces of the Wreck of the Ship, which were driven on Shore by the late Hurricane ; and looking towards the Wreck itself, I thought it seem'd to lie higher out of the Water, than it us'd to do; I examin'd the Barrel which was driven on Shore, and soon found it was a Barrel of Gun-powder, jiut it had taken Water, and the Powder was cak'd as hard as a Stone; however I roU'd it farther on Shore for the present, and went on upon the Sands as near as I could to the Wreck of the Ship to look for more. When I came down to the Ship I found it strangely remov'd ; the Fore-castle, which lay before bury'd in Sand, was heav'd up at least six Foot ; and the Stern, which was broke to Pieces and parted from the rest by the Force of the Sea soon after I had left rummaging her, was toss'd, as it were, up, and cast on one Side, and the Sand was thrown so high on that side next her Stern, that whereas there was a great Place of Water before, so that I could not come within a Quarter of a Mile of the Wreck with- out swimming, I could now walk quite up to her when the Tide was out ; I was surpriz'd with this at first, but soon concluded it must be done by the Earthquake : And as by this ViGlence the Ship was more broken open than formerly, so many Things came daily on Shore, which the Sea had loosen'd, and which the Winds and Water rolled by degrees to the Land. This wholly diverted my Thoughts from the Design of removing my Habitation ; and I busied myself mightily that Day especially, in searching whether I could make any way into the Ship ; but I found nothing was to be ex- pected of that Kind, for that all the In-side of the Ship was choak'd up with Sand ; However, as 1 had learn'd not to despair of any Thing, I resolv'd to pull every Thing to Pieces that I could of the Ship, concluding, that every Thing I could get from her would be of some Use or other to me. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 85 May 3. I began with my Saw, and cut a Piece of a Beam thro', which I thought held some, of the upper Part or Quarter-Deck together, and when I had cut it thro', I clear'd away the Sand as well as I could from the Side which lay highest ; but the Tide coming in, I was obliged to give over for that Time. May 4. I went a fishing, but caught not one Fish that I durst eat of, till I was weary of my Sport ; when just going to leave off, I caught a young Dolphin. I had made me a long Line of some Rope Yarn, but I had no Hooks, yet I frequently caught Fish enough, as much as I car'd to eat; all which I dry'd in the Sun, and eat them dry. May 5. Work'd on the Wreck, cut another Beam asunder, and brought three great Fir Planks off from the Decks, which I ty'd together, and made swim on Shore, when the Tide of Flood came on. May 6. Work'd on the Wreck, got several Iron Bolts out of her, and other Pieces of Iron-work, work'd very hard, and came Home very much tir'd, and had Thoughts of giving it over. May 7. Went to the Wreck again, but with an Intent not to work, but found the Weight of the Wreck had broke itself down, the Beams being cut, that several Pieces of the Ship seem'd to lie loose, and the In-side of the Hold lay so open, that I could see into it, but almost full of Water and Sand. May 8. Went to the Wreck, and carry'd an Iron Crow to wrench up the Deck, which lay now quite clear of the Water or Sand ; I wrench'd open two Planks, and brought them on Shore also with the Tide : I left the Iron Crow in the Wreck for next Day. May 9. Went to the Wreck, and with the Crow made Way into the Body of the Wreck, and felt several Casks, and loosen'd them with the Crow, but could not break them up ; I felt also the roll of English Lead, and could stir it, but it was too heavy to remove. May 10, II, 12, 13, I4i Went every Day to the Wreck, 86 ADVENTURES OF and got a great deal of Pieced of Timber, and Boards, or Plank, and 2 or 300 Weight of Iron. May 15. J carry'd two Hatchets to try if I could not cut a Piece off of the Roll of Lead, by placing the Edg6 of one Hatchet, and driving it with the other ; but as it lay about a Foot and a half in the Water, I could not inake any Blow to drive the Hatchet. May 16. It had blow'd hard in the Night, and the Wreck appear'd more broken by the Force of the Water ; but I staid so long in the Woods to get Pidgeons for Food, that the Tide prevented me going to the Wreck that Day. May 1 7. I saw some Pieces of the Wreck blown on Shore, at a great Distance, near two Miles oflf me, but resolv'd to see what they were, and found it was a Piece" of the Head, but too heavy for me to bring away. May 24. Every Day to this Day I work'd on the Wreck, and with hard Labour I loosen'd some Things so much with the Crow, that the first blowing Tide several Casks floated out, and two of the Seamens Chests ; but the Wind blowing from the Shore, nothing came to Land that Day, but Pieces of Timber, and a Hogshead which had some Brazil Pork in it, but the Salt-water and the Sand had spoil'd it. I continu'd this Work every Day to the 15th oijune, except the Time necessary to get Food, which I always appointed, during this Part of my Employment, to be when the Tide was up, that I might be ready when it was ebb'd out, and by this Time I had gotten Timber, and Plank, and Ironwork enough, to have buildedagood Boat, if I had known how ; and also, I got at several Times, and in several Pieces, near 100 Weight of the Sheet- Lead. June 16. Going down to the Sea-side, I found a large Tortoise or Turtle; this was the first I had seen,- which it seems was only my Misfortune, not any Defefl' of the Place, or Scarcity ; for had I happen'd to be on the other Side of the Island, I might have had Hundreds KOBINSON CRUSOE. 87 of them every Day, as I found afterwards ; but perhaps had paid dear enough for them. June 17. I spent in cooking the Turtle; I found in her threescore Eggs; and her Flesh was to me at that Time the most savoury and pleasant that ever I tasted in my Life, having had no Flesh, but of Goats and Fowls, since I landed in this, horrid Place. June 18. Rain'd all Day, and I stay'd within. I thought at this Time the Rain felt Cold, and I was something chilly, which I knew was not usual in that Latitude. June ig. Very ill, and shivering, as if the Weather had been cold. June 20. No Rest all Night, violent Pains in my Head, and feverish. June 21. Very ill, frighted almost to Death with the Apprehensions of my sad Condition, to be sick, and no Help; Pray'd to GOD for the first Time since the Storm off of Hull, but scarce knew what 1 said, or why ; my Thoughts being all confused. June 22. A little better, but under dreadful Appre- hensions of Sickness. June 23. Very bad again, cold and shivering, and then a violent Head-ach. June 24. Much better. June 25. An Ague very violent ; the Fit held me seven Hours, cold Fit and hot, with faint Sweats after it. June 26. Better ; and having no Victuals to eat, took my Gun, but found my self very weak ; however I kill'd a She-Goat, and with much Difficulty got it Home, and broil'd some of it, and eat ; I wou'd fain have stew'd it, and made some Broth, but had no Pot. June 27. The Ague again so violent, that I lay a-Bed all Day, and neither eat or drank. I was ready to perish for Thirst, but so weak, I had not Strength to stand up, or to get my self any Water to drink : Pray'd to God again, but was light-headed, and when I was not, I was so igno- rant, that I knew not what to say; only I lay and cry'd, 88 ADVENTURES OF Lord look upon me. Lord pity me, Lord have Mercy upon me; I suppose I did nothing else for two or three Hours, till the Fit wearing off, I fell asleep, and did not wake tUl far in the Night ; when I wak'd, I found my self much re- fresh' d, but weak, and exceeding thirsty: However, as I had no Water in my whole Habitation, I was forc'd to lie till Morning, and went to sleep again: In this second Sleep, I had this terrible Dream. I thought, that I was sitting on the Ground on the Out-side of my Wall, where I sat when the Storm blew — after the Earthquake, and that I saw a Man descend from "" a great black Cloud, in a bright Flame of Fire, and light)(i^ upon the Ground: He was all over as bright as a Flame, so that I could but just bear to look towards him ; his Countenance was most inexpressibly dreadful, impossible for Words to describe ; when he stepp'd upon the Ground with his Feet, I thought the Earth trembl'd, just as it had done before in the Earthquake, and all the Air look'd, to my Apprehension, as if it had been fiU'd with Flashes of Fire. He was no sooner landed upon the Earth, but he mov'd forward towards me, with a long Spear or Weapon in his Hand, to kill me; and when he came to a'rising Ground, at some Distance, he spoke to me, or I heard a Voice so terrible, that it is impossible to express the Ter- ror of it ; all that I can say I understood was this, Seeing ' all these Things have not brought thee to Repentance, now thou shall die : At which Words, I thought he lifted up the Spear that was in his Hand to kill me. No one, that shall ever read this Account, will expeft that I should be able to describe the Horrors of my Soul at this terrible Vision, I mean, that even while it was a Dream, I even dreamed of those Horrors ; nor is it any more possible to describe the Impression that remain'd upon my Mind, when I awak'd, and found it was bui a Dream. I had alas! no divine Knowledge; what I had re- ceiv'd by the good Instruiflion of my Father was then ROBINSON CRUSOE. 89 worn out by an uninterrupted Series, for 8 Years, of seafaring Wickedness, and a constant Conversation with nothing but such as were like my self, wicked and pro- phane to the last Degree : I do not remember that I had in all that Time one Thought that so much as tended either to looking upwards toward God, or inwards towards a Refleflion upon my own Ways : But a certain Stupidity of Soul, without Desire of Good, or Conscience of Evil, had entirely overwhelm'd me, and I was all that the most hardened, unthinking, wicked Creature among our com- mon Sailors can be suppos'd to be, not having the least Sense, either of the fear of God. in Danger, or of Thank- fulness to God in Deliverances. In the relating what is already past of my Story, this will be the more easily believ'd, when I shall add, that thro' all the Variety of Miseries that had to this Day befallen me, I never had so much as one Thought of it being the Hand of God, or that it was a just Punish- ment for my Sin ; my rebellious Behaviour against my Father, or my present Sins which were great ; or so much as a Punishment for the general Course of my wicked Life. When I was on the desperate Expedition on the desert Shores of Africa, I never had so much as one Thought of what would become of me ; or one Wish to God to diredl me whither I should go, or to keep me from the Danger which apparently surrounded me, as well from voracious Creatures as cruel Savages : But I was meerly thoughtless of a God, or a Providence ; adled like a meer Brute from the Principles of Nature, and by the Dictates of common Sense only, and indeed hardly that. When I was deliver'd and taken up at Sea by the Portugal Captain, well us'd, and dealt justly and honour- ably with, as well as charitably, I had not the least Thank- fulness on my Thoughts : When again I was shipwreck'd, ruin'd, and in danger of drowning on this Island, I was as far from Remorse, or looking on it as a Judgment ; I only said to my self often, that I was an unfortunate Dog, and born to be always miserable. 90 ADVENTURES OF It is true, when I got on Shore first here, and found all my Ship's Crew drown'd, and my self spar'd, I was sur- priz'd with a kind of Extasy, and some Transports of Soul, which, had the Grace of God assisted, might have come up to true Thankfulness; but it ended where it begun, in a meer common Flight of Joy, or, as I may say, being glad I was alive, without the least Refledlion upon the distinguishing Goodness of the Hand which had pre- serv'd me, and had singled me out to be preserv'd, when all the rest were destroy" d ; or an Enquiry why Providence had been thus merciful to me ; even just the same common sort of Joy which Seamen generally have after they are got safe ashore from a Shipwreck, which they drown all in the next Bowl of Punch, and forget almost as soon as it is over, and all the rest of my Life was like it. Even when I was afterwards, on due Consideration, made sensible of my Condition, how I was cast on this dreadful Place, out of the Reach of humane Kind, out of all Hope of Relief, or Prospeft of Redemption, as soon as I saw but a Prospedl of living, and that I should not starve and perish for Hunger, all the Sense of my Afiflic- tion wore off, and I begun to be very easy, apply'd myself to the Works proper for my Preservation and Supply, and was far enough from being afflifled at my Condition, as a Judgment from Heaven, or as the Hand of God against me ; these were Thoughts which very seldom enter'd into my Head. The growing up of the Corn, as is hinted in my Jour- nal, had at first some little Influence upon me, and began to affefl me with Seriousness, as long as I thought it had something miraculous in it ; but as soon as ever that Part of the Thought was remov'd, all the Impression which was rais'd from it, wore off also, as I have noted already. Even the Earthquake, tho' nothing could be more ter- rible in its Nature, or more immediately diredling to the invisible Power, which alone diredls such things, yet no sooner was the first Fright over, but the Impression it had made went off also. I had no more Sense of God or his ROBINSON CRUSOE. 91 'Judgments,' much less of the present Affliftioh of my Circumstances being from his Hand, than if I had been in the most prosperous Condition of Life. But now when I began to be sick, and a leisurely View of the Miseries of Death came to place itself before me ; when my Spirits began to sink under the Burthen of a strong Distemper, and Nature was exhausted with the Violence of the Fever ; Conscience that had slept so long, begun to awake, and I began to ireproach my^self with my past Life, in which I had so evidently, by uncommon Wickedness, provok'd the Justice of God to lay me under ( uncommon Strokes, and to deal with me in so vindiftive a nianner; These Refleftions oppress'd me for the second or third Day of my Distemper, and in the Violence, as well of the Fever, as of the dreadful Reproaches of my Conscience^ extorted some Words from me, like praying to God, tho' I cannot say they were either a Prayer attended with De- sires or with Hopes ; it was rather the Voice of meer Fright and Distress; my Thoughts were confus'd, the Conviflions great upon my Mind, and the Horror of dying in such a miserable Condition rais'd Vapours into my Head with the meer Apprehensions; and in these Hurries of my Soul, I know not what my Tongue might express ; but it was rathejr Exclamation, such as. Lord! what a miserable Creature am I! If I should be sick, T shall certainly die for Want of Help, and what will become of ine ? Then the Tears burst out of my Eyes, and I could say no more for a good while. In this Interval, the good Advice of my Father came to my Mind, and presently his Prediftion which I men- tioned at the Beginning of this Story, viz. That if I did take this foolish Step, God would not bless me, and I would have leisure hereafter to refle6l upon having neg- leiled his Counsel, when there might be none to assist in my Recovery. Now, said I aloud, My dear Father's Words are come to pass : God's Justice has overtaken me, ftnd I have none to help or hear me : I rejefled the Voice 92 ADVENTURES OF of Providence, which had mercifully put me in a Posture or Station of Life, wherein I might have been happy and easy ; but I would neither see it my self, or learn to know the Blessing of it from my Parents ; I left them to mourn over my Folly, and now I am left to mourn under the Consequences of it : I refus'd their Help and Assistance who wou'd have lifted me into the World, and wou'd have made every thing easy to me, and now I have Difficulties to struggle with, too great for even Nature itself to support, and no Assistance, no Help, no Comfort, no Advice: Then I cry'd out. Lord be my Help, for I am in great Distress. This was the first Prayer, if I may call it so, that I had made for many Years : But I return to my Journal. June 28. Having been somewhat refresh'd with the Sleep I had had, and the Fit being entirely off, I got up ; and tho' the Fright and Terror of my Dream was very great, yet I consider'd, that the Fit of the Ague wou'd re- turn again the next Day, and now was my Time to get something to refresh and support my self when I should be ill ; and the first Thing I did, I fill'd a large square Case Bottle with Water, and set it upon my Table, in Reach of my Bed; and to take off the chill or aguish Disposition of the Water, I put about a Quarter of a Pint of Rum into it, and mix'd them together ; then 1 got me a Piece of the Goat's Flesh, and broil'd it on the Coals, but could eat very little ; I walk'd about, but was very weak, and withal very sad and heavy-hearted in the Sense of my miserable Condition; dreading the Return of my Distemper the next Day; at Night I made my Supper of three of the Turtle's Eggs, which I roasted in the Ashes, and eat, as we call it, in the Shell ; and this was the first Bit of Meat I had ever ask'd God's Blessing to, even as 1 cou'd re- member, in my whole Life. After I had eaten, I try'd to walk, but found myself so weak that I cou'd hardly carry the Gun, (for I never went out without that) so I went but a little Way, and sat down upon the Ground, looking out upon the Sea, which was ROBINSON CRUSOE. 93 just before me, and very calm and smooth: As I sat here, some such Thoughts as these occurred to me. What is this Earth and Sea of which I have seen so much, whence is it produc'd, and what am I, and all the other Creatures, wild and tame, humane and brutal, whence are we ? Sure we are all made by some secret Power, who form'd the Earth and Sea, the Air and Sky ; and who is that ? Then it follow'd most naturally, It is God that has made it all : Well, but then it came on strangely, if God has made all these Things, He guides and governs them all, and all Things that concern them ; for the Power that could make all Things, must certainly have Power to guide and diredl them. If so, nothing can happen in the great Circuit of his Works, either without his Knowledge or Appointment. And if nothing happens without his Knowledge, he knows that I am here, and am in this dreadful Condition ; and if nothing happens without his Appointment, he has appointed all this to befal me. Nothing occurr'd to my Thoughts to contradifl any of these Conclusions ; and therefore it rested upon me with the greater Force, that it must needs be, that God had appointed all this to befal me ; that I was brought to this miserable Circumstance by his Direiflion, he having the sole Power, not of me only, but of every Thing that hap- pen'd in the World. Immediately it follow'd. Why has God done this to me ? What have I done to be thus us' df My Conscience presently check'd me in that Enquiry, as if I hadblasphem'd, and methought it spoke to me like a Voice; WRETCH ! dost thou ask what thou hast done! look back upon a dreadful mis-spent Life, and ask thy self what thou hastiiot done f ask. Why is it that thou wert not long ago destro/d? Why wert thou not drown' d in Yarmouth Roads ? KiWd in the Fight when the Ship was taken by the Sallee Man of War? Devoured by the 54 ADVENTURES OF wild Beasts on the Coast of Africa ? Or, Drowned HERE when all the Crew perisKd but thy self? Dost thou ask, What have I done ? I was struck dumb with these Refleflions, as one astonish'd, and had not a Word to say, no not to answer to my self, but rose up pensive and sad, walk'd back to my Retreat, and went up over my Wall, as if I had been going to Bed, but my Thoughts were sadly disturb'd, and I had no Inclination to Sleep ; so I sat down in my Chair, and lighted my Lamp, for it began to be dark: Now as the Apprehension of the Return of my Distem- per terrify'd me very much, it occur'd to my Thought, that the Brasilians take no Physick but their Tobacco for almost all Distempers ; and I had a Piece of a Roll of Tobacco in one of the Chests, which was quite cur'd, and some also that was green and not quite cur'd. I went, direfted by Heaven no doubt; for in this Chest I found a Cure both for Soul and Body, I open'd the Chest, and found what I look'd for, viz. the Tobacco ; and as the few Books, I had sav'd, lay there too, I took out one of the Bibles which I mention'd before, and which to this Time I had not found Leisure, or so much as Inclination to look into ; I say, I took it out, and brought both that and the Tobacco with me to the Table. What Use to make of the Tobacco, I knew not, as to my Distemper, or whether it was good for it or no ; but I try'd several Experiments with it, as if I was resolv'd it should hit one Way or other: I first took a Piece of a Leaf, and chew'd it in my Mouth, which indeed at first almost stupify'd my Brain, the Tobacco being green and strong, and that I had not been much us'd to it ; then I took some and steep'd it an Hour or two in some Rum, and resolv'd to take a Dose of it when I lay down ; and lastly, I burnt some upon a Pan of Coals, and held my Nose close over the Smoke of it as long as I could bear it, as well for the Heat as almost for Suffocation. In the Interval of this Operation, I took up the Bible and began to read, but my Head was too much disturb'd ROBINSON CRUSOE. 95 with the Tobacco to bear reading, at least that Time; only having open'd the Book casually, the first Words that occurr'd to me were these, Call on me in the Day of Trouble, and I •will deliver, and thou shalt glorify me. The Words were very apt to my Case, and made some Impression upon my Thoughts at the Time of reading them, tho' not so much as they did afterwards ; for as for being deliver'd, the Word had no Sound, as I may say, to me ; the Thing was so remote, so impossible in my Apprehension of Things, that I began to say as- the Children of Israel did, when they were promis'd Flesh to eat. Can God spread a Table in the Wilderness? so I began to say, Can God himself deliver me from this Place? and as it was not for many Years that any Hope appear'd, this prevail'd very often upon my Thoughts: But however, the Words made a great Impression upon me, and I mused upon them very often. It grew now late, and the Tobacco had, as I said, doz'd my Head so much, that I inclin'd to sleep ; so I left my Lamp burn- ing in the Cave, lest I should want any Thing in the Night, and went to Bed; but before I lay down, I did what I never had done in all my Life, I kneel'd down and pray'd to God to fulfil the Promise to me, that if I call'd upon him in the Day of Trouble, he would deliver me; after my broken and imperfedl Prayer was over, I drunk the Rum in which I had steep'd the Tobacco, which was so strong and rank of the Tobacco, that in- deed I could scarce get it down ; immediately upon this I went to Bed, I found presently it flew up in my Head violently, but I fell into a sound Sleep, and wak'd no more, 'till by the Sun it must necessarily be near Three a-Clock in the Afternoon the next Day; nay, to this Hour I'm partly of the Opinion, that I slept all the next Day and Night, and till almost three that Day after; for otherwise I knew not how I should lose a Day out of my Reckoning in the Days of the Week, as it appear'd some Years after I had done ; For if I had lost it by crossing and recrossing the Line, I should have lost more than 96 ADVENTURES OF one Day : But certainly I lost a Day in my Accompt, and never knew which Way. Be that however one Way or th' other, when I awak'd I found my self exceedingly refresh'd, and my Spirits lively and cheerful ; when I got up, I was stronger than I was the Day before, and my Stomach better, for I was hungry; and in short, I had no Fit the next Day, but continu'd much alter'd for the better ; this was the 29th. The 30th was my Well-day of course, and I went abroad with my Gun, but did not care to travel too far. I kill'd a Sea-Fowl or two, something like a Brand-Goose, and brought them Home, but was not very forward to eat them; so I eat some more of the Turtle's Eggs, which were very good : This Evening I renew'd the Me- dicine which I had suppos'd did me good the Day before, viz. the Tobacco steep'd in Rum, only I did not take so much as before, nor did I chew any of the Leaf, or hold my Head over the Smoke ; however, I was not so well the next Day, which was the first of July, as I hop'd I shou'd have been ; for I had a little Spice of the cold Fit, but it was not much. July 2. I renew'd the Medicine all the three Ways, and doz'd my self with it as at first ; and doubled the Quantity which I drank. 3. I miss'd the Fit for good and all, tho' I did not recover my full Strength for some Weeks after: While I was thus gathering Strength, my Thoughts run exceed- ingly upon this Scripture, / will deliver thee; and the Impossibility of my Deliverance lay much upon my Mind in Bar of my ever expedling it : But as I was discouraging my self with such Thoughts, it occur'd to my Mind, that I pored so much upon my Deliverance from the main Affliftion, that I disregarded the Deliverance I had receiVd; and I was, as it were, made to ask my self such Questions as these, viz. Have I not been deliver'd, and wonderfully too, from Sickness? from the most distressed Condition that could be, and that was so frightful to me, and what Notice I had taken of it: Had I done my Part, ROBINSON CRUSOE. 97 God had delivered me; but I had not glorified him; that is to say, I had not own'd and been thankful for that as a Deliverance, and how could I expeft greater Deliverance? This touch'd my Heart very much, and immediately I kne^l'd down, and gave God Thanks aloud for my Re- covery from my Sickness. July 4. In the Morning I took the Bible, and be- ginning at the New Testament, I began seriously to read it, and impos'd upon my self to read awhile every Morn- ing and every Night, not tying myself to the Number of Chapters, but as long as my Thoughts should engage me : It was not long after I set seriously to this Work, but I found my Heart more deeply and sincerely affefled with the Wickedness of my past Life: The Impression of my Dream reviv'd, and the Words, All these things have not brought thee to Repentance, ran seriously in my Thought: I was earnestly begging of God to give me Repentance, when it happen'd providentially the very Day that reading the Scripture, I came to these Words, He is exalted a Prince and a Saviour, to give Repentance, and to give Reinission : I threw down the Book, and with my Heart as well as my Hands lifted up to Heaven, in a Kind of Extasy of Joy, I cry'd out aloud, Jesus, thou Son of David, Jesus, thpu exalted Prince and Saviour, give me Repentance 1 This was the first Time that I could say, in the true Sense of the Words, that I pray'd in all my Life ; for now I pray'd with a Sense of my Condition, and with a true Scripture View of Hope founded on the Encouragement of the Word of God ; and from this Time, I may say, I began to have Hope that God would hear me. Now I began to construe the Words mentioned above. Call on me, and I will deliver you, in a different Sense from what I had ever done before; for then I had no Notion of any thing being call'd Deliverance, but my being deliver'd from the Captivity I was in ; for tho' I was in- deed at large in the Place, yet the Island was certainly a Prison to me, and that in the worst Sense in the World; R. C. 7 98 .ADVENTURES OF ' but now I learn'd to take it in_ another Sense : Now I look'd back upon my past Life with such Horror, and my Sins appear'd so dreadful, that my Soul sought nothing of God, but Deliverance from the Load of Guilt that bore down all my Comfort : As for my solitary Life it was no- thing; I did not so much as pray to be deliver'd from it, or think of it ; it was all of no Consideration in Com- parison to this ; And I add this Part here, to hint to whoever shall read it, that whenever they come to a true Sense of things, they will find Deliverance from Sin a much greater Blessing, than Deliverance from Afflidlion. But leaving this Part, I return to my Journal. My Condition began now to be, tho' not less miserable as to my Way of living, yet much easier to my Mind ; and my Thoughts being direfted, by a constant reading the Scripture, and praying to God, to things of a higher Na- ture ; I had a great deal of Comfort within, which till now I knew nothing of ; also, as my Health and Strength re- turned, I bestir'd my self to furnish my self with every thing that I wanted, and make my Way . of living as regular as I could. From the 4th of July to the 14th, I was chiefly em- ploy'd in walking about with my Gun in my Hand, a little and a little at a Time, as a Man that was gathering up his Strength after a Fit of Sickness : For it is hardly to. be imagin'd, how low I was, and to what Weakness I was reduc'd. The Application which I made use of was per- feflly new, and perhaps what had never cur'd an Ague before, neither can I recommend it to any one to pradlise, by this Experiment ; and tho' it did carry off the Fit, yet it rather contributed to weakening me ; for I had frequent Convulsions in my Nerves and Limbs for some Time. I learnt from it also this in particular, that being abroad in the rainy Season was the most pernicious thing to my Health that could be, especially in those Rains which came attended with Storms and Hurricanes of Wind ; for as the Rain which came in the dry Season was always most accompany'd with such Storms, so I found ROBINSON CRUSOE. 99 that Rain was much more dangerous than the Rain which fell in September and 0£lober. I had been now in this unhappy Island above 10 Months, all Possibility of Deliverance from this Condition seem'd to be entirely taken from me ; and I firmly believ- ed, that no humane Shape had ever set Foot upon that Place: Having now secur'd my Habitation, as I thought, fully to my Mind, I had a great Desire to make a more perfefl Discovery of the Island, and to see what other Produftions I might find, which I yet knew nothing of. It was the 15th of yuly thai I began to take a more particular Survey of the Island it self: I went up the Creek first, where, as I hinted, I brought my Rafts on Shore ; I found after I came about two Miles up, that the Tide did not flow any higher, and that it was no more than a little Brook of running Water, and very fresh and good; but this being the dry Season, there was hardly any Water in some Parts of it, at least, not enough to run in any Stream, so as it could be perceiv'd. On the Bank of this Brook I found many pleasant Savanas, or Meadows, plain, smooth, and cover'd with Grass ; and on the rising Parts of them next to the higher Grounds, where the Water, as it might be supposed, never overflow'd, I found a great deal of Tobacco, green, and growing to a great and very strong Stalk; there were divers other Plants which I had no Notion of, or Under- standing about, and might perhaps have Virtues of their own, which I could not find out. I searched for the Cassava Root, which the Indians in all that Climate make their Bread of, but I could find none. I saw large Plants of Aloes, but did not then un- derstand them. I saw several Sugar Canes, but wild, and for want of Cultivation, imperfedl. I contented my self with these Discoveries for this Time, and came back musing with my self what Course I might take to know the Virtue and Goodness of any of the Fruits or Plants which I should discover ; but could bring it to no Conclu- sion ; for in short, I had made so little Observation while 7—2 loo ADVENTURES OF I was in the Brasils, that I knew little of the Plants in the Field, at least very little that might serve me to any Pur- pose now in my Distress. The next Day, the 1 6th, I went up the same Way again, and after going something farther than I had gone the Day before, I found the Brook, and the Savanas began to CM.se, and the Country became more woody than before ; in this Part I found different Fruits, and particu- larly I found Melons upon the Ground in great Abundance, and Grapes upon the Trees ; the Vines had spread indeed over the Trees, and the Clusters of Grapes were just now in their Prime, very ripe and rich : This was a surprising Discovery, and I was exceeding glad of them ; but I was warn'd by my Experience to eat sparingly of them, re- membring, that when I was ashore in Barbary, the eating of Grapes kill'd several of our English Men who were Slaves there, by throwing them into Fluxes and Fevers : But I found an excellent Use for these Grapes, and that was to cure or dry them in the Sun, and keep them as dry'd Grapes or Raisins are kept, which I thought would be, as indeed they were, as wholesome as agreeable to eat, when no Grapes might be to be had. I spent all that Evening there, and went not back to my Habitation, which by the way was the first Night, as I might say, I had lain from Home. In the Night I took my first Contrivance, and got up into a Tree, where I slept well, and the next Morning proceeded upon my Discovery, travelling near four Miles, as. I might judge by the Length of the Valley, keeping still due North, with a Ridge of Hills on the South and North- sideof me. At the End of this March I came to an Opening, where the Country seem'd to descend to the West, and a little Spring of fresh Water, which issued out of the Side of the Hill by me, run the other way, that is due East ; and the Country appear'd so fresh, so green, so flourishing, every thing being in a constant Verdure, or Flourish of Spring, that it look'd like a planted Garden. I descended a little on the Side of that delicious Vale, ROBINSON CRUSOE. loi surveying it with a secret Kind of Pleasure, (tlio' mixt with my other afflidling Thoughts) to think that this was all, my own, that I was King and Lord of all this Country indefeasibly, and had a Right of Possession; and if I could convey it, I might have it in Inheritance, as compleatly as any Lord of a Manor in England. I saw here Abun- dance of Cocoa Trees, Orange, and Lemon, and Citron Trees; but all wild, and very few bearing any Fruit, at least not then : However, the green Limes that I gathered, were not only pleasant to eat, but very wholesome ; and I mix'd their Juice afterwards with Water, which made it very wholesome, and very cool, and refreshing. I found now I had Business enough to gather and carry Home ; and I resolv'd to lay up a Store, as well of Grapes, as Limes and Lemons, to furnish my self for the wet Season, which I knew was approaching. In order to this, I gather'd a great Heap of Grapes in one Place, and a lesser Heap in another Place, and a great Parcel of Limes and Lemons in another Place ; and taking a few of each with me, I travell'd homeward, and resolv'd to come again, and bring a Bag or Sack, or what I could make to carry the rest Home. Accordingly, having spent three Days in this Journey, I came Home; so I must now call my Tent and my Cave : But before I got thither, the Grapes were spoil'd, the Richness of the Fruits, and the Weigljt of the Juice having broken them, and bruis'd them, they were good for little or nothing; as to the Limes, they were good, but I could bring but a few. The next Day, being the 19th, I went back, having made me two small Bags to bring Home my Harvest: But I was surpriz'd, when coming to my Heap of Grapes, which were so rich and fine when I gather'd them, I found them all spread about, trod to Pieces, and drag'd about, some here, some there, and Abundance eaten and devour'd: By this I concluded, there were some wild Creatures thereabouts, which had done this; but what they were I knew not. 102 ADVENTURES OF However, as I found that there was no laying them up on Heaps, and no carrying them away in a Sack, but that one Way they would be destroy'd, and the other way they would be crush'd with their own Weight; I took another Course; for I gather'd a large Quantity of the Grapes, and hung them up upon the out Branches of the Trees, that they might cure and dry in the Sun ; and as for the Limes and Lemons, I carry'd as many back as I could well stand under. When I came Home from this Journey, I contem- plated with great Pleasure the Fruitfulness of that Valley, and the Pleasantness of the Situation, the Security from Storms on that Side the Water, and the Wood, and con- cluded, that I had pitch' d upon a Place to fix my Abode, which was by far the worst Part of the Country. Upon the whole I began to consider of removing my Habita- tion ; and to look out for a Place equally safe, as where I now was situate, if possible, in that pleasant fruitful Part of the Island. This Thought run long in my Head, and I was exceed- ing fond of it for some Time, the Pleasantness of the Place tempting me ; but when I came to a nearer View of it, and to consider that I was now by the Sea-Side, where it was at least possible that something might happen to my Advantage, and by' the same ill Fate that brought me hither, might bring some other unhappy Wretches to the same Place ; and tho' it was scarce probable that any such Thing should ever happen, yet to enclose myself among the Hills and Woods, in the Center of the Island, was to anticipate my Bondage, and to render such an Affair not only improbable, but impossible; and that therefore I ought not by any Means to remove. However, I was so enamour'd of this Place, that I spent much of my Time there for the whole remaining Part of the Month of July; and tho' upon second Thoughts I resolv'd as above, not to remove, yet I built me a little kind of a Bower, and surrounded it at a Distance with a strong Fence, being a double Hedge, as high as 1 could ROBINSON CRUSOE. 103 reach, well stak'd, and filPd between with Brushwood; and here I lay very secure, sometimes two or three Nights together, always going over it with a Ladder, as before ; so that I fancy'd now I had my Country House, and my Sea-Coast- House: And this Work took me up to the Beginning of /ia_g-Kj/. I had but newly finish'd my Fence, and began to enjoy my Labour, but the Rains came on, and made me stick close to my first Habitation; for tho' I had made me a Tent like the other, with a Piece of a Sail, and spread it very well ; yet I had not the Shelter of a Hill to keep me from Storms, nor a Cave behind me to retreat into, when the Rains were extraordinary. About the beginning of August, as I said, I had finish'd my Bower, and began to enjoy myself. The third oi August, I found the Grapes I had hung up were per- feftly dry'd, and, indeed, were excellent good Raisins of the Sun ; so I began to take them down from the Trees, and it was very happy that I did so ; for the Rains which foUow'd would have spoil'd them, and I had lost the best Part of my Winter Food ; for I had above two hundred large Bunches of them. No sooner had I taken them all down, and carry'd most of them Home to my Cave, but it began to rain, and from hence, which was the fourteenth oi August, it rain'd more or less, every Day, till the Middle of Oiloberj and sometimes so violently, that I could not stir out of toy Cave for several Days. In this Season I was much surpriz'd with the Increase of my Family ; I had been concern'd for the Loss of one of my Cats, who run away from me, or as I thought had been dead, and I heard no more Tale or Tidings of her, till to my Astonishment she came Home about the End oi August, with three Kittens. This was the more strange to me, because tho' I had kill'd a wild Cat, as I call'd it, with my Gun ; yet I thought it was a quite differing Kind from our European Cats; yet the young Cats were the same Kind of House breed like the old one ; and both my Cats being Females, I thought it very strange: But from IC4 ADVENTURES OF these three Cats, I afterwards came to be so pester'd with Cats, that I was forc'd to kill them hke Vermin, or wild Beasts, and to drive them from my House as much as possible. From the fourteenth of August to the twenty sixth, incessant Rain, so that I could not stir, and was now very careful not to be much wet. In this Confinement I began to be straitned for Food, but venturing out twice, I one Day kill'd a Goat, and the last Day, which was the twenty sixth, found a very large Tortoise, which was a Treat to me, and my Food was regulated thus ; I eat a Bunch of Raisins for my Breakfast, a Piece of the Goat's Flesh, or of the Turtle for my Dinner broil'd; for to my great Misfortune, I had no Vessel to boil or stew any Thing; and two or three of the Turtle's Eggs for my Supper. During this Confinement in my Cover by the Rain, I work'd daily two or three Hours at enlarging my Cave, and by Degrees work'd it on towards one Side, till I came to the Outside of the Hill, and made a Door or Way out, which came beyond my Fence or Wall, and so I came in and out this Way ; but I was not perfeflly easy at lying so open ; for as I had manag'd myself before, I was in a perfedl Enclosure, whereas now I thought I lay expos'd, and open for any Thing to come in upon me ; and yet I could not perceive that there was any living Thing to fear, the biggest Creature that I had yet seen upon the Island being a Goat. September the thirtieth, I was now come to the un- happy Anniversary of my Landing. I cast up tlie Notches on my Post, and found I had been on Shore three hun- dred and sixty five Days. I kept this Day as a Solemn Fast, setting it apart to Religious Exercise, prostrating myself on the Ground with the most serious Humiliation, confessing my Sins to God, acknowledging his Righteous Judgments upon me, and praying to him to have Mercy on me, through Jesus Christ; and having not tasted the least Refreshment for twelve Hours, even till the going ROBINSON CRUSOE. 105 down of the Sun, I then eat a Bisket Cake, and a Bunch of Grapes, and went to Bed, finishing tlie Day as I be- gan it. I had all this Time observ'd no Sabbath-Day ; for as at first I had no Sense of Religion upon my Mind, I had after some Time omitted to distinguish the Weeks, by making a longer Notch than ordinary for the Sabbath- Day, and so did not really know what any of the Days were ; but now having cast up the Days, as above, I found I had been there a Year ; so I divided it into Weeks, and set apart every seventh Day for a Sabbath; though I found at the End of my Account I had lost a Day or two in my Reckoning. A little after this my Ink began to fail me, and so I contented myself to use it more sparingly, and to write down only the most remarkable Events of my Life, with- out continuing a daily Memorandum of other Things. The rainy Season, and the dry Season, began now to appear regular to me, and I learnt to divide them so, as to provide for them accordingly. But I bought all my Experience before I Had it ; and this I am going to relate, was one of the most discouraging Experiments that I made at all ; I have mentio^j'd that I had sav'd the few Ears of Barley and Rice, which I had so surprizingly found spring up, as I thought, of themselves, and believe there were about thirty Stalks of Rice, and about twenty of Barley ; and now I thought it a proper Time to sow it after the Rains, the Sun being in its Southern Position going from me. Accordingly I dug up a Piece of Ground aS well as I could with my wooden Spade, and dividing it into two Parts, I sow'd my Grain ; but as I was sowing, it casually occur'd to my Thoughts, That I would not sow it all at first, because I did not know when was the proper Time for it ; so I sow'd about two Thirds of the Seed, leaving about a Handful of each. It was a great Comfort to me afterwards, that I did so, for not one Grain of that I sow'd this Time came to io5 ADVENTURES OF any Thing; for the dry Months following, the Earth having had no Rain after the Seed was sown, it had no Moisture to assist its Growth, and never came up at all, till the wet Season had come again, and then it grew as if it had been but newly sown. Finding my first Seed did not grow, which I easily imagin'd was by the Drought, I sought for a moister Piece of Ground to make another Trial in, and I dug up a Piece of Ground near my new Bower, and sow'd the rest of my Seed in February, a little before the Vernal Equinox; and this having the rainy Months of March and April to water it, sprung up very pleasantly, and yielded a very good Crop ; but having Part of the Seed left only, and not daring to sow all that I had, I had but a small Quantity at last, my whole Crop not amounting to above half a Peck of each kind. But by this Experiment I was made Master of my Business, and knew exaflly when the proper Season was to sow; and that I might expedl two Seed Times, and two Harvests every Year. "While this Corn was growing, T made a little Dis- covery which was of Use to me afterwards ; As soon as' the Rains were over, and fhe Weather began to settle, which was about the Month of November, I made a Visit up the Country to my Bower, where though I had not been some Months, yet I found all Things just as I left them. The Circle or double Hedge that I had made, was not only firm and entire ; but the Stakes which I had cut out of some Trees that grew thereabouts, were all shot out and grown with long Branches, as much as a Willow- Tree usually shoots the first Year after lopping its Head. I could not tell what Tree to call it, that these Stakes were cut from. I was surpriz'd, and yet very well pleas'd, to see the young Trees grow ; and I prun'd them, and led them up to grow as much alike as I could; and it is scarce credible how beautiful a Figure they grew into in three Years; so that though the Hedge made a Circle of about twenty five Yards in Diameter, yet the Trees, for ROBINSON CRUSOE. 107 such I might now call them, soon cover'd it ; and it was a compleat Shade, sufficient to lodge under all the dry Season. This made me resolve to cut some more Stakes, and make me a Hedge like this in a Semicircle round my Wall; I mean that of my first Dwelling, which I did; and placing the Trees or Stakes in a double Row, at about eight Yards distance from my first Fence, they grew presently, and were at first a fine Cover to my Habitation, and afterward serv'd for a Defence also, as I shall observe in its Order. I found now, That the Seasons of the Year might generally be divided, not 'into Sttmmcr and Winter, as in Europej but into the Rainy Seasons, and the Dry Seasons, which were generally thus : j^ , ^' 1 Rainy, the Sun being then on, or near ^^MAjril' ] ^"^^ Equinox. Half April, May, yune, July, Half August, Half August, Dry, the Sun being then to the North of the Line. >-Rainy, the Sun being then come back. Dry, the Sun being then to the South of the line. Half October, Half Oaober, November, December, January, Half February, The Rainy Season sometimes held longer or shorter, as the Winds happen'd to blow ; but this was the general Observation I made : After I had found, by Experience, the ill Consequence of being abroad in the Rain, I took care to furnish my self with Provisions before hand, that I might not be oblig'd to go out ; and I sat within Doors as much as possible during the wet Months. io8 ADVENTURES OF In this Time I found much Employment, (and very- suitable also to the Time) for I found great Occasion of many Things which I had no way to furnish my sel( with, but by hard Labour and constant Application^ particu- larly, I try'd many Ways to make my self a Basket, but all the Twigs I could get for the Purpose prov'd so brit- tle, that they would do nothing. It proved of excellent Advantage to me now. That when I was a Boy, I used to take great Delight in standing at a Basket-maker's in the Town where my Father liv'd, to see them make their Wicker-ware; and being, as Boys usually are, very officious to help, and a great Observer of the Manner how they work'd those Things, and sometimes lending a Hand, I had by this Means full Knowledge of the Methods of it, that I wanted nothing but the Materials ; when it came into my Mind, That the Twigs of that Tree from whence I cut my Stakes that grew, might possibly be as tough as the Sallows, and Willows, and Osiers in England, and I resolv'd to try. Accordingly the next Day I went to my Country- House, as I call'd it, and cutting some of the smaller Twigs, I found them to my Purpose as much as I could desire; whereupon I came the next Time prepar'd with a Hatchet to cut down a Quantity, which I soon found, for there was great Plenty of them ; these I set up to dry within my Circle or Hedge, and when they were fit for Use, I carried them to my Cave, and here during the next Season I employ'd my self in making, as well as I could, a great many Baskets, both to carry Earth, or to carry or lay up any Thing as I had occasion ; and tho' I did not finish them very handsomly, yet I made them sufficiently serviceable for my Purpose; and thuS afterwards I took Care never to be without them ; and as my Wicker-ware decay'd, I made more, especially, I made strong deep Baskets to place my Corn in, instead of Sacks, when I should come to have any Quantity of it. Having master'd this Difficulty, and employ'd a World of Time about it, I bestir'd my self to see if possible hov/ ROBINSON CRUSOE. 109 to supply two Wants : I had no Vessels to hold any Thing that was Liquid, except two Runlets which were almost full of Rum, and some Glass Bottles, some of the common Size, and others which were Case-Bottles square, for the holding of Waters, Spirits, dr'c. I had not so much as a Pot to boil any Thing, except a great Kettle, which I sav'd out of the Ship, and which was too big for such Use as I desir'd it, viz. to make Broth, and stew a Bit of Meat by it self. The Second Thing I would fain have had, was a Tobacco-Pipe ; but it was impossible to me to make one, however I found a Contrivance for that too at last. I employ'd myself in Planting my Second Rows of Stakes or Piles, and in this Wicker working all the Summer, or dry Season, when another Business took me up more Time than it could be imagin'd I could spare. I mention'd before. That I had a great Mind to see the whole Island, and that I ha(d travell'd up the Brook, and so on to where I built my Bower, and where I had an Opening quite to the Sea on the other Side of the Island; I now resolv'd to travel quite cross to the Sea-Shore on that Side ; so taking my Gun, a Hatchet, and my Dog, and a larger Quantity of Powder and Shot than usual, with two Bisket Cakes, and a great Bunch of Raisins in my Pouch for my Store, I began my Journey ; when I had pass'd the Vale where my Bower stood as above, I came within View of the Sea, to the West, and it being a very clear Day, I fairly descry'd Land, whether an Island or a Continent, I could not tell ; but it lay very high, extending ^rom the West, to. the W.S.W. at a very great Distance; lay my Guess it could not be less than Fifteen or Twenty Leagues off. . I could not tell what Part of the World this might be, otherwise than that I know it must be part oi America, and as I concluded by all my Observations, must be near the Spanish Dominions, and perhaps was all inhabited by Savages, where if I should have landed, I had been in a worse Condition than I was now; and therefore I acqui- no ABVENTURES OF esced in the Dispositions of Providence, which I began now to own, and to believe, order'd every Thing for the best ; I say, I quieted my Mind with this, and left afflift- ing myself with fruitless Wishes of being there. Besides, after some Pause -upon this Affair, I corisider'd, that if this Land was the Spanish Coast, I should cer- tainly, one Time or other, see some Vessel pass or re-pass one Way or other; but if not, then it was the Savage Coast between the Spanish Country and Brasils, which are indeed the worst, of Savages; for they are Cannibals, or Men-eaters, and fail not to murther and devour all the humane Bodies that fall into their Hands. With these Considerations I walk'd very leisurely forward. I found that Side of the Island where 1 now was much pleasanter than mine, the open or Savana Fields sweet, adorn'd with Flowers and Grass, and full of very fine Woods. I saw Abundance of Parrots, and fain I would have caught one, if possible to have kept it to be tame, and taught it to speak to me. I did, after some Pains taking, catch a young Parrot, for I knock'd it down with a Stick, and having recover'd it, I brought it home ; but it was some Years before I could make him speak: However, at last I taught him to call me by my Name very familiarly: But the Accident that follow'd, tho' it be a Trifle, will be very diverting in its Place. I was exceedingly diverted with this Journey: I found in the low Grouflds Hares, as I thought them to be, and Foxes, but they differ'd greatly from all the other Kinds I had met with ; nor could I satisfy myself to eat them, tho' I kili'd several : But I had no need to be venturous ; for I had no Want of Food, and of that which was very good too; especially these three Sorts, viz. Goats, Pidgeons, and Turtle or Tortoise; which, added to my Grapes, Leaden-hall Market could not have furnish'd a Table better than I, in Proportion to the Company ; and tho' my Case was deplorable enough, yet I had great Cause for Thank- fulness, and that I was not driven to any Extremities for Food ; but rather Plenty, even to Dainties. ROBINSON CRUSOE. in I never travell'd in this Journey above two Miles outright in a Day, or thereabouts: but I took so many Turns and Returns, to see what Discoveries I could make, that I came weary enough to the Place where I resolved to sit down for all Night; and then I either repos'd myself in a Tree, or surrounded my self with a Row of Stakes set upright in the Ground, either from one Tree to another, or so as no wild Creature could come at me, without waking me. As soon as I came to the Sea Shore, I was surprized to see that I had taken up my Lot on the worst side of the Island; for here indeed the Shore was cover'd with innumerable Turtles, whereas on the other side I had found but three in a Year and half Here was also an infinite number of Fowls, of many Kinds, some which I had seen, and some which I had not seen of before, and many of them very good Meat; but such as I knew not the Names of, except those call'd Penguins. I could have shot as many as I pleas'd, but was very sparing of my Powder and Shot ; and therefore had more Mind to kill a She-Goat, if I could, which I could better feed on; and though there were many Goats here more , than on my Side the Island, yet it was with much more Difficulty that I could come near them, the Country being flat and even, and they saw me much sooner than when I was on the Hill. I confess this Side of the Country was much pleasanter than mine, but yet I had not the least Inclination to remove; for as I was fix'd in my Habitation, it became natural to me, and I seem'd all the while I was here, to be as it were upon a Journey, and from Home: However, I travell'd along the Shore of the Sea, towards the East, I suppose about twelve Miles ; and then setting up a great Pole upon the Shore for a Mark, I concluded I would go Home again ; and that the next Journey I took should be on the other Side of the Island, East from my Dwelling, and so round till I came to my Post again : Of which in its Place. 112 ADVENTURES OF I took another Way to come back than that I went, thinking I could easily keep all the Island so much in my View, that I could not miss finding my first Dwelling by viewing the Country ; but I found my self mistaken ; for being come about two or three Miles, I found my self de- scended into a very large Valley ; but so surrounded with Hills, and those Hills covered with Wood, that I could not see which was my Way by any Direflion but that of the Sun, nor even then, unless I knew very well the Position of the Sun at that Time of the Day. It happened to my farther Misfortune, That the Wea- ther prov'd hazey for three or four Days, while I was in this Valley; and not being able to see the Sun, I wander'd about very uncomfortably, and at last was obliged to find out the Sea Side, look for my Post, and come back the same Way I went; and then by easy Journies I turn'd Homeward, the Weather being ex- ceeding hot, and my Gun, Ammunition, Hatchet, and other Things very heavy. In this Journey my Dog surpriz'd a young Kid, and seiz'd upon it, and I running in to take hold of it, caught it, and sav'd it alive from the Dog: I had a great mind to bring it Home if I could ; for I had often been musing, Whether it might not be possible to get a Kid or two, and so raise a Breed of tame Goats, which might supply me when my Powder and Shot should be all spent. I made a Collar to this little Creature, and with a String which I made of some Rope-Yarn, which I always carry'd about me, I led him along, tho' with some Diffi- culty, till I came to my Bower, and there I enclos'd him, and left him; for I was very impatient to be at Home, from whence I had been absent above a Month. I cannot express what a Satisfaflion it was to me, to come into my old Hutch, and lye down in my Hammock- Bed : This little wandring Journey, without settled Place of Abode, had been so unpleasant to me, that my own House, as I call'd it to my self, was a perfedl Settlement to me, compar'd to that; and it rendered every Thing ROBII^SON CRUSOE. 113 about me so comfortable, that I resolv'd I would never go a great Way from it again, while it should be my Lot to stay on the Island. I repos'd my self here a Week, to rest and regale my self after my long Journey; during which, most of the Time was taken up in the weighty Affair of making a Ca^e for my Poll, who began now to be a meer Domestick, and to be mighty well acquainted with me. Then I began to think of the poor Kid, which I had penn'd in within my little Circle, and resolv'd to go and fetch it Home, or give it some Food ; accordingly I went, and found it where I left it ; for indeed it could not get out, but almost starv'd for want of Food : I went and cut Bows of Trees, and Branches of such Shrubs as I could find, and threw it over, and having fed it, I ty'd it as I did before, to lead it away ; but it was so tame with being hungry, that I had no need to have ty'd it; for it follow'd me like a Dog ; and as I continually fed it, the Creature became so loving, so gentle, and so fond, that it became from that Time one of my Domesticks also, and would never leave me afterwards. The rainy Season of the Atitumnal Equinox was now come, and I kept the 30th of September in the same solemn Manner as before, being the Anniversary of my Landing on the Island, having now been there two Years, and no more Prospedl of being delivered than the first Day I came there. I spent the whole Day in humble and thankful Acknowledgments of the many wonderful Mercies which my Solitary Condition was attended with, and without which it might have been infinitely more miser- able. I gave humble and hearty Thanks that God had been pleased to discover to me, even that it was possible I might be more happy in this Solitary Condition, than I should have been in a Liberty of Society, and in all the Pleasures of the World. That He could fully make up to me the Deficiencies of my Solitary State, and the want of Humane Society, by his Presence, and the Communica- tions of his Grace to my Soul, supporting, comforting, and R.C. 8 114 ADVENTURES OF encouraging me to depend upon his Providence here, and hope for his Eternal Presence hereafter. It was now that I began sensibly to feel how much more happy this Life I now led was, with all its miserable Circumstances, than the wicked, cursed, abominable Life I led all the past Part of my Days ; and now I chang'd both my Sorrows and my Joys ; my very Desires filter' d, my Affedlions chang'd their Gusts, and my Delights were perfedlly new, from what they were at my first Coming, or indeed for the two Years past. Before, as I walk'd about, either on my Hunting, or for viewing the Country, the Anguish of my Soul at my Con- dition, would break out upon me on a sudden, and my very Heart would die within me, to think of the Woods, the Mountains, the Desarts I was in ; and how I was a Prisoner lock'd up with the Eternal Bars and Bolts of the Ocean, in an uninhabited Wilderness, without Redemp- tion : In the midst of the greatest Composures of my Mind, this would break out upon me like a Storm, and make me wring my Hands, and weep like a Child: Sometimes ' it would take me in the middle of my Work, and I would immediately sit down and sigh, and look upon the Ground for an Hour or two together ; and this was still worse to me ; for if I could burst out into Tears, or vent my self by Words, It would go off, and the Grief having exhausted it self, would abate. But now I began to exercise my self with new Thoughts ; I daily read the Word of God, and apply'd all the Comforts of it to my present State. One Morning being very sad, I open'd the Bible upon these Words, / will never, never leave thee, nor forsake thee; immediately it occur'd. That these Words were to me. Why else should they be diredled in such a Manner, just at the Moment when I was mourning over my Condition, as one forsaken of God and Man? Well then, said I, if God does not forsake me, of what ill Consequence can it be, or what matters it, though the World should all forsake me, seeing on the other hand, if I had all the World, and' ROBINSON CRUSOE. 115 should lose the Favour and Blessing of God, there wou'd be no Comparison in the Loss. From this Moment I began to conclude in my Mind, That it was possible for me to be more happy in this for- saken Solitary Condition, than it was probable I should ever have been in any other Particular State in the World; and with this Thought I was going to give Thanks to God for bringing me to this Place. I know not what it was, but something shock'd my Mind at that Thought, and I durst not speak the Words : How canst thou be such a Hypocrite, (said I, even audibly) to pretend to be thankful for a Condition, which however thou may'st endeavour to be contented with, thou would'st rather pray heartily to be deliver'd from ; so I stopp'd there: But though I could not say, I thank'd God for being there ; yet I sincerely gave Thanks to God for opening my Eyes, by whatever afflifling Providences, to see the former Condition of my Life, and to mourn for my Wickedness, and repent. I never open'd the Bible, or shut it, but my very Soul within me bless'd God for diredling my Friend in England, without any Order of mine, to pack it up among my Goods ; and for assisting me afterwards to save it out of the Wreck of the Ship. Thus, and in this Disposition of Mind, I began my third Year; and tho' I have not given the Reader the Trouble of so particular Account of my Works this Year as the first; yet in General it may be observ'd, That I was very seldom idle; but having regularly divided my Time, according to the several daily Em- ployments that were before me, such as, First, My Duty to God, -and the Reading the Scriptures, which I con- stantly set apart some Time for thrice every Day. Secondly, The going Abroad with my Gun for Food, which generally took me up three Hours in every Morn- ing, when it did not Rain. Thirdly, The ordering, curing, preserving, and cooking what I had kill'd or catch'd for my Supply; these took up great Part of the Day: also it is to be considered that the middle of the Day when the ii6 ADVENTURES OF Sun was in the Zenith, the Violence of the Heat was too great to stir out ; so that about four Hours in the Evening was all the Time I could be suppos 'd to Work in ; with this Exception, That sometimes I chang'd my Hours of Hunting and Working, and went to work in the Morning, and Abroad with my Gun in the Afternoon. To this short Time allow'd for Labour, I desire may be added the exceeding Laboriousness of my Work; the many Hours which for want of Tools, want of Help, and want of Skill, every Thing I did took up out of my Time : For Example, I was full two and forty Days making me a Board for a long Shelf, which I wanted in my Cave; whereas two Sawyers with their Tools, and' a Saw-Pit, would have cut six of them out of the same Tree in half a Day. My Case was this. It was to be a large Tree, which was to be cut down, because my Board was to be a broad one. This Tree I was three Days a cutting down, and two more cutting off the Bows, and reducing it to a Log, or Piece of Timber. With inexpressible hacking and hewing I reduc'd both the Sides of it into Chips, till it begun to be light enough to move ; then I turn'd it, and made one Side of it smooth, and flat, as a Board from End to End; then turning that side downward, cut the other Side, till I brought the Plank to be about three Inches thick, and smooth on both Sides. Any one may judge the Labour of my Hands in such a piece of Work; but Labour and Patience carry'd me through that and many other Things : I only observe this in Particular, to shew the Reason why so much of my Time went away with so little Work, viz. That what might be a little to be done with Help and Tools, was a vast Labour, and re- quir'd a prodigious Time to do alone, and by hand. But notwithstanding this, with Patience and Labour I went through many Things ; and indeed every Thing that my Circumstances made necessary to me to do, as will appear by what follows. I was now, in the Months oi November z.nA. December, ROBINSON CRUSOE. 117 expefling my Crop of Barley and Rice. The Ground I had manur'd or dug up for them was not great ; for as I observ'd, my Seed of each was not above the Quantity of half a Peck ; for I had lost one whole Crop by sowing in the dry Season; but now my Crop promis'd very well, when on a sudden I found I was in Danger of losing it all again by Enemies of several Sorts, which it was scarce possible to keep from it ; as First, The Goats, and wild Creatures which I call'd Hares, who tasting the Sweetness of the Blade, lay in it Night and Day, as soon as it came up, and eat it so close, that it could get no Time to shoot up into Stalk. This I saw no Remedy for, but by making an En- closure about it with a Hedge, which I did with a great deal of Toil ; and the more, because it requir'd Speed. However, as my Arable Land was but small, suited to my Crop, I got it totally well fenc'd, in about three Weeks Time ; and shooting some of the Creatures in the Day- time, I set my Dog to guard it in the Night, tying him up to a Stake at the Gate, where he would stand and bark all Night long ; so in a little Time the Enemies forsook the Place, and the Corn grew very strong, and well, and began to ripen apace. But as the Beasts ruined me before, while my Corn was in the Blade ; so the Birds were as likely to mine me now, when it was in the Ear ; for going along by the Place to see how it throve, I saw my little Crop surrounded with Fowls of I know not how many Sorts, who stood as it were watching till I should be gone : I immediately let fly among them (for I always had my Gun with me) I had no sooner shot but there rose up a httle Cloud of Fowls, which I had not seen at all, from among the Corn it self. This touch'd me sensibly, for I foresaw, that in a few Days they would devour all my Hopes, that I should be starv'd, and never be able to raise a Crop at all, and what to do I could not tell : However, I resolv'd not to lose my " Corn, if possible, tho' I should watch it Night and Day. In the first Place, I went among it to see what -Damage n8 ADVENTURES OF was already done, and found they had spoil'd a good deal of it, but that as it was yet too green for them, the Loss was not so great, but that the Remainder was like to be a, good Crop if it could be sav'd. I staid by it to load my Gun, and then coming away I could easily see the Thieves sitting upon all the Trees about me, as if they only waited till I was gone away, and the Event proved it to be so ; for as I walk'd off as if I was gone, I was no sooner out of their Sight, but they dropt down one by one into the Corn again. I was so provok'd that I could not have Patience to stay till more came on, knowing that every Grain that they eat now,' was, as it might be said, a Peck-loaf to me in the Conse- quence ; but coming up to the Hedge, I fir'd again, and kill'd three of them. This was what I wish'd for; so I took them up, and serv'd them as we serve notorious Thieves in England, {viz.) Hang'd them in Chains for a Terror to others. It is impossible to imagine almost, that this should have such an Effeft as it had ; for the Fowls wou'd not only not come at the Corn, but in short they forsook all that Part of the Island, and I could never see a Bird near the Place as long as my Scare-Crows hung there. This I was very glad of, you may be sure, and about the latter end of December, which was our second Harvest of the Year, I reap'd my Crop. I was sadly put to it for a Scythe or a Sickle to cut it down, and all I could do was to make one as well as I could out of one of the broad Swords or Cutlasses, which I sav'd among the Arms out of the Ship. However, as my first Crop was but small, I had no great Difficulty to cut it down ; in short, I reap'd it my Way, for I cut no- thing off but the Ears, and carry'd it away in a great Basket which I had made, and so rubb'd it out with my Hands ; and at the End of all my Harvesting, I found that out of my half Peck of Seed, I had near two Bushels of Rice, and above two Bushels and half of Barley, that is, to say, by my Guess, for I had no Measure at that time. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 119 However, this was a great Encouragement to me ; and I foresaw that in time, it would please God to supply me with Bread: And yet here I was perplex'd again, for I neither knew how to grind or make Meal of my Corn, or indeed how to clean it and part it ; nor if made into Meal, how to make Bread of it ; and if how to make it, yet I knew not how to bake it ; these things being added to my Desire of having a good Quantity for Store, and to secure a constant Supply, I resolv'd not to taste any of this Crop, but to preserve it all for Seed against the next Season, and in the mean time to employ all my Study and Hours of Working tp accomplish this great Work of Providing my self with Com and Bread. It might be truly said, that now I work'd for my Bread : 'tis a little wonderful, and what I believe few People have thought much upon, {viz.) the strange multitude of little Things necessary in the Providing, Producing, Curing, Dressing, Making and Finishing this one Article of Bread. I that was reduced to a meer State of Nature, found this to my Daily Discouragement, and was made more and more sensible of it every Hour, even after I had got the first Handful of Seed-Corn, which, as I have said, came up unexpeftedly, and indeed to a surprize. First, I had no Plow to turn up the Earth, no Spade or Shovel to dig it. Well, this I conquer'd, by making a wooden Spade, as I observ'd before ; but this did my Work in but a wooden manner, and tho' it cost me a great many Days to make it, yet for want of Iron it not only wore out the sooner, but made my Work the harder, and made it be perform'd much worse. However, this I bore with, and was content to work it out with Patience, and bear with the badness of the Per- formance. When the Corn was sow'd, I had no Harrow, but was forced to go over it my self, and drag a great heavy Bough of a Tree over it, to Scratch it, as it may be call'd, rather than Rake or Harrow it. When it was growing and grown, I have observ'd already, how many Things I wanted, to Fence it, Secure I20 ADVENTURES OF it, Mow or Reap it. Cure and Carry it Home, Thrash, Part it from the Chaff, and Save it. Then I wanted a Mill to Grind it. Sieves to Dress it. Yeast and Salt to make it into Bread, and an Oven to bake it; and yet all these things I did without, as shall be observ'd; and yet the Corn was an inestimable Comfort and Advantage to me too. All this, as I said, made every thing laborious and tedious to me, but that there was no help for; neither was my Time so much Loss to me, because as I had divided it, a certain Part of it was every Day appointed to these Works; and as I resolv'd to use none of the Corn for Bread till 1 had a greater Quantity by me, I had the next six Months to apply my self wholly by Labour and Inven- tion to furnish my self with Utensils proper for the per- forming all the Operations necessary for the making the Corn (when I had it) fit for my use. But first, I was to prepare more Land, for I had now Seed enougji to sow above an Acre of Ground. Before I did this, I had a Weeks-work at least to make me a Spade,' which when it was done was but a sorry one indeed, and very heavy, and requir'd double Labour to work with it ; however I went thro' that, and sow'd my Seed in two large flat Pieces of Ground, as near my House as I could find them to my Mind, and fenc'd them in with a good Hedge, the Stakes of which were all cut of that Wood which I had set before, and knew it would grow, so that in one Year's time I knew I should have a Quick or Living-Hedge, that would want but little Repair. This Work was not so little as to take me up less than three Months, because great Part of that time was of the wet Season, when I could not go abroad. Within Doors, that is, when it rained, and I could not go out, I found Employment on the following Occasions ; always observing, that all the while I was at work I diverted my self with talking to my Parrot, and teaching him to Speak ; and I quickly learn'd him to know his own Name, and at last to speak- it out pretty loud, POLL, which was the first Word I ever heard spoken in ROBINSON CRUSOE. 121 the Island by any Mouth biit my own. This therefore was not my Work, but an assistant to my Work ; for now, as I said, I had a great Employment upon my Hands, as follows, {viz.) I had long study'd by some Means or other, to make my self some Earthen Vessels, which indeed I wanted sorely, but knew not where to come at them: However, considering the Heat of the Climate, I did not doubt but if I could find out any such Clay, I might botch up some such Pot, as might, being dry'd in the Sun, be hard enough, and strong enough to bear handling, and to hold any Thing that was dry, and requir'd to be kept so ; and as this was necessary in the preparing Corn, Meal, fir-'i:. which was the Thing I was upon, I resolved to make some as large as I could, and fit only to stand like Jarrs to hold what should be put into them. It would make the Reader pity me, or rather laugh at me, to tell how many awkward Ways I took to raise this Paste, what odd mishapen ugly things I made, how many of them fell in, and how many fell out, the Clay not being Stiff enough to bear its own Weight ; how many crack'd by the over violent Heat of the Sun, being set out too hastily ; and how many fell in pieces with only removing, as well before as after they were dry'd ; and in a word, how after having laboured hard to find the Clay, to dig it, to temper it, to bring it home and work it ; I could not make above two large earthen ugly things, I cannot call them Jarrs, in about two Months Labour. However, as the Sun bak'd these two very dry and hard, I lifted them very gently up, and set them .down again in two great Wicker Baskets which I had made on purpose for them, that they might not break; and as between the Pot and the Basket there was a little room to spare, I stuff'd it full of the Rice and Barley Straw, and these two Pots being to stand always dry, I thought would hold my dry Corn, and perhaps- the Meal, when the Corn was bruised. Tho' I miscarried so much in my Design for large Pots, yet I made several smaller things with better. Sue- 122 ADVENTURES OF cess ; such as little round Pots, flat Dishes, Pitchers and Pipkins, and any things my Hand turn'd to, and the Heat of the Sun bak'd them strangely hard. But all this would not answer my End, which was to get an Earthen Pot to hold what was Liquid, and bear the Fire, which none of these could do. It happen'd after some time, making a pretty large Fire for cooking my Meat, when I went to put it out after I had done with it, I found a broken Piece of one of my Earthen-ware Vessels in the Fire, burnt as hard as a Stone, and re4 as a Tile. I was agreeably surpriz'd to see it, and said to my self, that certainly they might be made to burn whole, if they would burn broken. This set me to studying how to order my Fire, so as to make it burn me some Pots. I had no Notion of a Kiln, such as the Potters burn in, or of glazing them with Lead, tho' I had some Lead to do it with ; but I plac'd three large Pipkins, and two or three Pots in a Pile one upon another, and plac'd my Fire-wood all round it with a great Heap of Embers under them; I ply'd the Fire with fresh Fuel round the out-side, and upon the top, till I saw the Pots in the inside red hot quite thro', and observ'd that they did not crack at all ; when I saw them clear red, I let them stand in that Heat about 5 or 6 Hours, till I found one of them, tho' it did not crack, did melt or run, for the Sand which was mixed with the Clay melted by the violence of the Heat, and would have run into Glass if I had gone on ; so I slack'd my Fire gradu- ally, till the Pots began to abate of the red Colour, and watching them all Night, that I might not let the Fire abate too fast, in the Morning I had three very good, I will not say handsome. Pipkins ; and two other Earthen Pots, as hard burnt as cou'd be desir'd; and one of them perfeftly glaz'd with the Running of the Sand. After this Experiment, I need not say that I wanted no sort of Earthen Ware for my Use ; but I must needs say, as to the Shapes of them, they were very indifferent, as any one may suppose, when I had no way of making ROBINSON CRUSOE. 123 them; but as the Children make Dirt-Pies, or as_ a Woman would make Pies that never learn'd to raise Paste. No Joy at a Thing of so mean a Nature was ever equal to mine, when I found I had made an Earthen Pot that would bear the Fire ; and I had hardly Patience to stay till they were cold, before I set one upon the Fire again, with some Water in it, to boil me some Meat, which it did admirably well ; and with a Piece of a Kid I made some very good Broth, though I wanted Oatmeal, and several other Ingredients requisite to make it so good as I would have had it been. My next Concern was, to get me a. Stone Mortar to stamp or beat some Corn in; for as to the Mill, there was no thought at arriving to that Perfeftion of Art, with one Pair of Hands. To supply this Want I was at a great Loss ; for of all Trades in the World I was as perfeftly unqualified for a Stone-Cutter,. as for any what- ever; neither had I any Tools to go about it with. I spent many a Day to find out a great Stone big enough to cut hollow, and make fit for a Mortar, aAd could find none at all; except what was in the solid Rock, and which I had no way to dig or cut out ; nor indeed were the Rocks in the Island of Hardness sufficient, but were all of a sandy crumbling Stone, which neither would bear the Weight of a heavy Pestle, or would break the Corn without filling it with Sand ; so after a great deal of Time lost in searching for a Stone, I gave it over, and resolv'd to look out for a great Block of hard Wood, which I found indeed much easier ; and getting one as big as I had Strength to stir, I rounded it, and form'd it in the Outside with my Axe and Hatchet, and then with the Help of Fire, and infinite Labour, made a hollow Place in it, as the Indians in Brasil make their Canoes. After this, I made a great heavy Pestle or Beater, of the Wood call'd the Iron- Wood, and this I prepared and laid by against I had my next Crop of Corn, when I propos'd to my self to grind, or rather pound, my Com into Meal to make my Bread. 124 ADVENTURES OF My next Difficulty was to make a Sieve, or Search, to dress my Meal, and to part it from the Bran, and the Husk, without which I did not see it possible I could have any Bread. This was a most difficult Thing, so much as but to think on ; for to be sure I had nothing like the necessary Thing to make it; I mean fine thin Canvas, or Stuff to search the Meal through. And here I was at a full Stop for many Months; nor did I really know what to do ; Linnen I had none left, but what was meer Rags ; I had Goats Hair, but neither knew I how to weave it, or spin it ; and had I known how, here was no Tools to work it with; all the Remedy that I found for this, was. That at last I did remember I had among the Seamens Cloaths which were sav'd out of the Ship, some Neckcloths of CaUicoe or Muslin; and with some Pieces of these I made three small Sieves, but proper enough for the Work; and thus I made shift for some Years ; how I did afterwards, I shall shew in its Place. The baking Part -vyas the next Thing to be consider'd, and how I shduld make Bread when I came to have Corn ; for first I had no Yeast ; as to that Part, as there was no supplying the Want, so I did not concern my self much about it: But for an Oven, I was indeed in great Pain; at length I found out an Experiment for that also, which was this ; I made some Earthen Vessels very broad, but not deep ; that is to say, about two Foot Diameter, and not above nine Inches deep ; these I burnt in the Fire, as I had done the other, and laid them by ; and when I wanted to bake, I made a great Fire upon my Hearth, which I had pav'd with some square Tiles of my own making, and burning also ; but I should not call them square. When the Fire-wood was burnt pretty much into Em- bers, or live Coals, I drew them forward upon this Hearth, so as to cover it all over, and there I let them lie, tifl the Hearth was very hot ; then sweeping away all the Embers, I set down my Loaf, or Loaves, and whelming down the Earthen Pot upon them, drew the Embers all round the Out-side of the Pot, to keep in, and add to the Heat ; and ROBINSON CRUSOE. 125 thus, as well as in the best Oven in the World, I bak'd my Barley Loaves, and became in little Time a meer Pastry-Cook into the Bargain ; for I made my self, several Cakes of the Rice, and Puddfngs ; indeed I made no Pies, neither had I any Thing to put into them, supposing I had, except the Flesh either of Fowls or Goats. It need not be wondered at, if all these Things took me up most Part of the third Year of my Abode here ; for it is to be observ'd, That in the Intervals of these Things, I had my new Harvest and Husbandry to manage ; for I reap'd my Corn in its Season, and carried it Home as well as I could, and laid it up in the Ear, in my large Baskets, till I had Time to rub it out ; for I had no Floor to thrash it on, or Instrument to thrash it with. And now indeed my Stock of Corn increasing, I really wanted to build my Barns bigger: I wanted a Place to lay it up in; for the Increase of the Corn now yielded me so much, that I had of the Barley about twenty Bushels, and of the Rice as much, or more; insomuch, that now t resolv'd to begin to use it freely ; for my Bread had been quite gone a great while ; Also I resolv'd to see what Quantity would be sufficient for me a whole Year, and to sow but once a Year. Upon the whole, I found that the forty Bushels of Barley and Rice was much more than I could consume in a Year ; so I resolv'd to sow just the same Quantity every Year that I sowed the last, in Hopes that such a Quantity wou'd fully provide me with Bread, S-'c All the while these Things were doing, you may be sure my Thoughts run many times upon the Prospeft of Land which I had seen from the other Side of the Island, and I was not without secret Wishes that I were on Shore there, fancying the seeing the main Land, and in an inhabited Country I might find some Way or other to convey my self farther, and perhaps at last find some Means of Escape. But all this while I made no Allowance for the Dangers of such a Condition, and how I might fall into the Hands 126 . ADVENTURES OF of Savages, and perhaps such as I might have Reason to think far worse than the Lions and Tigers of Africa. That if I once came into their Power, I should run a Hazard more than a Thousand to One of being kill'd and perhaps of being eaten ; for I had heard that the People of the Carribean Coasts were Canibals, or Man- eaters ; and I knew by the Latitude that I could not be far off from that Shore. That suppose they were not Canibals, yet that they might kill me, as many Europeans who had fallen into their Hands had been serv'd, even when they had been ten or twenty together ; much more I that was but one, and could make little or no Defence. All these Things, I say, which I ought to have consider'd well of, and did cast up in my Thoughts afterwards, yet took up none of my Apprehensions at first ; but my Head run mightily upon the Thought of getting over to the Shore. Now I wish'd for my Boy Xury, and the Long-Boat, with the Shoulder of Mutton Sail, with which I saiPd above a thousand Miles on the Coast of Africk; but this was in vain. Then I thought I would go and look at our Ship's Boat, which, as I have said, was blown up upon the Shore a great Way in the Storm, when we were first cast away. She lay almost where she did at first, but not quite; and was turn'd by the Force of the Waves and the Winds almost Bottom upward, against a high Ridge of Beachy rough Sand; but no Water about her as before. If I had had Hands to have refitted her, and to have launch'd her into the Water, the Boat would have done well enough, and I might have gone back into the Brasils with her easily enough ; but I might have foreseen. That I could no more turn her, and set her upright upon her Bottom, than I could remove the Island: However, I went to the Woods, and cut Levers and Rollers, and brought them to the Boat, resolv'd to try what I could do, suggesting to my self. That if I could but turn her down, I might easily repair the Damage she had receiv'd, and she ROSINS ON CRUSOE. 137 would be a very good Boat, and I might go to Sea in her very easily. I spar'd no Pains indeed, in this Piece of fruitless Toil, and spent, I think, three or four Weeks about it ; at last finding it impossible to heave it up with my little Strength, I fell to digging away the Sand to undermine it, and so to make it fall down, setting Pieces of Wood to thrust and guide it right in the Fall. But when I had done this, I was unable to stir it up again, or to get under it, much less to move it forward, to- wards the Water; so I was forc'd to give it over; and yet, though I gave over the Hopes of the Boat, my desire to venture over for the Main increased, rather than de- creased, as the Means for it seem'd impossible. This at length put me upon thinking, Whether it was not possible to make my self a Canoe, or Periagua, such as the Natives of those Chmates make, even without Tools, or, as I might say, without Hands, viz. of the Trunk of a great Tree. This I not only thought possible, but easy, and pleas'd my self extreamely with the Thoughts of making it, and with my having much more Con- venience for it than any of the Negroes or Indians; but not at all considering the particular Inconveniences which I lay under, more than the Indians did, viz. Want of Hands to move it, when it was made, into the Water ; a Difficulty much harder for me to surmount, than all the Consequences of want of Tools could be to them: For what was it to me. That when I had chosen a vast Tree in the Woods, I might with much Trouble cut it down, if after I might be able with my Tools to hew and dub the Out-side into the proper Shape of a Boat, and burn or cut put the In-side to make it hollow, so to make a Boat of it, if after all this, I must leave it just there where I found it, and was not able to launch it into the Water. One would have thought, I could not have had the least Refiedlion upon my Mind of my Circumstance, while I was making this Boat ; but I should have imme- diately thought how I should get it into the Sea ; but my 128 ADVENTURES OF Thoughts were so intent -upon my Voyage over the Sea in it, that I never once consider'd how I should get it ofif of the Land ; and it was really in its own Nature more easy for me to guide it over forty five Miles of Sea, than about forty five Fathom of Land, where it lay, to set it a-float in the Water. I went to work upon this Boat the most like a Fool that ever Man did, who had any of his Senses awake. I pleas'd my self with the Design, without determining whether I was ever able to undertake it ; not but that the Difficulty of launching my Boat came often into my Head ; but I put a stop to my own Enquiries into it, by this foolish Answer which I gave my self, Let's first make it, I'll warrant I'll find some Way or other to get it along, •when 'tis done. This was a most preposterous Method ; but the Eager- ness of my Fancy prevail'd, and to work I went. I fell'd a Cedar Tree: I question much whether Solomon ever had such a One. for the Building of the Temple at "Jeru- salem. It was five Foot ten Inches Diameter at the lower Part next the Stump, and four Foot eleven Inches Dia- meter at the End of twenty two Foot, after which it lessen'd for a while, and then parted into Branches: It was not without infinite Labour that I fell'd this Tree : I was twenty Days hacking and hewing at it at the Bottom. I was fourteen more getting the Branches and Limbs, and the vast spreading Head of it cut off, which I hack'd and hew'd through with Axe and Hatchet, and inexpressible Labour : After this, it cost me a Month to shape it, and dub it to a Proportion, and to something like the Bottom of a Boat, that it might swim upright as it ought to do. It cost me near three Months more to clear the In-side, and work it so, as to make an exadl Boat of it :. This I did indeed without Fire, by meer Mallet and Chissel, and by the dint of hard Labour, till I had brought it to be a very handsome Periagua, and big enough to have carried six and twenty Men, and consequently big enough to have carried me and all my Cargo. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 129 When I had gone through this Work, I was extremely delighted with it. The Boat was really much bigger than I ever saw a Canoe, or Periagua, that was made of one Tree, in my Life. Many a weary Stroke it had cost, you may be sure; and there remained nothing but to get it into the Water; and had I gotten it into the Water, I make no question but I should have began the maddest Voyage, and the most unlikely to be perform'd, that ever was undertaken. But all my Devices to get it into the Water fail'd me, though they cost me infinite Labour too. It lay about one hundred Yards from the Water, and not more : But the first Inconvenience was, it was up Hill towards the Creek ; well, to take away this Discouragement, I resolv'd to dig into the Surface of the Earth, and so make a Declivity: This I begun, and it cost me a prodigious deal of Pains ; but who grudges Pains, that have their Deliver- ance in View? But when this was work'd through, and this Difficulty manag'd, it was still much at one; for I could no more stir the Canoe, than I could the other Boat. Then I measur'd the Distance of Ground, and resolv'd to cut a Dock, or Canal, to bring the Water up to the Canoe, seeing I could not bring the Canoe down to the Water : Well, I began this Work, and when I began to enter into it, and calculate how deep it was to be dug, how broad, how the Stuff to be thrown out, I found, that by the Number of Hands I had, being none but my own, it must have been ten or twelve Years before I should have gone through with it ; for the Shore lay high, so that at the upper End it must have been at least twenty Foot deep; so at length, tho' with great Reluftancy, I gave this Attempt over also. This griev'd me heartily, and now I saw, tho' too late, the Folly of beginning a Work before we count the Cost, and before we judge rightly of our own Strength to go through with it. In the middle of this Work, I finish'd my fourth Year in this Place, and kept my Anniversary with the same R C 9 I30 ~ ADVENTURES OF Devotion, and with as much Comfort as ever before; for by a constant Study, and serious Application of the Word of God, and by the Assistance of his Grace, I gairi'd a different Knowledge from what I had before. I enter- tain'd different Notions of Things. I look'd now upon the World as a Thing remote, which I had nothing to do with, no Expeflation from, and indeed no Desires about; In a Word, I had nothing indeed to do with it, nor was ever like to have ; so I thought it look'd as we may per- haps look upon it hereafter, viz. as a Place I had lived in, but was come out of it ; and well might I say, as Father Abraham to Dives, Between me and thee is a great Gulph fixed. In the first Place, I was removed from all the Wicked- ness of the World here : I had neither the Lust of the Flesh, the Lust of the Eye, or the Pride of Life. I had nothing to covet ; for I had all that I was now capable of enjoying: I was Lord of the whole Manor; or if I pleas'd, I might call my self King, or Emperor over the whole Country which I had Possession of. There were no Rivals : I had no Competitor, none to dispute Sovereignty or Command with me. I might have rais'd Ship Loadings of Corn ; but I had no use for it ; so I let as little grow as I thought enough for my Occasion. I had Tortoise or Turtles enough ; but now and then one was as much as I could put to any use. I had Timber enough to have built a Fleet of Ships. I had Grapes enough to have made Wine, or to have cur'd into Raisins, to have loaded that Fleet when they had been built. But all I could make use of, was, All that was valuable. I had enough to eat, and to supply my Wants, and, what was all the rest to me? If I kill'd more Flesh than I could eat, the Dog must eat it, or the Vermin. If I sow'd more Corn than I could eat, it must be spoil'd. The Trees that I cut down, were lying to rot on the Ground: I could make no more use of them than for Fewel, and that 1 had no Occasion for, but to dress my Food. In a Word, The Nature and Experience of Things ROBINSON CRUSOE. 131 diftated to me upon just Refledlion, That all the good Things of this World, are no farther good to us, than they are for our Use ; and that whatever we may heap up indeed to give others, we enjoy just as much as we can use, and no more. The most covetous griping Miser in the World would have been cured of the Vice of Covetous- ness, if he had been in my Case ; for I possessed infinitely more than I knew what to do with. I had no room for Desire, except it was of Things which I had not, and they were but Trifles, though indeed of great Use to me. I had, as I hinted before, a Parcel of Money, as well Gold as Silver, about thirty six Pounds Sterling: Alas! there the nasty sorry useless Stuff lay; I had no manner of Business for it ; and I often thought with my self, That I would have given a Handful of it for a Gross of Tobacco- Pipes, or for a Hand-Mill to grind my Corn; nay, 1 would have given it all for Sixpenny-worth of Turnip and Carrot Seed out of England, or for a Handful oi Pease and Bea7is, and a Bottle of Ink: As it was, I had not the least Advantage by it, or Benefit from it ; but there it lay in a Drawer, and grew mouldy with the Damp of the Cave, in the wet Season ; and if I had had the Drawer full of Diamonds, it had been the same Case; and they had been of no manner of Value to me, because of no Use. I had now brought my State of Life to be much easier in it self than it was at first, and much easier to my Mind, as well as to my Body. I frequently sat down to my Meat with Thankfulness, and admired the Hand of God's Providence, which had thus spread my Table in the Wilderness. I learned to look more upon the bright Side of my Condition, and less upon the dark Side; and to consider what I enjoy'd, rather than what I wanted ; and this gave me sometimes such secret Comforts, that I cannot express them ; and which I take Notice of here, to put those discontented People in Mind of it, who cannot enjoy comfortably what God has given them; because they see, and covet something that he has not given them: All our Discontents about what we want, appeared to me, 9—2 132 ADVENTURES OF to spring from the Want of Thankfulness for what we have. Another Refledlion was of great Use to me, and doubt- less would be so to any one that should fall into such Distress as mine was ; and this was, To compare my pre- sent Condition with what I at first expecfbed it should be ; nay, with what it would certainly have been, if the good Providence of God had not wonderfully ordered the Ship to be cast up nearer to the Shore, where I not only could come at her, but could bring what I got out of her to the Shore, for my Relief and Comfort ; without which, I had wanted for Tools to work, Weapons for Defence, or Gun- Powder and Shot for getting my Food. I spent whole Hours, I may say whole Days, in repre- senting to my self in the most lively Colours, how I must have adled, if I had got nothing out of the Ship ; how I could not have so much as got any Food, except Fish and Turtles ; and that as it was long before I found any of them, I must have perish' d first: That I should have liv'd, if I had not perished, like a meer Savage : That if I had kill'd a Goat, or a Fowl, by any Contrivance, I had no way to flea or open them, or part the Flesh from the Skin and the Bowels, or to cut it up ; but must gnaw it with my Teeth, and pull it with my Claws like a Beast. These Refledlions made me very sensible of the Good- ness of Providence to me, and very thankful for my present Condition, with all its Hardships and Misfortunes : And this Part also I cannot but recommend to the Refleftion of those, who are apt in their Misery to say. Is any Afflillion like mine! Let them consider. How much worse the Cases of some People are, and their Case might have been, if Providence had thought fit. had another Reflefbion which assisted me also to tifort my Mind with Hopes ; and this was, comparing ' present Condition with what I had deserv'd, and had therefore Reason to expedt from the Hand of Providence. I had liv'd a dreadful Life, perfeflly destitute of the Knowledge and Fear of God. I had been well instrufted ROBINSON CRUSOE. 133 by Father and Mother ; neither had they been wanting to me, in their early Endeavours, to infuse a religious Awe of God into my Mind, a Sense of my Duty, and of what the Nature and End of ipy Being requir'd of me. But alas ! falling early into the Sea-ffiring Life, which of all the Lives is the most destitute of the Fear of God, though his Terrors are always before them ; I say, falling early into the. Sea-faring Life, and into Sea-faring Company, all that little Sense of Rehgion which I had entertained, was laugh'd out of me by my Mess-Mates, by a harden'd despising of Dangers, and the Views of Death, which grew habitual to me, by my long Absence from all manner of Opportunities to converse with any Thing but what was like my self, or to hear any Thing that was good, or tended towards it. So void was I of every Thing that was good, or of the least Sense of what I was, or was to be, that in the greatest Deliverances I enjoy'd, such as my Escape from Sallee; my being taken up by the Portuguese Master of the Ship ; my being planted so well in the Brasils; my receiving the Cargo from England, and the like ; I never had once the Word Thank God, so much as on my Mind, or in my Mouth ; nor in the greatest Distress, had I so much as a Thought to pray to him, or so much as to say, Lord have Mercy upon me; no nor to mention the Name of God, unless it was to swear by, and blaspheme it. I had terrible Refieftions upon my Mind for many Months, as I have already observ'd, on the Account of my wicked and hardned Life past; and when I looked about me, and considered what particular Providences had attended me since my coming into this Place, and how God had dealt bountifully with me; had not only punished me less than my Iniquity had deserv'd, but had so plentifully provided for me ; this gave me great Ifopes that my Repentance was accepted, and that God had yet Mercy in store for me. With these Refledlions I work'd my Mind up, not only to Resignation to the Will of God in the present Dis- 134 ADVENTURES OF position of my Circumstances ; but even to a sincere Thankfulness for my Condition ; and that I who was yet a living Man, ought not to complain, seeing I had not the due Punishment of my Sins; that I enjoy'd so many Mercies which I had no reason to have expedled in that Place; that I ought never more to repine at my Con- dition, but to rejoyce, and to give daily Thanks for that daily Bread, which nothing but a Crowd of Wonders .could have brought. That I ought to consider I had been fed even by Mira<;le, even as great as that of feeding Elijah by Ravens ; nay, by a long Series of Miracles, and that I could hardly have nam'd a Place in the unhabitable Part of the World where I could have been cast more to my Advantage : A Place, where as I had no Society, which was my AfSiflion on one Hand, so I found no ravenous Beasts, no furious Wolves or Tygers to threaten my Life, no venomous Creatures or poisonous, which I might feed on to my Hurt, no Savages to murder and devour me. In a Word, as my Life was a Life of Sorrow, one way, so it was a Life of Mercy, another ; and I wanted nothing to make it a Life of Comfort, but to be able to make my Sense of God's Goodness to me, and Care over me in this Condition, be my daily Consolation ; and after I did make a just Improvement of these things, I went away and was no more sad. I had now been here so long, that many things which I brought on Shore for my Help, were either quite gone or very much wasted and near spent. My Ink, as I observed, had been gone for some time, all but a very little,-which I eek'd out with Water a little and a little, till it was so pale it scarce left any Appear- ance of black upon the Paper : As long as it lasted, I made use of it to minute down the Days of the Month on which any remarkable Thing happen'd to me, and first by cast- ing up Times past : I remember that there was a strange Concurrence of Days in the various Providences which befel me ; and which, if I had been superstitiously inclin'd ROBINSON CRUSOE. I3S to observe Days as Fatal or Fortunate, I might have had Reason to have look'd upon with a great deal of Curiosity. First I had observed, that the same Day that I broke away from my Father and my Friends, and run away to Hull, in order to go to Sea ; the same Day afterwards I was taken by the Sallee Man of War, and made a Slave. The same Day of the Year that I escaped out of the Wreck of that Ship in Yarmouth Roads, that same Day- Year afterwards I made my escape from Sallee in the Boat. The same Day of the Year I was born on {viz') the ■},oth of September, that same Day I had my Life so miraculously saved 26 Years after, when I was cast on Shore in this Island, so that my wicked Life and my solitary Life began both on a Day. The next Thing to my Ink's being wasted, was that of my Bread, I mean the Bisket which I brought out of the Ship ; this I had husbanded to the last Degree, allowing my self but one Cake of Bread a Day for above a Year, and yet I was quite without Bread for near a Year before I got any Corn of my own, and great Reason I had to be thankful that I had any at all, the getting it being, as has been already observed, next to miraculous. My Cloaths began to decay too mightily: As to Linnen, I had none a good while, except soirie chequered Shirts which I found in the Chests of the other Seamen, and which I carefully preserv'd, because many times I could bear no other Cloaths on but a Shirt ; and it was a very great help to me that I had among all the Men's Cloaths of the Ship almost three dozen of Shirts. There were also several thick Watch-Coats of the Seamens, which were left indeed, but they were too hot to wear; and tho' it is true, thatthe Weather was so violent hot, that there was no need of Cloaths, yet I could not go quite naked ; no, the' I had been inclined to it, which I was not, nor could not abide the Thoughts of it, tho' I was all alone. The Reason why I could not go quite naked, was, I 136 ADVENTURES OF could not bear the Heat of the Sun so well when quite . naked, as with some Cloaths on ; nay, the very Heat frequently blister'd my Skin; whereas with a Shirt on, the Air itself made some Motion, and whistling under that Shirt, was twofold cooler than without it : No more could I ever bring my self to go out in the Heat of the Sun without a Cap or a Hat ; the Heat of the Sun beating with such Violence as it does in that Place, would give me the Head-ach presently, by darting so direftly on my Head, without a Cap or Hat on ; so that I could not bear it ; whereas, if I put on my Hat, it would presently go away. Upon those Views I began to consider about putting the few Rags I had, which I called Cloaths, into some Order: I had worn out all the Wastcoats I had, and my Business was now to try if I could not make Jackets out of the great Watch-Coats which I had by me, and with such other Materials as I had; so I set to work a Tayloring, or rather indeed a Botching, for I made most piteous Work of it. However, I made shift to make two or three new Wastcoats, which I hoped would serve me a great while ; as for Breeches or Dra\yers, I made but a very sorry shift indeed, till afterward. I have mentioned that I saved the Skins of all the Creatures that I kill'd, I mean four-footed ones, and I had hung them up stretch'd out with Sticks in the Sun, by which means some of them were so dry and hard that they were fit for little, but others it seems were very use- ful. The first thing I made of these was a great Cap for my Head, with the Hair on the Outside to shoot off the Rain ; and this I perform'd so well, that after this I made me a Suit of Cloaths wholly of these Skins, that is to say, a Wastcoat, and Breeches open at Knees, and both loose, for they were rather wanting to keep me cool than to keep me warm. I must riot omit to acknowledge that they were wretchedly made; for if I was a bad Carpenter, I was a worse Taylor. However, they were such as I made very good shift with ; and when I was abroad, if it ROBINSON CRUSOE. 137 happen'd to rain, the Hair of myWastcoat and Cap being outermost, I was kept very dry. After this I spent a great deal of Time and Pains to make me an Umbrella ; I was indeed in great want of one, and had a great mind to make one ; I had seen them made in the Brasils, where they are very useful in the great Heats which are there: And I felt the Heats every jot as great here, and greater too, being nearer the Equi- nox ; besides, as I was obliged to be much abroad, it was a most useful thing to me, as well for the Rains as the Heats. I took a world of Pains at it, and was a great while before I could make any thing likely to hold ; nay, after I thought I had hit the Way, I spoil'd 2 or 3 before I made one to my Mind; but at last I made one that answer'd indifferently well : The main Difficulty I found was to make it to let down. 1 could make it to spread, but if it did not let down too, and draw in, it was not portable for me any Way but just over my Head, which would not do. However, at last, as I said, I made one to answer, and cover'd it with Skins, the Hair upwards, so that it cast off the Rains like a Pent-house, and kept off the Sun so effeftually, that I could walk out in the hottest of the Weather with greater Advantage than I could before in the coolest, and when I had no need of it, could close it and carry it under my Arm. Thus I lived mighty comfortably, my Mind being entirely composed by resigning to the Will of God, and throwing my self wholly upon the Disposal of his Provi- dence. This made my Life better than sociable ; for when I began to regret the want of Conversation, I would ask my self whether thus conversing mutually with my own Thoughts, and, as I hope I may say, with even God him- self by Ejaculations, was not better than the utmost Enjoyment of human Society in the World ? I cannot say that after this, for five Years, any extra- ordinary Thing happened to me, but I lived on in the same Course, in the same Posture and Place, just as before : The chief Things I was employ'd in, besides my 138 ADVENTURES OF yearly Labour of planting my Barley and Rice, and curing my Raisins, of both which I always kept up just enough to have sufficient Stock of one Year's Provisions before- hand: I say, besides this yearly Labour, and my daily Labour of going out with my Gun, I had one Labour to make me a Canoe, which at last I finished : So that by digging a Canal to it of six Foot wide, and four Foot deep, I brought it into the Creek, almost half a Mile. As for the first, which was so vastly big, as I made it without considering before-hand, as I ought to do, how I should be able to launch it ; so never being able to bring it to the Water, or bring the Water to it, I was oblig'd to let it lye where it was, as a Memorandum to teach me to be wiser next Time: Indeed, the next Time, tho' I could not get a Tree proper for it, and in a Place where I could not get the Water to it, at any less Distance than as I have said, near half a Mile ; yet as I saw it was praflicable at last, I never gave it over ; and though I was near two Years about it, yet I never grutch'd my Labour, in Hopes of having a Boat to go off to Sea at last. However, though my little Periagua was finish'd, yet the Size of it was not at all answerable to the Design which I had in View, when I made the first ; I mean, Of venturing over to the Terra Firma, where it was above forty Miles broad ; accordingly, the Smallness of my Boat assisted to put an End to that Design, and now 1 thought no more of it : But as I had a Boat, my next Design was to make a Tour round the Island ; for as I had been on the other Side, in one Place, crossing as I have already describ'd it, over the Land ; so the Discoveries I made in that little Journey, made me very eager to see other Parts of the Coast ; and now I had a Boat, I thought of nothing but sailing round the Island. For this Purpose, that I might do every Thing with Discretion and Consideration, I fitted up a little Mast to my Boat, and made a Sail to it, out of some of the Pieces of the Ship's Sail, which lay in store; and of which I had a great Stock by me. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 139 Having fitted my Mast and Sail, and try'd the Boat, I found she would sail very well : Then I made little Lockers, or Boxes, at either End of my Boat, to put Provisions, Necessaries and Ammunition, Ss'c. into, to be kept dry, either from Rain, or the Sprye of the Sea ; and a little long hollow Place I cut in the Inside of the Boat, where I could lay my Gun, making a Flap to hang down over it to keep it dry. I fix'd my Umbrella also in a Step at the Stern, like a Mast, to stand over my Head, and keep the Heat of the Sun off of me like an Auning ; and thus I every now and then took a little Voyage upon the Sea, but never went far out, not far from the little Creek ; but at last being eager to view the Circumference of my little Kingdom, I resolv'd upon my Tour, and accordingly I vidluall'd my Ship for the Voyage, putting in two Dozen of my Loaves (Cakes I should rather call them) of Barley Bread, an Earthen Pot full of parch'd Rice, a Food I eat a great deal of, a little Bottle of Rum, half a Goat, and Powder and Shot for killing more, and two large Watch-coats, of those which, as I mention'd before, I had sav'd out of the Seamen's Chests ; these I took, one to lye upon, and the other to cover me in the Night. It was the sixth of November, in the sixth Year of my Reign, or my Captivity, which you please. That I set out on this Voyage, and I found it much longer than I ex- pefted ; for though the Island it self was not very large, yet when I came to the East Side of it, I found a great Ledge of Rocks lye out above two Leagues into the Sea, some above' Water, some under it ; and beyond that, a Shoal of Sand, lying dry half a League more ; so that I was oblig'd to go a great Way out to Sea to double the Point. When first I discover'd them, I was going to give over xny Enterprise, and come back again, not knowing how far it might oblige me to go out to Sea ; and above all, doubting how I should get back again ; so I came to an Anchor ; for I had made me a kind of an Anchor with I40 ADVENTURES OF a Piece of a broken Graplin, which I got out of the Ship. Having secur'd my Boat, I took my Gun, and went on Shore, chmbing up upon a Hill, which seem'd to over-look that Point, where I saw the full Extent of it, and resolv'd to venture. In my viewing the Sea from that Hill where I stood, I perceived a strong, and indeed, a most furious Current, which run to the East, and even came close to the Point ; and I took the more Notice of it, because I saw there might be some Danger, that when I came into it, I might be carry'd out to Sea by the Strength of it, and not be able to make the Island again; and indeed, had I not gotten first up upon this Hill, I believe it would have been so; for there was the same Current on the other Side the Island, only, that it set off at a farther Distance ; and I saw there was a strong Eddy under the Shore ; so I had nothing to do but to get in out of the first Current, and I should presently be in an Eddy. I lay here, however, two Days; because the Wind blowing pretty fresh at E. S. E. and that being just contrary to the said Current, made a great Breach of the Sea upon the Point ; so that it was not safe for me to keep too close to the Shore for the Breach, nor to go too far off because of the Stream. The third Day in the Morning, the Wind having abated over Night, the Sea was calm, and I ventur'd ; but I am a warning Piece again to all rash and ignorant Pilots ; for no sooner was I come to the Point, when even I was not my Boat's Length from the Shore, but I found my self in a great Depth of Water, and a Current like the Sluice of a Mill: It carry'd my Boat a long with it with such Violence, that all I could do, could not keep her so much as on the Edge of it ; but I found it hurry'd me farther and farther out from the Eddy, which was on my Left Hand. There was no Wind stirring to help me, and all I could do with my Paddlers signify'd nothing ; and now I began to give my self over for lost ; for as the ROBINSON CRUSOE. 141 Current was on both Sides the Island, I knew in a few Leagues Distance they must joyn again, and then I was irrecoverably gone; nor did I see any Possibility of avoiding it ; so that I had no Prospedl before me but of Perishing; not by the Sea, for that was calm enough, but of starving for Hunger. I had indeed found a Tortoise on the Shore, as big almost as I could lift, and had toss'd it into the Boat ; and I had a great Jar of fresh Water, that is to say, one of my Earthen Pots ; but what was all this to being driven into the vast Ocean, where to be sure, there was no Shore, no main Land, or Island, for a thousand Leagues at least. And now I saw how easy it was for the Providence of God to make the most miserable Condition Mankind could be in, worse. Now I look'd back upon my desolate solitary Island, as the most pleasant Place in the World, and all the Happiness my Heart could wish for, was to be but there again. I stretch'd out my Hands to it with eager Wishes. O happy Desart, said I, I shall never see thee more ! O miserable Creature, said I, whither am I going! Then I reproach'd my self with my unthankful Temper, and how I had repin'd at my solitary Condition ; and now what would I give to be on Shore there again. Thus we never see the true State of our Condition, till it is illustrated to us by its Contraries; nor know how to value what we enjoy, but by the want of it. It is scarce possible to imagine the Consternation I was now in, being driven from my beloved Island (for so it appeared to me now to be) into the wide Ocean, almost two Leagues, and in the utmost Despair of ever recovering it again. How- ever, I work'd hard, till indeed my Strength was almost exhausted, and kept my Boat as much to the Northward, that is, towards the Side of the Current which the Eddy lay on, as possibly I could ; when about Noon, as the Sun pass'd the Meridian, I thought I felt a little Breeze of Wind in my Face, springing up from the S. S. E. This chear'd my Heart a little, and especially when in about half an Hour more, it blew a pretty small gentle Gale. 142 ADVENTURES OF By this Time I was gotten at a frightful Distance from the Island, and had the least Cloud or haizy Weather interven'd, I had been undone another Way too ; for I had no Compass on Board, and should never have known how to have steered towards the Island, if I' had but once lost Sight of it ; but the Weather continuing clear, I apply'd my self to get up my Mast again, and spread my Sail, standing away to the North, as much as possible, to get out of the Current. Just as I, had set my Mast and Sail, and the Boat began to stretch away, I saw even by the Clearness of the Water, some Alteration of the Current was near; for where the Current was so strong, the water was foul ; but perceiving the Water clear, I found the Current abate, and presently I found to the East, at about half a Mile, a Breach of the Sea upon some Rocks; these Rocks I found caus'd the Current to part again, and as the main Stress of it ran away more Southerly, leaving the Rocks to the North-East; so the other returned by the Repulse of the Rocks, and made a strong Eddy, which ran back again to the North West, with a very sharp Stream. They who know what it is to have a Reprieve brought to them upon the Ladder, or to be rescued from Thieves just going to murther them, or who have been in such like Extremities, may guess what my present Surprize of Joy was, and how gladly I put my Boat into the Stream of this Eddy, and the Wind also freshning, how gladly I spread my Sail to it, running chearfuUy before the Wind, and with a strong Tide or Eddy under Foot. This Eddy carry'd me about a League in my Way back again direiftly towards the Island, but about two Leagues more to the Northward than the Current which carried me away at first ; so that when I carne near the Island, I found my self open to the Northern Shore of it, that is to say, the other End of the Island opposite to that which I went out from. When I had made something more than a Leagiie of Way by the Help of this Current or Eddy, I found it was ROBINSON CRUSOE. 143 spent and serv'd me no farther. However, I found that being between the two great Currents, (viz.) that on the South Side, which had hurried me away, and that on the North, which lay about a League on the other Side : I say, between these two, in the Wake of the Island, I found the Water at least still and running no Way ; and having still a Breeze of Wind fair for me, I kept on steering direvflly for the Island, tho' not making such fresh Way as I did before. About four a-Clock in the Evening, being then within about a League of the Island, I found the Point of the Rocks which occasioned this Disaster, stretching out, as is described before, to the Southward, and casting off the Current more Southwardly, had of course made another Eddy to the North, and this I found very strong, but not direflly setting the Way my Course lay, which was due West, but almost full North. However, having a fresh Gale, I stretch'd a-cross this Eddy slanting North-west, and in about an Hour came within about a Mile of the Shore, where it being smooth Water, I soon got to Land. When I was on Shore, I fell on my Knees and gave God Thanks for my Deliverance, resolving to lay aside all Thoughts of my Deliverance by my Boat ; and refresh- ing my self with such Things as I had, I brought my Boat close to the Shore in a little Cove that I had spy'd under some Trees, and lay'd me down to sleep, being quite spent with the Labour and Fatigue of the Voyage. I was now at a great Loss which way to get Home with my Boat : I had run so much Hazard, and knew too much the Case to think of attempting it by the Way I went out ; and what might be at the other Side (I mean the West Side) I knew not, nor had I any Mind to run any more Ventures ; so I only resolved in the Morning to make my Way Westward along the Shore, and to see if there was no Creek where I might lay up my Frigate in Safety, so as to have her again if I wanted her. In about three Mile, or thereabout, coasting the Shore, I came to a very good Inlet or Bay about a Mile over, which narrow- 144 ADVENTURES OF ed till it came to a very little Rivulet or Brook, where I found a very convenient Harbour for my Boat, and where she lay as if she had been in a little Dock make on purpose for her. Here I put in, and having stow'd my Boat very safe, I went on Shore to look about me, and see where I was. I soon found I had but a little pass'd by the Place where I had been before, when I travell'd on Foot to that Shore ; so taking nothing out of my Boat, but my Gun and my Umbrella, for it was exceedingly hot, I began my March. The Way was comfortable enough after such a Voyage as I had been upon, and I reach'd my old Bower in the Evening, where I found every thing standing as I left it ; for I always kept it in good Order, being, as I said before, my Country-House. I got over the Fence, and laid me down in the Shade to rest my Limbs, for I was very weary, and fell asleep r But judge you, if you can, that read my Story, what a Surprize I must be in, when I was wak'd out of my Sleep by a Voice calling me by my Name several times, Robin, Robin, Robin Crusoe, poor Robin Crusoe! where are you Robin Crusoe? Where are you? Where have you been? I was so dead asleep at first, being fatigu'd with Rowingj or Paddling, as it is call'd, the first Part of the Day, and with Walking the latter Part, that I did not . wake thoroughly ; but dozing between sleeping and waking, thought I dream'd that some Body spoke to me: Buf as the Voice continu'd to repeat, Robin Crusoe, Robin Crusoe, at last I began to wake more perfedlly, and was at first dreadfully frightened, and started up in the utmost Consternation : But no sooner were my eyes open, but I saw my Poll sitting on the top of the Hedge, and im- mediately knew that it was he that spoke to me ; for just in such bemoaning Language I had used to talk to him, and teach him ; and he had learn'd it so perfedlly, that he would sit upon my Finger, and lay his Bill close to my Face, and cry, Poor Robin Crusoe, Where are you? ROBINSON CRUSOE. 145 Where have you been? How come you here? and such things as I had taught him. However, even though I knew it was the Parrot, and that indeed it could be no Body else, it was a good while before I could compose my self: First, I was amazed how the Creature got thither, and then how he should just keep about the Place, and no where else : But as I was well satisfied it could be no Body but honest i'o//, I got it over ; and holding out my Hand, and calling him by his Name Poll, the sociable Creature came to me, and sat upon my Thumb, as he used to do, and continued talking to me, Poor Robin Crusoe, and how did I come here? and •where had I been? just as if he had been overjoy'd to see . me again ; and so I carry'd him Home along with me. I had now had enough of rambling' to Sea for some time, and had enough to do for many Days to sit still, and reflect upon the Danger I had been in. I would have been very glad to have had my Boat again on my Side of the Island ; but I knew not how it was practicable to get it about ; as to the East Side of the Island, which I had gone ' round, I knew well enough there was no venturing that Way; my very Heart would shrink, and my very Blood run chill but to think of it : And as to the other Side of the Island, I did not know how it might be there ; but supposing the Current ran with the same Force a- gainst the Shore at the East as it pass'd by it on the other, I might run the same Risk of being driven down the Stream, and carry'd by the Island, as I had been before, of being carry'd away from it ; so with these Thoughts I contented my self to be without any Boat, though it had been the Produdl of so many Months Labour to make it, and of so many more to get it unto the Sea. In this Government of my Temper I remain'd near a Year, lived a very sedate retired Life, as you may well suppose ; and my Thoughts being very much composed as to my Condition, and fully comforted in resigning my self to the Dispositions of Providence, I thought I liVd really very happily in all things, except that of Society. R. C. 10 146 ADVENTURES OF I improv'd my self in this time in all the mechanick Exercises which my Necessities put me upon applying my self to, and I believe could, upon Occasion, make a very good Carpenter, especially considering how few Tools I had. Besides this, I arrived at an unexpedled Perfedlion in my Earthen Ware, and contrived well enough to make them with a Wheel, which I found infinitely easier and better ; because I made Things round and shapable, which before were filthy Things indeed to look on. But I think I was never more vain of my own Performance, or more joyful for any Thing I found out, than for my be- ing able to make a Tobacco-Pipe. And tho' it was a very ugly clumsy Thing, when it was done, and only burnt red like other Earthern Ware, yet as it was hard and firm, and would draw the Smoke, I was exceedingly comforted with it ; for I had been always used to smoke, and there were Pipes in the Ship, but I forgot them at first, not knowing that there was Tobacco in the Island ; and after- wards, when I search'd the Ship again, I could not come at any Pipes at all. In my Wicker Ware also I improved much, and made abundance of necessary Baskets, as well as my Invention shew'd me, though not very handsome, yet they were such as were very handy and convenient for my laying Things up in, or fetching Things home in. For Example, if I kill'd a Goat abroad, I could hang it up in a Tree, flea it, and dress it, and cut it in Pieces, and bring it home in a Basket ; and the like by a Turtle, I could cut it up, take out the Eggs, and a Piece or two of the Flesh, which was enough for me, and bring them home in a Basket, and leave the rest behind me. Also large deep Baskets were my Receivers for my Corn, which I always rubb'd out as soon as it was dry, and cured, and kept it in great Baskets. I began now to perceive my Powder abated consider- ably, and this was a Want which it was impossible for me to supply, and I began seriously to consider what I must do when I should have no more Powder ; that is to say. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 147 how I should do to kill any Goat. I had, as is observ'd in the third Year of my being here, kept a young Kid, and bred her up tame, and I was in hope of getting a He- Goat, but I could not by any means bring it to pass, 'till my Kid grew an old Goat ; and I could never find in my Heart to kill her, till she dy'd at last of meer Age. But being now in the eleventh Year of my Residence, and, as I have said, my Ammunition growing low, I set my self to study some Art to trap and snare the Goats, to see whether I could not catch some of them ahve) and particularly I wanted a She-Goat great with Young. To this Purpose I made Snares to hamper them, and I do believe they were more than once taken in them, but my Tackle was not good, for I had no Wire, and I always found them broken, and my Bait devoured. At length I resolved to try a Pit-fall, so I dug several large Pits in the Earth, in Places where I had observed the Goats used to feed, and over these Pits I placed Hurdles of my own making too, with a great Weight upon them; and several times I put Ears of Barley, and dry Rice, without setting the Trap, and I could easily perceive that the Goats had gone in and eaten up the Corn, for I could see the Mark of their Feet. At length I set three Traps in one Night, and going the next Morning I found them all standing, and yet the Bait eaten and gone. This was very discouraging: However, I alter'd my Trap, and, not to trouble you with Particulars, going one Morning to see my Trap, I found in one of them a large old He- Goat, and in one of the other, three Kids, a Male and two Females. As to the old one, I knew not what to do with him, he was so fierce I durst not go into the Pit to him ; that is to say, to go about to bring him away alive, which was what I wanted. I could have kill'd him, but that was not my Business, nor would it answer my End. So I e'en let him out, and he ran away as if he had been frighted out of his Wits : But I had forgot then what I learn'd afterwards, that Hunger will tame a Lyon. If I had let him stay 10 — 2 148 ADVENTURES OF there three or four Days without Food, and then have carry'd him some Water to drink, and then a little Corn, he would have been as tame as one of the Kids, for they are mighty sagacious tradlablg Creatures where they are well used. However, for the present I let him go, knowing no better at that time ; then I went to the three Kids, and taking them one by one, I tyed them with Strings together and with some Difficulty brought them all home. It was a good while before they would feed, but throw- ing them some sweet Corn, it tempted them, and they began to be tame : and now I found that if I expefled to supply my self with Goat-Flesh when I had no Powder or Shot left, breeding some up tame was my only Way, when perhaps I might have them about-my House like a Flock of Sheep. But then it presently occurr'd to me, that I must keep the Tame from the Wild, or else they would always run wild when they grew up; and the only Way for this was to have some enclosed Piece of Ground, well fenc'd either with Hedge or Pale, to keep them in so effeflually, that those within might not break out, or those without break in. This was a great Undertaking for one Pair of Hands ; yet as I saw there was an absolute Necessity of doing it, my first Piece of Work was to find out a proper Piece of Ground, viz. where there was likely to be Herbage for them to eat, Water for them to drink, and Cover to keep them from the Sun. Those who understand such Enclosures will think I had very little Contrivance, when I pitch'd upon a Place very proper for all these, being a plain open piece of Meadow-Land or Savanna, (as our People call it in the Western Colonies,) which had two or three little Drills of fresh Water in it, and at one. end was very woody : I say they will smile at my Forecast, when I shall tell them I began my enclosing of this Piece of Ground in such a manner, that my Hedge or Pale must have been at least ROBINSON CRUSOE. 149 two Mile about. Nor was the Madness of it so great as to the Compass, for if it was ten Mile about I was like to have time enough to do it in. But I did not consider that my Goats would be as wild in so much Compass, as if they had had the whole Island, and I should have so much Room to chace them in, that I should never catch them. My Hedge was begun and carry'd on, I believe, about fifty Yards, when this Thought occur'd to me ; so I pre- sently stopt short, and for the first beginning I resolv'd to enclose a Piece of about 150 Yards in length, and 100 Yards in breadth, which as it would maintain as many as I should have in any reasonable time, so as my Flock encreased, I could add more Ground to my Enclosure. This was afling with some Prudence, and I went to work with Courage. I was about three Months hedging in the first Piece, and till I had done it I tether'd the three Kids in the best part of it, and us'd them to feed as near me as possible to make them familiar ; and very often I would go and carry them some Ears of Barley, or a handful of Rice, and feed them out of my Hand ; so that after my Enclosure was finished, and I let them loose, they would follow me up and down, bleating after me for a handful of Corn. This answer'd my End, and in about a Year and half I had a Flock of about twelve Goats, Kids and all ; and in two Years more I had three and forty, besides several that I took and kill'd for my Food. And after that I enclosed five several Pieces of Ground to feed them in, with little Pens to drive them into, to take them as I wanted, and Gates out of one Piece of Ground into another. But this was not all, for now I not only had Goats- Flesh to feed on when I pleas'd, but Milk too, a thing which indeed in my beginning I did not so much as think of, and which, when it came into my Thoughts, was really an agreeable Surprize. For now I set up my Dairy, and had some-times a Gallon or two of Milk in a Day. And as Nature, who gives Supphes of Food to every ,A 150 ADVENTURES OF Creature, di(?i;ates even naturally how to make use of it ; so I that had never milk'd a Cow, much less a Goat, or seen Butter or Cheese made, very readily and handily, tho' after a great many Essays and Miscarriages, made me both Butter and Cheese at last, and never wanted it afterwards. How mercifully can our great Creator treat his Crea- tures, even in those Conditions in which they seem'd to be overwhelm'd in Destruflion! How can he sweeten the bitterest Providences, and give us cause to praise him for Dungeons and Prisons! What a Table was here spread for me in a Wilderness, where I saw nothing at first but to perish for Hunger ! It would have made a Stoick smile to have seen me and my little Family sit down to Dinner; there was my Majesty the Prince and Lord of the whole Island ; I had the Lives of all my Subjefls at my absolute Command. I could hang, draw, give Liberty, and take it away, and no Rebels among all my Subjefts. Then to see how like a King I din'd too all alone, attended by my Servants, Poll, as if he had been my Favourite, was the only person permitted to talk to me. My Dog, who was now grown very old and crazy, and had found no Species to multiply his Kind upon, sat always at my Right Hand; and two Cats, one on one Side the Table, and one on the other, expedting now and then a Bit from my Hand, as a Mark of special Favour. But these were not the two Cats which I brought on Shore at first, for they were both of them dead, and had been interred near my Habitation by my own Hand; but one of them having multiply'd by I know not what Kind of Creature, these were two which I had preserv'd tame, whereas the rest run wild in the Woods, and became indeed troublesom to me at last; for they would often come into my House, and plunder me too, till at last I was obliged to shoot them, and did kill a great many ; at length they left me with this Attendance, and in this plentiful Manner I liv'd; neither could I be said to want ROBINSON CRUSOE. - 151 any thing but Society, and of that in some time after this, I was like to have too much. I was something impatient, as I have observ'd, to have the Use of my Boat ; though very loth to run any more Hazards ; and therefore sometimes I sat contriving Ways to get her about the Island, and at other Times I sat my self down contented enough without her. But I had a strange Uneasiness in my Mind to go down to the Point of the Island, where, as I have said, in my last Ramble, I went up the Hill to see how the Shore lay, and how the Current set, that I might see what I had to do : This In- clination encreas'd upon me every Day, and at length I resolv'd to travel thither by Land, following the Edge of the Shore ; I -did so : But had any one in England been to * meet such a Man as I was, it must either have frighted them, or rais'd a great deal of Laughter; and as I frequently stood still to look at my self, I could not but smile at the Notion of my travelling through Yorkshire with such an Equipage, and in such a Dress : Be pleas'd to take a Sketch of my Figure as follows. I had a great high shapeless Cap, made of ^ Goat's Skin, with a Flap hanging down behind, as well to keep the Sun from me, as to shoot the Rain off from running into my Neck ; nothing being so hurtful in these Climates, as the Rain upon the Flesh under the Cloaths. I had a short Jacket of Goat-Skin, the Skirts coming down to about the middle of my Thighs ; and a Pair of open-kneed'd Breeches of the same; the Breeches were made of the Skin of an old He-goat, whose Hair hung down such a Length on either Side, that like Pantaloons it reach'd to the middle of my Legs ; Stockings and Shoes I had none, but had made me a Pair of some-things, I scarce know what to call them, like Buskins, to flap over my Legs, and lace on either Side like Spatter-dashes ; but of a most barbarous Shape, as indeed were all the rest of my Cloaths. I had on a broad Belt of Goat's-Skin dryed, which I drew together with two Thongs of the same, instead of 152 ADVENTURES OF Buckles, and in a kind of a Frog on either Side of this. Instead of a Sword and a Dagger, hung a httle Saw and a Hatchet, one on one Side, one on the other. I had another Belt not so broad, and fasten'd in the same Man- ner, which hung over my Shoulder ; and at the End of it, under my left Arm, hung two Pouches, both made of Goat's-Skin too ; in one of which hung my Powder, in the other my Shot : At my Back I carried my Basket, on my Shoulder my Gun, and over my Head a great clumsy ugly Goat-Skin Umbrella, but which, after all, was the most necessary Thing I had about me, next to my Gun: As for my Face, the Colour of it was really not so Moletta, hke as one might expeft from a Man not at all careful of it, and living within nineteen Degrees of the E^quinox. My Beard I had once sufifer'd to grow till it was about a quarter of a Yard long ; but as I had both Scissars and Razors sufficient, I had cut it pretty short, except what grew on my upper Lip, which I had trimm'd into a large Pair of Mahometan Whiskers, such as I had seen worn by some Turks, who I saw at Salkej for the Moors did not wear such, tho' the Turks did; of these Muschatoes or Whiskers, I will not say they were long enough to hang my Hat upon them ; but they were of a Length and Shape monstrous enough, and such as in England would have pass'd for frightful. But all this is by the by ; for as to my Figure, I had so few to observe me, that it was of no manner of Conse- quence ; so I say no more to that Part. In this kind of Figure I went my new Journey, and was out five or six Days. I travell'd first along the Sea-Shore, diredlly to the Place where I first brought my Boat to an Anchor, to get up upon the Rocks ; and having no Boat now to take care of, I went over the Land a nearer Way, to the same Height that I was upon before ; when looking forward to the Point of the Rocks which lay out, and which I was oblig'd to double with my Boat, as is said above, I was surpriz'd to see the Sea all smooth and quiet, no Ripling, no Motion, no Current, any more there than in other Places; ROBINSON CRUSOE. 153 I was at a strange Loss to understand this, and resolv'd to spend some Time in the observing it, to see if nothing from the Sets of the Tide had occasion'd it ; but I was presently convinced how it was, viz. That the Tide of Ebb setting from the West, and joyning with the Current of Waters from some great River on the Shore, must be the occasion of this Current ; and that according as the Wind blew more forcibly from the West, or from the North, this Current came near, or went farther from the Shore ; for waiting thereabouts till Evening, I went up to the Rock again, and then the Tide of Ebb being made, I plainly saw the Current again as before, only, that it run farther of, being near half a League from the Shore; whereas in my Case, it set close upon the Shore, and hurried me and my Canoe along with it, which at another Time it would not have done. This Observation convinc'd me, That I had nothing to do but to observe the Ebbing and the Flowing of the Tide, and I might very easily bring my Boat about the' , Island again: But when I began to think of putting it in Praflice, I had such a Terror upon my Spirits at the Remembrance of the Danger I had been in, that I could not think of it again with any Patience ; but on the con- trary, I took up another Resolution, which was more safe, though more laborious ; and this was. That I would build, or rather make me another Periagua or Canoe; and so have one for one Side of the Island, and one for the other. You are to understand, that now I had, as I may call it, two Plantations in the Island ; one my little Fortifica- tion or Tent, with the Wall about it under the Rock, with the Cave behind me, which by this Time I had enlarg'd into several Apartments, or Caves, one within another. One of these, which was the dryest, and largest, and had a. Door out beyond my Wall or Fortification, that is to say, beyond where my Wall joyn'd to the Rock, was all fill'd up with the large Earthen Pots, of which I have given an Account, and with fourteen or fifteen great Baskets, which would hold five or six Bushels each, IS4 ADVENTURES OF where I laid up my Stores of Provision, especially my Corn, some in the Ear cut off short from the Straw, and the other rubb'd out with my Hand. As for my Wall made, as before, with long Stakes or Piles, those Piles grew all like Trees, and were by this Time grown so big, and spread so very much, that there was not the least Appearance to any one's View of any Habitation behind them. Near this Dwelling of mine, but a little farther within the Land, and upon lower Ground, lay my two Pieces of Corn-Ground, which I kept duly cultivated and sow'd, and which duly yielded me their Harvest in its Season ; and whenever I had occasion for more Corn, I had more Land adjoyning as fit as that. Besides this, I had my Country Seat, and I had now a tolerable Plantation there also ; for first, I had my little Bower, as I call'd it, which I kept in Repair; that is to say, I kept the Hedge which circled it in, constantly fitted up to its usual Height, the Ladder standing always in the Inside ; I kept the Trees which at first were no more than my Stakes, but were now grown very firm and tall ; I kept them always so cut, that they might spread and grow- thick and wild, and make the more agreeable Shade, which they did effeftually to my Mind. In the Middle of this I had my Tent always standing, being a piece of a Sail spread over Poles set up for that Purpose, and which never wanted any Repair or Renewing ; and under this I had made me a Squab or Couch, with the Skins of the Creatures I had kill'd, and with other soft Things, and a Blanket laid on them, such as belong'd to our Sea-Bed- ding, which I had saved, and a great Watch-Coat to cover me ; and here, whenever I had Occasion to be absent from my chief Seat, I took up my Country Habitation. Adjoyning to this I had my Enclosures for my Cattle, that is to say, my Goats : And as I had taken an incon- ceivable deal of Pains to fence and enclose this Ground, so I was so uneasy to see it kept entire, lest the Goats should break thro', that I never left off till with infinite ROBINSON CRUSOE. 155 Labour I had stuck the Outside of the Hedge sO full of stnall Stakes, and so near to one another, that it was rather a Pale than a Hedge, and there was scarce Room to put a Hand thro' between them, which afterwards when those Stakes grew, as they all did in the next rainy Season, made the Enclosure strong like a Wall, indeed stronger than any Wall. This will testify for me that I was not idle, and that I spared no Pains to bring to pass whatever appear'd necessary for my comfortable Support ; for I con- sider'd the keeping up a Breed of tame Creatures thus at my Hand, would be a living Magazine of Flesh, Milk, Butter and Cheese for me, as long as I liv'd in the Place, if it were to be forty Years ; and that keeping them in my Reach, depended entirely upon my perfefling my En- closures to such a Degree, that I might be sure of keep- ing them together; which by this Method indeed I so effeftually secur'd, that when these little Stakes began to grow, I had planted them so very thick, I was forced to pull some of them up again. In this Place also I had my Grapes growing, which I principally depended on for my Winter Store of Raisins ; and which I never fail'd to preserve very carefully, as the best and most agreeable Dainty of my whole Diet ; and indeed they were not agreeable only, but physical, whole- some, nourishing, and refreshing, to the last Degree. As this was also about half Way between my other Habitation and the Place where I had laid up my Boat, I generally sta^d, and lay here in my Way thither ; for I used frequently to visit my Boat, and I kept all Things about or belonging to her in very good Order ; sometimes I went out in her to divert my self, but no more hazardous Voyages would I go, nor scarce ever above a Stone's Cast or two from the Shore, I was so apprehensive of being hurried out of my Knowledge again by the Currents, or Winds, or any other Accident. But now I come to a new Scene of my Life. It happen'd one Day about Noon going towards my , 156 ADVENTURES OF Boat, I was exceedingly surpriz'd with the Print of a Man's naked Foot on the Shore, which was very plain to be seen in the Sand : I stood like one Thunder-struck, or as if I had seen an Apparition ; I listen'd, I look'd round me, I could hear nothing, nor see any Thing; I went up to a rising Ground to look farther ; I went up the Shore and down the Shore, but it was all one, I could see no other Impression but that one, I went to it again to see if there were any more, and to observe if it might not be my Fancy; but there was no Room for that, for there was exaftly the very Print of a Foot, Toes, Heel, and every Part of a Foot ; how it came thither, I knew not, nor could in the least imagine. But after innumerable fluttering Thoughts, like a Man perfedlly confus'd and out of my self, I came Home to my Fortification, not feeling, as we say, the Ground I went on, but terrify'd to the last Degree, looking behind me at every two or three Steps, mistaking- 1 every Bush and Tree, and fancying every Stump at a Distance to be a Man ; nor is it possible to describe how many various Shapes affrighted Imagination represented Things to me in; how many wild Ideas were found every Moment in my Fancy, and what strange unaccountable Whimsies came into my Thoughts by the Way. When I came to my Castle, for so I think I call'd it ever after this, I fled into it like one pursued ; whether I went over by the Ladder as first contriv'd, or went in at the Hole in the Rock, which I call'd a Door, I cannot remember ; no, nor could I remember the. next Morning ; for never frighted Hare fled to Cover, or Fox to Earth, with more Terror of Mind than I to this Retreat. I slept none that Night ; the Farther I was from the Occasion of my Fright, the greater my Apprehensions were ; which is something contrary to the Nature of such Things, and especially to the usual Praftise of all Crea- tures in Fear : But I was so embarrass'd with ijiy owji frightful Ideas of the Thing, that I form'd nothing but dismal Imaginations to my self, even tho' I was now a great way off it. Sometimes J fancy'd it must be the ROBINSON CRUSOE. 157 t)evil ; and Reason joyn'd in with ine upon this Supposi- tion : For how should any other Thing in human Shape come into the Place ? Where was the Vessel that brought them? What Marks was there of any other Footsteps? And how was it possible a Man should come there ? But then to think that Satan should take human Shape Upon him in such a Place where there could be no manner of Occasion for it, but to leave the Print of his Foot behind him, and that even for no Purpose too, for he could not be sure I should see it; this was an Amusement the other Way ; I considered that the Devil might have found out abundance of other Ways to have terrify'd me than this of the single Print of a Foot. That as I liv'd quite on the other Side of the Island, he would never have been so simple to leave a Mark in a Place where it was Ten Thousand to one whether I should ever see it or not, and in the Sand too, which the first Surge of the Sea upon a high Wind would have defac'd entirely : All this seem'd inconsistent with the Thing it self, and with all the Notions we usually entertain of the Subtilty of the Devil. Abundance of such Things as these assisted to argue me out of all Apprehensions of its being the Devil : And I presently concluded then, that it must be some more dangerous Creature, (viz.) That it must be some of the Savages of the main Land over-against me, who had wandered out to Sea in their Ca?ioes, and either driven by the Currents, or by contrary Winds, had made the Island; and had been on Shore, but were gone away again to Sea, being as loth, perhaps, to have stay'd in this desolate Island, as I would have been to have had them. While these Refledlions were rowling upon my Mind, I was very thankful in my Thoughts, that I was so happy as not to be thereabouts at that Time, or that they did not see my Boat, by which they would have concluded that some Inhabitants had been in the Place, and perhaps have search'd farther for me: Then terrible Thoughts- rack'd my Imagination about their having found my IS8 ADVENTURES OF Boat, and that there were People here ; and that if so, I should certainly have them come again in greater Numbers and devour me; that if it should happen so that they should not find me, yet they would find my Enclosure, destroy all my Corn, carry away all my Flock of tame Goats, and I should perish at last for meer Want. Thus my Fear banish'd all my Religious Hope; all that former Confidence in God, which was founded upon such wonderful Experience as I had had of his Goodness, now vanish'd, as if he that had fed me by Miracle hitherto, could not preserve by his Power the Provision which he had made for me by his Goodness : I reproach'd my self with my Easiness, that would not sow any more Corn one Year than would just serve me till the next Season, as if no Accident could intervene to prevent my enjoying the Crop that was upon the Ground; and this I thought so just a Reproof, that I resolv'd for the future to have two or three Years Corn beforehand, so that whatever might come, I might not perish for want of Bread. How strange a Chequer- Work of Providence is the Life of Man! and by what secret differing Springs are the Affeftions hurryd about, as differing Circumstances pre- sent! To Day we love what to Morrow we hate ; to Day we seek what to Morrow we shun ; to Day we desire what to Morrow we fear ; nay, even tremble at the Apprehen- sions of: This was exemplified in me at this time in the most lively Manner imaginable : for I whose only Afflic- tion was, that I seem'd banished from human Society, that 1 was alone, circumscrib'd by the boundless Ocean, cut off from Mankind, and condemn'd to what I call'd silent Life ; that I was as one whom Heaven thought not worthy to be number'd among the Living, or to appear among the rest of his Creatures ; that to have seen one of my own Species would have seem'd to me a Raising me from Death to Life, and the greatest Blessing that Hea- ven it self, next to the supreme Blessing of Salvation, could bestow ; / say, that I should now tremble at the very Apprehensions of seeing a Man, and was ready to ROBINSON CRUSOE. 159 sink into the Ground at but the Shadow or silent Ap- pearance of a Man's having set his Foot in the Island. Such is the uneven State of human Life: And it afforded me a great many curious Speculations afterwards, when I had a little recovered my first Surprize; I con- sider'd that this was the Station of Life the infinitely wise and good Providence of God had determin'd for me ; that as I could not foresee what the Ends of Divine Wisdom might be in all this, so I was not to dispute his Sovereignty, who, as I was his Creature, had an un- doubted Right by Creation to govern and dispose of me absolutely as he thought fit ; and who, as I was a Creature who had offended him, had likewise a judicial Right to condemn me to what Punishment he thought fit ; and that it was my part to submit to bear his Indignation, because I had sinn'd against him. I then reflefled that God, who was not only Righteous but Omnipotent, as he had thought fit thus to punish and afifliift me, so he was able to deliver me ; that if he did not think fit to do it, 'twas my unquestion'd Duty to resign my self absolutely and entirely to his Will ; and on the other hand, it was my Duty also to hope in him, pray to him, and quietly to attend the Didlates and Diredlions of his daily Providence. These Thoughts took me up many Hours, Days, nay, I may say, Weeks and Months ; and one particular Effedl of my Cogitations on this Occasion, I cannot omit, vis. One Morning early, lying in my Bed, and fiU'd with Thought about my Danger from the Appearance of Savages, I found it discompos'd me very much; upon which those Words of the Scripture came into my Thoughts, Call upon me in the Day of Trouble, and I will deliver, and thou shall glorify me. Upon this, rising chearfuUy out of my Bed, my Heart was not only comforted, but I was guided and encouraged to pray earnestly to God for Deliverance : When I had done praying, I took up my Bible, and opening it to read, the first Words that presented to me, were, Wait on the l6o ADVENTURES OF 2Lord, and be of good Cheer, and he shall strengthen thy Heart; wait, T say, on the Lord, It is impossible to express the Comfort this gave me. In Answer, I thank- fully laid down the Book, and was no more sad, at least, not on that Occasion. In the middle of these Cogitations, Apprehensions and Refleftions, it came into my Thought one Day^ that all this might be a meer Chimera of my own ; and that this Foot might be the Print of my own Foot, when I came on Shore from my Boat; This chear'd me up a little too, and I began to perswade my self it was all a Delusion; that it was nothing else but my own Foot; and why might not I come that way from the Boat, as well as I was going that way to the Boat; again, I consider'd also that I could by no means tell for certain where I had trod, and where I had not ; and that if at last this was only the Print of my own Foot, I had play'd the part of those Fools, who strive to make Stories of Speftres and Appa- ritions, and then are frighted at them more than anybody. Now I began to take Courage, and to peep abroad again; for I had not stirr'd out of my Castle for three Days and Nights ; so that I began to starve for Provision ; for I had little or nothing within Doors, but some Barley Cakes and Water. Then I knew that my Goats wanted to be milk'd too, which usually was my Evening Diver- sion ; and the poor Creatures were in great Pain and Inconvenience for want of it; and indeed, it almost spoil'd some of them, and almost dry'd up their Milk. Heartning my self therefore with the Belief that this was nothing but the Print of one of my own Feet, and so I might be truly said to start at my own Shadow, I began to go abroad again, and went to my Country House, to milk my Flock ; but to see with what Fear I went forward, how often I look'd behind me, how I was ready every now and then to lay down my Basket, and run for my Life, it would have made any one have thought I was haunted with an evil Conscience, or that I had been lately most terribly frighted, and so indeed I had. ROBINSON CRUSOE. i6i However, as I went down thus two or three Days, and having seen nothing, I began to be a httle bolder ; and to think there was really nothing in it, but my own Imagina- tion : But I cou'd not perswade my self fully of this, till I should go down to the Shore again, and see this Print of a Foot, and measure it by my own, and see if there was any Similitude or Fitness, that I might be assur'd it was my own Foot: But when I came to the Place, First, It appeared evidently to me, that when I laid up my Boat, I could not possibly be on Shore any where there about. Secondly, When I came to measure the Mark with my own Foot, I found my Foot not so large by a great deal ; both these things fiU'd my Head with new Imaginations, and gave me the Vapours again, to the highest Degree ; so that I shook with cold, like one in an Ague : And I went Home again, fill'd with the Belief that some Man or Men had been on Shore there; or in short, that the Island was inhabited, and I might be surpriz'd before I was aware ; and what course to take for my Security I knew not. O what ridiculous Resolution Men take, when possess'd with Fear! It deprives them of the Use of those Means which Reason offers for their Relief. The first Thing I propos'd to my self, was, to throw down my Enclosures, and turn all my tame Cattle wild into the Woods, that the Enemy might not find them ; and then frequent the Island in Pr'ospe After I had thus laid the Scheme of my Design, and in my Imagination put it in Pradlice, I continually jnade my Tour every Morning up to the Top of the Hill, which was from my Castle, as I call'd it, about three Miles, or more, to see if I could observe any Boats upon the Sea, coming near the Island, or standing over towards it; but I began to tire of this hard Duty, after I had for two or three Mohths constantly kept my Watch ; but came always back without any Discovery, there having not in all that Time been the least Appearance, not only on, or near the Shore; but not on the whole Ocean, so far as my Eyes or Glasses could reach every Way. As long as I kept up my daily Tour to the Hill to look out, so long also I kept up the Vigour of my Design, and my Spirits seem'd to be all the while in a suitable Form, for so outragious an Execution as the killing twenty or thirty naked Savages, for an Offence which I had not at all entred into a Discussion of in my Thoughts, any far- ther than my Passions were at first fir'd by the Horror I ROBINSON CRUSOE. 173 conceiv'd at the unnatural Custom of that People of the Country, who it seems had been suffer'd by Providence in his wise Disposition of the World, to have no other Guide than that of their own abominable and vitiated Passions ; and consequently were left, and perhaps had been so for some Ages, to afl such horrid Things, and receive such dreadful Customs, as nothing but Nature entirely abandon'd of Heaven, and afted by some Hellish Degeneracy, could have run them, into: But now when, as I have said, I began to be weary of the fruitless Excursion which 1 had made so long, and so far, every Morning in vain, so my Opinion of the Adlion it self began to alter, and I began with cooler and calmer Thoughts to consider what it was I was going to engage in. What Authority or Call I had, to pretend to be Judge and Executioner upon these Men as Criminals, whom Heaven had thought fit for so many Ages to suffer unpunish'd, to go on, and to be, as it were, the Executioners of his Judgments one upon another. How far these People were Offenders against me, and what Right I had to engage in the Quarrel of that Blood, which they shed promiscuously one upon another. I debated this very often with my self thus; How do I know what God himself judges in this particular Case; it is certain these People either do not commit this as a Crime ; it is not against their own Consciences reproving, or their Light reproaching them. They do not know it to be an Offence, and then commit it in Defiance of Divine Justice, as we do in almost all the Sins we commit. They think it no more a Crime to kill a Captive taken in War, than we do to kill an Ox ; nor to eat humane Flesh, than we do to eat Mutton. When I had consider'd this a little, it follow'd neces- sarily, that I was certainly in the Wrong in it ; that these People were not Murtherers in the Sense that I had before condemned them, in my Thoughts ; any more than those Christians were Murtherers, who often put to Death the Prisoners taken in Battle ; or more frequently, upon many Occasions, put whole Troops of Men to the Sword, without 174 ADVENTURES. OF giving Quarter, though they threw down their Arms and submitted. In the next Place it occurr'd to me, that albeit the Usage they thus gave one another, was thus brutish and inhuman ; yet it was really nothing to me : These People had done me no Injury. That if they attempted me, or I saw it necessary for my immediate Preservation to fall upon them, something might be said for it ; but that as I was yet out of their Power, and they had really no Know- ledge of me, and consequently no Design upon me ; and therefore it could not be just for me to fall upon them. That this would justify the Condudl of the Spaniards in all their Barbarities praftis'd in America, and where they destroy'd Millions of these People, who however they were Idolaters and Barbarians, and had several bloody and barbarous Rites in their Customs, such as sacrificing human Bodies to their Idols, were yet, as to the Spaniards, very innocent People ; and that the rooting them out of the Country, is spoken of with the utmost Abhorrence and Detestation, by even the Spaniards themselves, at this Time, and by all other Christian Nations oi Europe, as a meer Butchery, a bloody and unnatural Piece of Cruelty, unjustifiable either to God or Man; and such, as for which the very Name of a Spaniard is reckon'd to be frightful and terrible to all People of Humanity, or of Christian Compassion : As if the Kingdom of Spain were particularly Eminent for the Produdl of a Race of Men, who were without Principles of Tenderness, or the common Bowels of Pity to the Miserable, which is reckon'd to .be a Mark of generous Temper in the Mind. These Considerations really put me to a Pause, and to a kind of a Full-stop ; and I began by little and little to be off of my Design, and to conclude, I had taken wrong Measures in my Resolutions to attack the Savages; that it was not my Business to meddle with them, unless they first attack'd me, and this it was my Business if possible to prevent; but that if I were discover'd, and attack'd, then I knew 'my Duty. / ROBINSON CRUSOE. i75 On the other hand, I argu'd with my self, That this really was the way not to deliver my self, but entirely to ruin and destroy niy self; for unless I was sure to kill every one that not only should be on Shore at that Time, but that should ever come on Shore afterwards, if but one of them escap'd, to tell their Country People what had happen'd, they would come over again by Thousands to revenge the Death of their Fellows, and I should only bring upon my self a certain Destruray God, and live new Life. Alas ! Friday, says I, thou knowest not what thou sa^st, I am but an ignorant Man my self. Yes, yes, says he, you teachee me Good, you teachee them Good. No, no, Friday, says I, you shall go without me, leave me here to live by my self, as I did before. He Jook'd confus'd again at that Word, and running to one of the Hatchets which he used to wear, he takes it up hastily, comes and gives it me. What must I do with this ? says I to him. You take kill Friday, says he. What must I kill you for? said I again. He returns very quick, What you send Friday away for? take killYx\Asy, no send Friday away. This he spoke so earnestly, that I saw Tears stand in his .Eyes. In a Word, I so plainly discover'd the utmost Affedlion in him to me, and a firm Resolution in him, that I told him then, and often after, that I would never send him away from me, if he was willing to stay with me. Upon the Whole, as I found by all his Discourse a settled Affedlion to me, and that nothing should part him from me, so I found all the Foundation of his Desire to go to his own Country, was laid in his ardent Affedlion to the People, and his Hopes, of my doing them good; a ROBINSON CRUSOE. 231 Thing which as I had no Notion of my self, so I had not the least Thought or Intention, or Desire of undertaking it. But still I found a strong Inclination to my attempting an Escape, as above, found on the Supposition gather'd from the Discourse, {viz.) That there were seventeen bearded Men there; and therefore, without any more Delay, I went to work with Friday to find out a great Tree proper to fell, and make a large Periagua or Canoe to undertake the Voyage. There were Trees enough in the Island to have built a little Fleet, not of Periaguas and Canoes, but even of good large Vessels. But the main Thing I look'd at, was to get one so near the Water that we might launch it when it was made, to avoid the Mistake I committed at first. At last, Friday pit,ch'd upon a Tree, for I found he knew much better than I what Kind of Wood was fittest for it ; nor can I tell, to this Day, what Wood to call the Tree we cut down, except that it was very like the Tree we call Fustic, or iDCtween that and the Nicaragua Wood, for it was much of the same Colour and Smell. Friday was for burning the Hollow or Cavity of this Tree out to make it for a Boat ; But I shew'd him how rather to cut it out with Tools ; which, after I had shew'd him how to use, he did very handily, and in about a Month's hard Labour, we finish'd it, and made it very handsome, es- pecially when with our Axes, which I shew'd him how to handle, we cut and hew'd the Out-side into the true Shape of a Boat ; after this, however, it cost us near a Fortnight's Time to get her along, as it were, Inch by Inch upon great Rowlers into the Water. But when she was in, she wovfld have carry'd twenty Men with great Ease. When she was in the Water, and tho' she was so big, it amaz'd me to see with what Dexterity and how swift my Man Friday would manage her, turn her, and paddle her along; so I ask'd him if he would, and if we might venture over in her ; Yes, he said, he venture over in her ■very well, thcf great blow Wind. However, I had a 232 ADVENTURES OF farther Design that he knew nothing of, and that was to make a Mast and Sail, and to fit her with an Anchor and Cable : As to a Mast, that was easy enough to get ; so I pitch'd upon a strait young Cedar-Tree, which I found near the Place, and which there was great Plenty of in the Island ; and I set Friday to work to cut it down, and gave him Direflions how to shape and order it. But as to the Sail, that was my particular Care ; I knew I had old Sails, or rather Pieces of old Sails enough; but as I had had them now 26 Years by me, and had not been very careful to preserve them, not imagining that I should ever have this kind of Use for them, I did not doubt but they were all rotten, and indeed most of them were so ; however, 1 found two Pieces which appeared pretty good, and with these I went to work, and with a great deal of Pains, and awkward tedious stitching (you may be sure) for Want of Needles, I at length made a Three-corner'd. ugly Thing, like what we call in England, a Shoulder of Mutton Sail, to go with a Boom at Bottom, and a little short Sprit at the Top, such as usually our Ships Long- Boats sail with, and such as I best knew how to manage ; becduse it was such a one as I had to the Boat in which I made my Escape from Barbary, as related in the first Part of my Story. I was near two Months performing this last Work, viz. rigging and fitting my Mast and Sails ; for I finish'd them very compleat, making a . small Stay, and a Sail, or Fore- sail to it, to assist, if we should turn to Windward ; and which was more than all, I fix'd a Rudder to the Stern of her, to steer with ; and tho' I was but a bunghng Ship- wright, yet as I knew the Usefulness, and even Necessity of such a Thing, I apply'd my self with so much Pains to do it, that at last I brought it to pass, tho' considering the many dull Contrivances I had for it that fail'd, I think it cost me almost as much Labour as making the Boat. After all this was done too, I had my Man Friday to teach as to what belong'd to the Navigation of my Boat ; for tho' he knew very well how to paddle a Canoe, he knew ROBINSON CRUSOE. 233 nothing what belong'd to a Sail and a Rudder, and was the most amaz'd when he saw me work the Boat too and again in the Sea by the Rudder, and how the Sail gyb'd, and fill'd this Way or that Way, as the Course we sail'd chang'd; I say, when he saw this, he stood like one as- tonish'd and amaz'd : However, with a little Use, I made all these Things familiar to him ; and he became an expert Sailor, except that as to the Compass, I could make him understand very Uttle of that. On the other Hand, as there was very little cloudy Weather, and seldom or never any Fogs in those Parts, there was the less Occasion for a Compass, seeing the Stars were always to be seen by Night, and the Shore by Day, except in the rainy Seasons, and then no Body cared to stir abroad, either by Land or Sea. I was now enter'd on the seven and twentieth Year of my Captivity in this Place ; tho' the thx'ee last Years that I had this Creature with me, ought rather to be left out of the Account, my Habitation being quite of another Kind than in all the rest of the Time. I kept the Anniversary of my landing here with the same Thankfulness to God for his Mercies, as at first ; and if I had such Cause of Acknow- ledgment at first, I had much more so now, having such additional Testimonies of the Care of Providence over me, and the great Hopes I had of being effedlually and speedily deliver'd; for I had an invincible Impression upon my Thoughts, that my Deliverance was at hand, and that I should not be another Year in this Place: However, I went on with my Husbandry, digging, planting, fencing, as usual ; I gather'd and cur'd my Grapes, and did every necessary Thing, as before. The rainy Season was in the mean Time upon me, when I kept more within Doors than at other Times ; so I had stow'd our new Vessel as secure as we could, bringing her up into the Creek, where as I said, in the Beginning I landed my Rafts from the Ship, and haling her up to the Shore, at High Water Mark, I made my Man Friday dig a little Dock, just big enough to hold her, and just 234 ADVENTURES OF deep enough to give her Water enough to float in; and then, when the Tide was out, we made a strong Dam cross the End of it, to keep the Water out ; and so she lay- dry, as to the Tide from the Sea; and to keep the Rain off, we laid a great many Boughs of Trees, so thick, that she was as well thatch' d as a House ; and thus we waited for the Month of November and Deceinber, in which I design'd to make my Adventure. When the settled Season began to come in, as the Thought of my Design return'd with the fair Weather, I was preparing daily for the Voyage ; and the first Thing I did, was to lay by a certain Quantity of Provisions, being the Stores for our Voyage ; and intended, in a Week or a Fortnight's Time, to open the Dock, and launch out our Boat. I was busy one Morning upon some Thing of this kind, when I call'd to Friday, and bid him go to the Sea Shore, and see if he could find a Turtle, or Tortoise, a Thing which we generally got once a Week, for the Sake of the Eggs, as well as the Flesh : Friday had not been long gone, when he came running back, and flew over my outer Wall, or Fence, like one that felt not the Ground, or the Steps he set his Feet on ; and before I had time to speak to him, he cries out to me, O Master! O Master' O Sorrow! bad! What's the Matter, Friday, says I; O yonder, there, says he, one, two, three Canoe! one, two, three! By his way of speakingj I concluded there were six ; but on enquiry, I found it was. but three : Well, Friday, says I, do not be frighted ; so I heartned him up as well as I could: However, I saw the poor Fellow was most terribly scar'd ; for nothing ran in his Head but that they were come to look for him, and would cut him in Pieces, and eat him; and the poor Fellow trembled so, that I scarce knew what to do with him: I comforted him as well as I could, and told him I was in as much Danger as he, and that they would eat me as well as him ; but, says I, Friday, we must resolve to fight them; Can you fight, Friday? Me shoot, says he, but there come many great Number. No matter for that, said I again, our Guns will ROBINSON CRUSOE. 235 fright them that we do not kill ; so I ask'd him, Whether if I resolv'd to defend him, he would defend me, and stand by me, and do just as I bid him? He said, Me die, when you bid die, Master; so I went and fetch'd a good Dram of Rum, and gave him ; for I had been so good a Husband of my Rum, that I had a great deal left : When he had drank it, I made him take the two Fowling-Pieces, which we always carry* d, and load them with large Swan-Shot, as big as small Pistol Bullets ; then I took four Muskets, and loaded them with two Slugs, and five small Bullets each ; and my two Pistols I loaded with a Brace of Bullets each ; I hung my great Sword as usual, naked by my Side, and gave Friday his Hatchet. When I had thus prepar'd my self, I took my Perspec- tive-Glass, and went up to the Side of the Hill, to see what I could discover ; and I found quickly, by my Glass, that there were one and twenty Savages, three Prisoners, and three Canoes j and that their whole Business seem'd to be the triumphant Banquet upon these three humane Bodies, (a barbarous Feast indeed) but nothing else more than as I had observ'd was usual with them. I observ'd also, that they were landed not where they had, done when Friday made his Escape, but nearer to my Creek, where the Shore was low, and where a thick Wood came close almost down to the Sea : This, with the Abhorrence of the inhumane Errand these Wretches came about, fiU'd me with such Indignation, that I came down again to Friday and told him, I was resolv'd to go down to them, and kill them all ; and ask'd him, If he would stand by me ? He was now gotten over his Fright, and his Spirits being a httle rais'd, with the Dram I had given him, he was very chearful, and told me, as before, he •would die, when I bid die. In this Fit of Fury, I took first and divided the Arms which I had charg'd, as before, between us : I gave Friday one Pistol to stick in his Girdle, and three Guns upon his Shoulder ; and I took one Pistol, and the other three my self; and in this Posture we march'd out : I took a small 236 ADVENTURES OF Bottle of Rum in my Pocket, and gave Friday a large Bag, with more Powder and Bullet ; and as to Orders, I charg'd him to keep close behind me, and not to stir, or shoot, or do any Thing, till I bid him ; and in the mean Time, not to speak a Word : In this Posture I fetch'd a Compass to my Right-Hand of near a Mile, as well to get over the Creek, as to get into the Wood ; so that I might come within shoot of them before I should be discovered, which I had seen by my Glass it was easy to do. While I was making this March, my former Thoughts returning, I began to abate my Resolution; I do not mean, that I entertain'd any Fear of their Number ; for as they were naked, unarm'd Wretches, 'tis certain I was superior to them ; nay, though I had been alone ; but it occurr'd to my Thoughts, What Call? What Occasion? much less. What Necessity I was in to go and dip my Hands in Blood, to attack People, who had neither done, or intended me any Wrong? Who as to me were innocent, and whose barbarous Customs were their own Disaster, being in them a Token indeed of God's having left them, with the other Nations of that Part of the World, to such Stupidity, and to such inhumane Courses; but did not call me to take upon me to be a Judge of their Adlions, much less an Executioner of his Justice; that whenever he thought fit, he would take the Cause into his own Hands, and by national Vengeance punish them as a People, for national Crimes ; but that in the mean time, it was none of my Business ; that it was true, Friday might justify it, because he was a declar'd Enemy, and in a State of War with those very particular People ; and it was lawful for him to attack them ; but I could not say the same with respefl to me. These Things were so warmly press'd upon my Thoughts, all the way as I went, that I resolv'd I would only go and place my self near -them, that I might observe their barbarous Feast, and that I would adl then as God should direfl; but that unless something oifer'd that was more a Call to me than yet I knew of, I would not meddle with them. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 237 With this Resolution I enter'd the Wood, and with all possible Waryness and Silence, Friday following close at my Heels, I march'd till I came to the Skirt of the Wood, on the Side which was next to them; only that one Corner of the Wood lay between me and them ; here I call'd softly to Friday, and shewing him a great Tree, which was just at the Corner of the Wood, I bad him go to the Tree, and bring me Word if he could see there plainly what they were doing ; he did so, and came immediately back to me, and told me they might be plainly yiew'd there ; that they were all about their Fire, eating the Flesh of one of their Prisoners; and that another lay bound upon the Sand, a little from them, which he said they would kill next, and which fir'd all the very Soul within me ; he told me it was not one of their Nation ; but one of the bearded Men, who he had told me of, that came to their Country in the Boat : I was fiU'd with Horror at the very naming the white-bearded Man, and going to the Tree, I saw plainly by my Glass, a white Man who lay upon the Beach of the Sea, with his Hands and his Feet ty'd, with Flags, or Things like Rushes ; and that he was an European, and had Cloaths on. There was another Tree, and a little Thicket beyond it, about fifty Yards nearer to them than the Place where I was, which by going a little way about, I saw I might come at undiscover'd, and that then I should be within half Shot of them ; so I withheld my Passion, though I was indeed enrag'd to the highest Degree, and going back about twenty Paces, I got behind some Bushes, which held all the way, till I came to the other Tree ; and then I came to a little rising Ground, which gave me a full View of them, at the Distance of about eighty Yards. I had now not a Moment to loose ; for nineteen of the dreadful Wretches sat upon the Ground, all close huddled together, and had just sent the other two to butcher the poor Christian, and bring him perhaps Limb by Limb to their Fire, and they were stoop'd down to untie the Bands, at his Feet ; I turn'd to Friday, now Friday, said 238 ADVENTURES OF I, do as I bid thee ; Friday said he would ; then Friday, says I, do exaflly as you see me do, fail in nothing ; so I set down one of the Muskets, and the Fowling-Piece, upon the Ground, and Friday did the like by his ; and with the other Musket, I took my aim at the Savages, bidding him do the like; then asking him, If he was ready ? He said, yes ; then fire at them, said I ; and the same Moment I fir'd also. Friday took his Aim so much better than I, that on the Side that he shot, he kill'd two of them, and wounded three more; and on my Side, I kill'd one, and wounded two: They were, you may be sure, in a dreadful Con- sternation; and all of them, who were not hurt, jump'd up upon their Feet, but did not immediately know which way to run, or which way to look; fot they knew not from whence their Destrudlion came: Friday kept his Eyes, close upon me, that as I had bid him, he might observe what I did; so as soon as the first Shot was made, I threw down the Piece, and took up the Fowling- Piece, and Friday did the like ; he sees me cock, and present, he did the same again ; Are you ready, Friday? said I ; yes, says he ; let fly then, says I, in the Name of God, and with that I fir'd again among the amaz'd Wretches, and so did Fridays a-nd as our Pieces were now loaden with what I call'd Swan-Shot, or small Pistol Bullets, we found only two drop ; but so many were wounded, that they ran about yelling, and screaming, like mad Creatures, all bloody, and miserably wounded, most of them ; whereof three more fell quickly after, though not quite dead. Now Friday, says I, laying down the discharg'd Pieces, and taking up the Musket, which was yet loaden ; follow me, says I, which he did, with a great deal of Courage ; upon which I rush'd out of the Wood, and shew'd my self, and Friday close at my Foot ; as soon as I perceiv'd they saw me, I shouted as loud as I could, and bad Friday do so too ; and running as fast as I could, ■which by the way was not very fast, being loaden with ROBINSON CRUSOE. 239 Arms as I was, I made diredlly towards the poor Vidlim, who was, as I said, lying upon the Beach, or Shore, between the Place where they sat and the Sea ; the two Butchers who were just going to work with him, had left him, at the Surprize of our first Fire, and fled in a terrible Fright to the Sea-side, and had jump'd into a Canoe, and three more of the rest made the same way : I turn'd to Friday, and bid, him step forwards, and fire at them ; he understood me immediately, and running about forty Yards to be near them, he shot at them, and I thought he had kill'd them all ; for I see them all fall of a Heap into the Boat ; though I saw two of them up again quickly : However, he kill'd two of them, and wounded the third ; so that he lay down in the Bottom of the Boat, as if he had been dead. While my Man Friday fir'd at them, I pull'd out my Knife, and cut the Flags that bound the poor Viftim, and loosing his Hands, and Feet, I lifted him up, and ask'd him in the Portuguese Tongue, What he was? He an- swered in Latin, Christianusj but was so weak and faint, that he could scarce stand, or speak; I took my Bottle out of my Pocket, and gave it him, making Signs that he should drink, which he did ; and I gave him a Piece of Bread, which he eat ; then I ask'd him. What Countryman he was? And he said, Espagniolej and being a little recover'd, let me know by all the Signs he could possibly make, how much he was in my Debt for his Deliverance ; Seignior, said I, with as nmcV, Spanish as I could make up, we will talk afterwards; but we must fight now; if you have any Strength left, take this Pistol, and Sword, and lay about you ; he took them very thankfully, and no sooner had he the Arms in his Hands, but as if they had^ put new Vigour into him, he flew upon his Murtherers, like a Fury, and had cut two of them in Pieces in an instant ; for the Truth is, as the whole was a Surprize to them; so the poor Creatures were so much frighted with the Noise of our Pieces, that they fell down for mere Amazement, and Fear; and had no more Power to 240 ADVENTURES OF attempt their own Escape, than their Flesh had to resist our Shot; and that was the Case of those Five that Friday shot at in the Boat ; for as three of them fell with the Hurt they receiv'd, so the other two fell with the Fright. I kept my Piece in my Hand still, without firing, being willing to keep my Charge ready, because I had given the Spaniard my Pistol, and Sword ; so I call'd to F7'iday, and bad him run up to the Tree, from whence we first fir'd, and fetch the Arms which lay there, that had been discharg'd, which he did with great Swiftness ; and then giving him my Musket, I sat down my self to load all the rest again, and bad them come to me when they wanted: While I was loading these Pieces, there hap- pen'd a fierce Engagement between the Spaniard and one of the Savages, who made at him with one of their great wooden Swords, the same Weapon that was to have kill'd him before, if I had not prevented it ; The Spaniard, who was as bold, and as brave as could be imagin'd, though weak, had fought this Indian a good while, and had cut him two great Wounds on his Head; but the Savage being a stout lusty Fellow, closing in with him, had thrown him down (being faint) and was wringing my Sword out of his Hand, when the Spaniard, tho' under- most, wisely quitting the Sword, drew the Pistol from his Girdle, shot the Savage through the Body, and kill'd him upon the Spot, before I, who was running to help him, could come near him. Friday being now left to his Liberty, pursu'd the flying Wretches with no Weapon in his Hand, but his Hatchet ; and with that he dispatch'd those three, who, as I said before, were wounded at first and fallen, and all the rest he could come up with; and the Spaniard coming to me for a Gun, I gave him one of the Fowling- Pieces, with which he pursu'd two of the Savages, and wounded them both ; but as he was not able to run, they both got from him into the Wood, where Friday pursu'd them, and kill'd one of them; but the other was too ROBINSON CRUSOE. 241 nimble for him; and though he was wounded, yet had plunged himself into the Sea, and swam with all his might off to those two who were left in the Canoe, which three in the Canoe, with one wounded, who we know not whether he dy'd or no, were all that escap'd our Hands of one and twenty : The Account of the rest is as follows ; 3 Kill'd at our first Shot from the Tree. 2 Kill'd at the next Shot. 2 Kill'd by Friday in the Boat. 2 Kill'd by Ditto, of those at first wounded. I Kill'd by Ditto, in the Wood. 3 Kill'd by the Spaniard. 4 Kill'd, being found dropp'd here and there of their Wounds, or kill'd by Friday in his Chase of them. 4 Escap'd in the Boat, whereof one wounded if not dead. 21 In all. Those that were in the Canoe, work'd hard to get out of Gun-Shot; and though Friday made two or three Shot at them, I did not find that he hit any of them: Friday would fain have had me took one of their Canoes, and pursu'd them ; and indeed I was very anxious about their Escape, least carrying the News home to their People, they should come back perhaps with two or three hundred of their Canoes, and devour us by mere Multi- tude ; so I consented to pursue them by Sea, and running to one of their Canoes, I jump'd in, and bad Friday foUow me ; but when I was in the Canoe, I was surpriz'd to find another poor Creature lie there alive, bound Hand and Foot, as the Spaniard ^-as, for the Slaughter, and almost dead with Fear, not knowing what the Matter was ; for he had not been able to look up over the Side of the Boat, he was ty'd so hard, Neck and Heels, and had been ty'd so long, that he had really but little Life in him. R. C. 16 242 ADVENTURES OF I immediately cut the twisted Flags, or Rushes, which they had bound him with, and would have helped him up ; but he could not stand, or speak, but groan'd most piteously, believing it seems still that he was only un- bound in order to be kill'd. When Friday came to him, I bad him speak to him, and tell him of his Deliverance, and pulling out my Bottle, made him give the poor Wretch a Dram, which, with the News of his being deliver'd, reviv'd him, and he sat up in the Boat ; but when Friday came to hear him speak, and look in his Face, it would have mov'd any one to Tears, to have seen how Friday kiss'd him, em- brac'd him, hugg'd him, cry'd, laug:h'd, hollow'd, jump'd about, danc'd, sung, then cry'd again, wrung his Hands, beat his own Face, and Head, and then sung, and jump'd about again, like a distradled Creature: It was a good while before I could make him speak to me, or tell me what was the Matter ; but when he came a little to him- self, he told me, that it was his Father. It is not easy for me to express how it mov'd me to see what Extasy and filial Affeftion had work'd in this poor Savage, at the Sight of his Father, and of his being deliver'd from Death ; nor indeed can I describe half the Extravagancies of his Affedlion after this; for he went into the Boat and out of the Boat a great many times: When he went in to him, he would sit down by him, open his Breast, and hold his Father's Head close to his Bosom, half an Hour together, to nourish it ; then he took his Arms and Ankles, which were numb'd and stiff with the Binding, and chaffed and rubbed them with his Hands ; and I perceiving what the Case was, gave him some Rum out of my Bottle, to rub them with, which did them a great deal of Good. ThisAftion put an End to our Pursuit of the Canoe, with the other Savages, who were now gbtten almost out of Sight ; and it was happy for us that we did not ; for it blew so hard within two Hours after, and before^ they could be gotten a Quarter of their Way, and continued ROBTNSON CRUSOE. 243 blowing so hard all Night, and that from the North-west, which was against them, that I could not suppose their Boat could live, or that they ever reach'd to their own Coast. But to return to Friday, he was so busy about his Father, that I could not find in my Heart to take him off for some time : But after I thought he could leave him a little, I call'd him to me, and he came jumping and laugh- ing, and pleas'd to the highest Extream ; then I ask'd him, If he had given his Father any Bread? He shook his Head, and said, None: Ugly Dog eat all up sel/j so I gave him a Cake of Bread out of a little Pouch I carry'd on Purpose ; I also gave him a Dram for himself, but he would not taste it, but carry'd it to his Father: I had in my Pocket also two or three Bunches of my Raisins, so I gave him a Handful of them for his Father. He had no sooner given his Father these Raisins, but I saw him come out of the Boat, and run away, as if he had been bewitch'd, he run at such a Rate ; for he was the swiftest Fellow of his Foot that ever I saw; I say, he run at such a Rate, that he was out of Sight, as it were, in an instant; and though I call'd, and hollow'd too, after him, it was all one, away he went, and in a Quarter of an Hour, I saw him come back again, though not so fast as he went ; and as he came nearer, I found his Pace was slacker, because he had something in his Hand. When he came up to me, I found he had been quite Home for an Earthen Jugg or Pot to bring his Father some fresh Water, and that he had got two more Cakes, or Loaves of Bread : The Bread he gave me, but the Water he carry'd to his Father : However, as I was very thirsty too, 1 took a little Sup of it. This Water reviv'd his Father more than all the Rum or Spirits I had given him ; for he was just fainting with Thirst. When his Father had drank, I call'd to him to know if there was any Water left ; he said, yes ; and I bad him give it to the poor Spaniard, who was in as much Want of it as his Father ; and I sent one of the Cakes, that 1 6 — 2 244 ADVENTURES OF Friday brought, to the Spaniard too, who was indeed very weak, and was reposing himself upon a grefen Place, under the Shade of a Tree, and whose Limbs were also very stiff, and very much swell'd with the rude Bandage he had been ty'd with. When I saw that upon Friday's coming to him with the Water, he sat up and drank, and took the Bread, and began to eat, I went to him, and gave him a Handful of Raisins ; he look'd up in my Face with all the Tokens of Gratitude and Thankfulness, that could appear in any Countenance ; but was so weak, notwith- standing he had so exerted himself in the Fight, that he could not stand up upon his Feet ; he try'd to do it two or three times, but was really not able, his Ankles were so swell'd and so painful to him ; so I bad him sit still, and caused Friday to rub his Ankles, and bathe them with Rum, as he had done his Father's. I observ'd the poor affeflionate Creature every two Minutes, or perhaps less, all the while he was here, turn'd his Head about, to see if his Father was in the same Place, and Posture, as he left him sitting ; and at last he found he was not to be seen ; at which he started up, and without speaking a Word, flew with that Swiftness to him, that one could scarce perceive his Feet to touch the Ground, as he went : But when he came, he only found he had laid himself down to ease his Limbs ; so Friday came back to me presently, and I then spoke to the Spaniard to let Friday help him up if he could, and lead him to the Boat, and then he should carry him to our Dwelling, where I would take Care of himi But Friday, a lusty strong Fellow, took the Spaniard quite up upon his Back, and carry'd him away to the Boat, and set him dowa softly upon the Side or Gunnel of the Canoe, with his Feet in the inside of it, and then lifted him quite in, and set him close to his Father, and presently stepping out again, launched the Boat off, and paddled it along the Shore faster than I could walk, tho' the Wind blew pretty hard too; so- he brought them both safe into our Creek; and leaving them in the Boat, runs away to fetch the ROBINSON CRUSOE, 245 other Canoe. As he pass'd me, I spoke to him, and ask'd him, whither he went, he told me. Go fetch more Boat; so away he went, Hke the Wind ; . for sure never Man or Horse run like him, and he had the other Canoe in the Creek, almost as soon as I got to it by Land; so he wafted me over, and then went to help our new Guests out of the Boat, which he did ; but they were neither of them able to walk ; so that ^oor Friday knew not what to do. To remedy this, 1 went to Work in my Thought, and calling to Friday to bid them sit down on the Bank while he came to me, I soon made a Kind of Hand-Barrow to lay them on, and Friday and I carry'd them up both together upon it between us : But when we got them to the outside of our Wall or Fortification, we were at a worse Loss than before ; for it was impossible to get them over ; and I was resolv'd not to break it down : So I set to Work again ; and Friday and I, in about 2 Hours time, made a veryhandsomTent, cover'd with old Sails, and above that with Boughs of Trees, being in the Space without our outward Fence, and between that and the Grove of young Wood which I had planted : And here we made them two Beds of such things as I had {viz') of good Rice-Straw, with Blankets laid upon it to lye on, and another to cover them on each Bed. My Island was now peopled, and I thought my self very rich in Subjeifls : and it was a merry Reflection which I frequently made. How like a King I look'd. First of all, the whole Country was my own mere Property; so that I had an undoubted Right of Dominion, idly, My People were perfeflly subjefled : I was absolute Lord and Lawgiver ; they all owed their Lives to me, and were ready to lay down their Lives, if there had been Occasion of it, for me. It was remarkable too, we had but three Sub- jefbs, and they were of three different Rehgions. My Man Friday was a Protestant, his Father was a Pagan and a Cannibal, and the Spaniard was a Papist: However, I allow'd Liberty of Conscience throughout my Dominions : But this is by the Way. 246 ADVENTURES OF As soon as I had secur'd my two weak rescued Prison- ers, and given them Shelter, and a Place to rest them upon, I began to think of making some Provision for them : And the first thing I did, I order'd Friday to take a yearling Goat, betwixt a |Cid and a Goat, out of my particular Flock, to be kill'd, when I cut off the hinder Quarter, and chopping it into small Piec«s, I set Friday to Work to boiling and stewing, and made them a very good Dish, I assure you, of Flesh and Broth, having put some Barley and Rice also into the Broth ; and as I cook'd it without Doors, for I made no Fire within my inner Wall, so I carry'd it all into the new Tent; and having set a Table there for them, I sat down and eat my own Dinner also with them, and, as well as I could, chear'd them and encourag'd them ; Friday being my Interpreter,^ especially to his Father, and indeed to the Spaniard too; for the Spaniard spoke the Language of the Savages pretty well. After we had dined, or rather supped, I order'd Friday to take one of the Canoes, and go and fetch our Muskets and other Fire-Arms, which for Want of time we had left upon the Place of Battle, and the next Day I order'd him to go and bury the dead Bodies of the Savages, which lay open to the Sun, and would presently be offensive ; and I also order'd him to bury the horrid Remains of their barbarous Feast, which I kne\i» were pretty much, and which I could not think of doing my self; nay, I could not bear to see them, if I went that Way: All which he pun(ftually performed, and defaced the very Appearance of the Savages \s€n\% there ; so that when I went again, I could scarce know where it was, otherwise than by the Corner of the Wood pointing to the Place. I then began to enter into a little Conversation with my two new Subjefts; and first I set Friday to enquire of his Father, what he thought of the Escape of the Savages in that Canoe, and whether we might expefi; a Return of them with a Power too great for us to resist : ROBINSON CRUSOE. 247 His first Opinion was, that the Savages in the Boat never could live out the Storm which blew that Night they went off, but must of Necessity be drowned or driven South to those other Shores where they were as sure to be devoured as they were to be drowned if they were cast away ; but as to what they would do if they came safe on Shore, he said he knew not; but it was his Opinion that they were so dreadfully frighted with the Manner of their being attack'd, the Noise and the Fire, that he believed they would tell their People, they were all Kill'd by Thunder and Lightning, not by the Hand of Man, and that the two which appear'd, (z/z!?.) Friday and me, were two Heavenly Spirits or Furies, come down to destroy them, and not Men with Weapons : This he said he knew, because he heard them all cry out so in their Language to one another, for it was impossible to them to conceive that a Man could dart Fire, and speak Thun- der, and kill at a distance without lifting up the Hand, as was done now : And this old Savage was in the right ; for, as I understood since by other Hands, the Savages never attempted to go over to the Island afterwards ; they were so terrified with the Accounts given by those four Men, (for it seems they did escape the Sea) that they believ'd whoever went to that enchanted Island would be de- stroy'd with Fire from the Gods. This however I knew not, and therefore was under continual Apprehensions for a good while, and kept always upon my Guard, me and all my Army ; for as we were now four of us, I would have ventured upon a hun- dred of them fairly in the open Field at any Time. In a little Time, however, no more Canoes appearing, the Fear of their Coming wore off, and I began to take my former Thoughts of a Voyage to the Main into Con- sideration, being likewise assur'd by Fridays Father, that I might depend upon good Usage from their Nation on his Account, if I would go. But my Thoughts were a little suspended, when I had a serious Discourse with the Spaniard, and when I. 248 , ADVENTURES OF understood that there were sixteen more of his Country- men and Portuguese, which is near that Number, who having been cast away, and made their Escape to that Side, liv'd there at Peace indeed with the Savages, but were very sore put to it for Necessaries, and indeed for Life : I ask'd him all the Particulars of their Voyage, and found they were a Spanish Ship bound from the Rio de la Plata to the Havana, being directed to leave their Loading there, which was chiefly Hides and Silver, and to bring back what European Goods they could meet with there ; that they had five Portuguese Seamen on Board, who they took out of another Wreck ; that five of their own Men were drowned when the first Ship was lost, and that these escaped thro' infinite Dangers and Hazards, and arriVd almost starv'd on the Cannibal Coast, where they ex- pelled to have been devour'd every Moment. He told me, they had some Arms with them, but they were perfedlly useless, for that they had neither Powder or Ball, the Washing of the Sea having -spoil'd all their Powder but a little, which they used at their first Landing to provide themselves some Food. I ask/d him what he thought would become of them there, and if they had form'd no Design of making any Escape ? He said, They had many Consultations about it, but that having neither Vessel, or Tools to build one, or Provisions of any kind, their Councils always ended in Tears and Despair. I ask'd him how he thought they would receive a Proposal from me, which might tend towards an Escape? And whether, if they were all here, it might not be done.'' I told him with Freedom, I fear'd mostly their Treachery and ill Usage of me, if I put my Life in their Hands ; for that Gratitude was no inherent Virtue in the Nature of Man ; nor did Men always square their Dealings by the Obligations they had receiv'd, so much as they did by the Advantages they expecfbed. 1 told him it would be very hard, that I should be the Instrument of their Deliverance, and that they should afterwards make me their Prisoner ROBINSON CRUSOE. 249 in New Spain, where an English Man was certain to be made a Sacrifice, what Necessity, or what Accident soever, brought him thither: And that I had rather be deliver'd up to the Savages, and be devour'd alive, than fall into the merciless Claws of the Priests, and be carry'd into the Inquisition. I added, That otherwise I was perswaded, if they were all here, we might, with so many Hands, build a. Bark large enough to carry us all away, either to the Brasils South-ward, or to the Islands or Spanish Coast North-ward : But that if in Requital they should, when I had put Weapons into their Hands, carry me by Force among their own People, I might be ill used for my Kindness to them, ^nd make my Case worse than it was before. He answer'd with a great deal of Candor and Ingenuity, That their Condition was so miserable, and they were so sensible of it, that he believed they would abhor the Thought of using any Man unkindly that should contribute to their Deliverance; and that, if I pleased, he would go to them with the old Man, and discourse with them about it, and return again, and bring me their Answer: That he would make Conditions with them upon their solemn Oath, That they should be absolutely under my Leading, as their Commander and Captain ; and that they should swear upon the Holy Sacraments and the Gospel, to be true to me, and to go to such Christian Country, as that I should agree to, and no other ; and to be directed wholly and absolutely by my Orders, 'till they were landed safely in such Country, as I intended ; and that he would bring a Contradl from them under their Hands for that Purpose. Then he told me, he would first swear to me himself. That he would never stir from me as long as he liv'd, 'till I gave him Oi-ders ; and that he would take my Side to the last drop of his Blood, if there should happen the least Breach of Faith among his Country-men. He -told me, they were all of them very civil honest Men, and they were under the greatest Distress imagin- able, having neither Weapons or Cloaths, nor any Food, 250 ADVENTURES OF but at the Mercy and Discretion of the Savages; out of all Hopes of ever returning to their own Country; and that he was sure, if I would undertake their Relief, they would live and die by me. Upon these Assurances, I resolv'd to venture to relieve them, if possible, and to send the old Savage and , this Spaniard over to them to treat : But when we had gotten all things in a Readiness to go, the Spaniard, him- self started an Objeftion, which had so much Prudence in it on one hand, and so much Sincerity on the other, hand, that I could not but be very well satisfy'd in it; and by his Advice, put off the Deliverance of his Com- rades for at least half a Year. The Case was thus : He had been with us now about a Month; during which time, I had let him see in what Manner I had provided, with the Assistance of Providence, for my Support ; and he saw evidently what Stock of Com and Rice I had laid up ; which as it was more than sufficient for my self, so it was not sufficient, at least without good Husbandry, for my Family; now it was encreas'd to Number four: But much less would it be sufficient, if his Country-men, who were, as he said, fourteen still alive, should come over. And least of all would it be sufficient; to vidlual our Vessel, if we should build one, for a Voyage, to any of the Christian Colonies of A^merica. So he. told me, he thought it would be more advisable, to let- him and the two other dig and cultivate some more Land, as much as I could spare Seed to sow; and that we should wait another Harvest, that we might have a Supply of Corn for his Country-men when they should come; for Want might be a Temptation to them to disagree, or not to think themselves delivered, otherwise- than out of one Difficulty into another. You know, says he, the Children of Israel, though they rejoyc'd at first for their being deliver'd out of Egypt, yet rebell'd even against God himself that deliver'd them, when they came to want Bread in the Wilderness. His Caution was so seasonable, and his Advice so. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 25: good, that I could not but be very well pleased with his Proposal, as well as I was satisfy'd with his Fidelity. So we fell to digging all four of us, as well as the Wooden Tools we were furnish'd with permitted ; and in about a Month's time, by the End of which it was Seed time, we had gotten as much Land cur'd and trim'd up, as we sow- ed 22 Busbels of Barley on, and 16 Jarrs of Rice, which was in short all the Seed we had to spare : nor indeed did we leave our selves Barley sufficient for our own Food, for the six Months that we had to expecfl our Crop, that is to say, reckoning from the time we set our Seed aside for sowing; for it is not to be supposed it is six Months in the Ground in that Country. Having now Society enough, and our Number being sufficient to put us out of Fear of the Savages, if they had come, unless their Number had been very great, we went freely all over the Island, whereever we found Occasion ; and as here we had our Escape or Deliverance upon our Thoughts, it was impossible, at least for me, to have the Means of it out of mine; to this Purpose, I mark'd out several Trees which I thought fit for our Work, and I set Friday and his Father to cutting them down; and then I caused the Spaniard, to whom I imparted my Thought on that Affair, to oversee and direft their Work. 1 shewed them with what indefatigable Pains I had hewed a large Tree into single Planks, and I caused them to do the like, till they had made about a Dozen large Planks of good Oak, near 2 Foot broad, 35 Foot long, and from 2 Inches to 4 Inches thick; What prodigious Labour it took up, any one may imagine. At the same time I contriv'd to increase my little Flock of tame Goats as much as I could ; and to this Purpose, I made Friday and the Spaniard go out one Day, and my self with Friday the next Day ; for we took our Turns : And by this Means we got above 20 young Kids to breed, up with the rest ; for whenever we shot the Dam, we saved the Kids, and added them to our Flock : But above all, the Season for curing the Grapes coming on, I caused 2S2 ADVENTURES OF such a prodigious Quantity to be hung up in the Sun, that I believe, had we been at Alicant, where the Raisins of the Sun are cur'd, w? could have fiU'd 60 or 80 Barrels ; and these with our Bread was a great Part of our Food, and very good living too, I assure you ; for it is an exceed-. ing nourishing Food. It was now Harvest, and our Crop in -good Order; it was not the most plentiful Encrea.se I had seen in the Island, but however it was enough to answer our End; for frorn our 22 Bushels of Barley, we brought' in and thrashed out ^bove 220 Bushels ; and the like in Proportion of the Rice, which was Store enough for our Food to the next Harvest, tho' all the 16 Spaniards had been on Shore with me ; or if we had been ready for 3. Voyage, it would very plentifully have viflualled our Ship, to have carry'd us toany Part of the World, that is to say, oi America. When we had thus hous'd and secur'd our Magazine of Corn, we fell to work to make more Wicker Work, (z/z^.) great Baskets in which we kept it ; and the Spaniard was very handy and dexterous at this Part, and often blam'd me that I did not make some things, for Defence, of this Kind of Work ; but I saw no Need of it. And now having a full Supply of Food for all the Guests I expedled, I gave the Spaniard Leave to go over to the Main, to see what he gould do with those he had left behind him there. I gave him a stridl Charge in Writing, Not to bring any Man with him, who would not first swear in the Presence of himself and of the old Savage, That he would no way injure, fight with, or attack the Person he should find in the Island, who was so kind to send for them in order to their Deliverance ; but that they would stand by and defend him against all such Attempts, and whereever they went, would be entirely under' and subjefied to his Commands; and that this should be put in Writing, and signed with their Hands: How we were to have this done, when I knew they had neither Pen or Ink ; that indeed was a Question which we never asked. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 253 Under these Instrudlions, the Spaniard, and the old Savage the Father of Friday, went away in one of the Canoes, which they might be said to come in, or rather were brought in, when they came as Prisoners to be de- vour'd by the Savages. I gave each of them a. Musket with a, Firelock on it, and about eight Charges of Powder and Ball, charging them to be very good Husbands of both, and not to use either of them but upon urgent Occasion. This was a chearful Work, being the first Measures Used by me in View of my Deliverance for now 27 Years and some Days. I gave them Provisions of Bread, and of dr/d Grapes, sufficient for themselves for many Days, and sufficiept for all their Country-men for about eight Days time ; and wishing them a good Voyage, I see them go, agreeing with them about a Signal they should hang out at their Return, by which I should know them again, when they came back, at a Distance, before they came on Shore. They went away with a fair Gale on the Day that the Moon was at Full by my Account, in the Month of October: But as for an exa there, as the other Party of them had done, they had done the Jobb for us: but they were too full of Apprehensions of Danger, to venture to go to sleep, though they could not tell what the Danger was they had to fear neither. The Captain made a very just Proposal to me, upon this Consultation of theirs, viz. That perhaps they would all fire a Volley again, to endeavour to mike their Fellows hear, and that we should all sally upon them, just at the Junflure when their Pieces were all discharg'd, and they would certainly yield, and we should have them without Blood-shed : I lik'd the Proposal, provided it was done while we were, near enough to come up to them, before they could load their Pieces again. But this Event did not happen, and we lay still a long Time, very irresolute what Course to take; at length I told them, there would be nothing to be done in my Opinion till Night, and then if they did not return to the Boat, perhaps we might find a way to get between them, and the Shore, and so might use some Stratagem with them in the Boat, to get them on Shore. We waited a great while, though very impatient for their removing ; and were very uneasy, when after long Consultations, we saw them start all up, and march down ROBINSON CRUSOE. 269 toward the Sea: It seems they had such dreadful Ap- prehensions upon them, of the Danger of the Place, that they resolv'd to go on board the Ship again, give their Companions over for lost, and so go on with their intend- ed Voyage with the Ship. As soon as I perceiVd them go towards the Shore, I imagin'd it to be as it really was, That they had given over their Search, and were for going back again; and the Captain, as soon as I told him my Thoughts, was ready to sink at the Apprehensions of it ; but I presently thought of a Stratagem to fetch them back again, and which answer'd my End to a Tittle. I order'd Friday, and the Captain's Mate, to go over the little Creek Westward, towards the Place were the Savages came on Shore, when Friday was rescu'd ; and as soon as they came to a little rising Ground, at about half a Mile Distance, I bad them hollow, as loud as they could, and wait till they found the Seamen heard them ; that as soon as ever they heard the Seamen answer them, they should return it again, and then keeping out of Sight, take a round, always answering when the other hollow'd, to draw them as far into the Island, and among the Woods, as possible, and then wheel about again to me, by such.ways as I diredled them. They were just going into the Boat, when Friday and the Mate hollow'd, and they presently heard them, and answering, run along the Shore Westward, towards the Voice they heard, when they were presently stopp'd by the Creek, where the Water being up, they could not get over, and call'd for the Boat to come up, and set them over, as indeed I expedled. When they had set themselves over, I observ'd, that the Boat being gone up a good way into the Creek, and as it were, in a Harbour within the Land, they took one of the three Meji out of her to go along with them, and left only two in the Boat, having fastned her to the Stump of a little Tree on the Shore. This was what I wish'd for, and immediately leaving 27a ADVENTURES OF Friday and the Captain's Mate to their Business, I took the rest with me, and crossing the Creek out of their Sight, we surpriz'd the two Men before they were aware; one of them lying on Sliore, and the other being in the Boat ; the Fellow on Shore was between sleeping and waking, and going to start up, the Captain who was foremost, ran in upon him, and knock'd him down, and then cali'd out to him in the Boat, to yield, or he was a dead Man. There needed very few Arguments to perswade a single Man to yield, when he saw five Men upon him, and his Comrade knock'd down; besides, this was it seems one of the three who were not so hearty in the Mutiny as the rest of the Crew, and therefore was easily perswaded, not only to yield, bTit afterwards to joyn very sincerely with us. In the mean time, Friday and the Captain's Mate so well manag'd their Business with the rest, that they drew them by hollowing and answering, from one Hill to an- other ; and from one Wood to another, tiU they not only heartily tyr'd them, but left them, where they were very sure they could not reach back to the Boat, before it was dark ; and indeed they were heartily tyr'd themselves also by the Time they came back to us. We had nothing now to do, but to watch for them, in the dark, and to fall upon them, so as to make sure work with them. It was several Hours after Friday came back to me, before they came back to their Boat ; and we could hear the foremost of them long before they came quke up, call- ing to those behind to come along, and could also hear them answer and complain how lame and tyr'd they were, and not able to come any faster, which was very welcome News to us. At length they came up to the Boat ; but 'tis impossi- ble to express their Confusion, when they found the Boat fast a-ground in the Creek, the Tide ebb'd out, and their two Men gone : We could hear them call to one another ROBINSON CRUSOE. 271 in a most lamentable Manner; telling one another they were gotten into an inchanted Island; that either there were Inhabitants in it, and they should all be murther'd, or else there were Devils and Spirits in it, and they should be all carry'd away, and devour'd. They hallow'd again, and call'd their two Comrades by their Names a great many times, but no Answer. After some time, we could see them, by the little Light there was, run about wringing their Hands like Men in Despair ; and that sometimes they would go and sit down in the Boat to rest themselves, then come ashore again, and walk about again, and so the same thing over again. My Men would fain have me give them Leave to fall upon them at once in the Dark ; but I was willing to take them at some Advantage, so to spare them, and kill as few of them as I could ; and especially I was unwilling to hazard the killing any of our own Men, knowing the other were very well armed. I resolved to wait to see if they did not separate ; and therefore to make sure of them, I drew my Ambuscade nearer, and order'd Friday and the Captain to creep upon their Hands and Feet as close to the Ground as they could, that they might not be discov- er'd, and get as near them as they could possibly, before they offered to fire. They had not been long in that Posture, but that the Boatswain, who was the principal Ringleader of the Mu- tiny, and had now shewn himself the most dejedled and dispirited of all the rest, came walking towards them with two more of their Crew; the Captain was so eager, as having this principal Rogue so niuch in his Power, that he could hardly have Patience to let him come so near, as to be sure of him ; for they only heard his Tongue before : But when they came nearer, the Captain and Friday starting up on their Feet, let ily at them. The Boatswain was kill'd upon the Spot, the next Man was shot into the Body, and fell just by him, tho' he did not die till an Hour or two after; and the third run for it. 372 ADVENTURES OF At the Noise of the Fire, I immediately advanc'd with my whole Army, which was now 8 Men, viz. my self Gene- ralissimo, Friday my Lieutenant-General, the Captain, and his two Men, and the three Prisoners of War, who we had trusted with Arms. We came upon them indeed in the Dark, so that they could not see our Number ; and I made the Man we had left in the Boat, who was now one of us, call to them by Name, to try if I could bring them to a Parley, and so might perhaps reduce them to Terms, which fell out just as we desir'd : For indeed it was easy to think, as their Condition then was, they would be very willing to capitu- late ; so he calls out as loud as he could, to one of them. Tout Smith, Tom. Smith; Tom Smith answer'd immedi- ately, Who's that, Robinson? for it seems he knew his Voice : T'other answer'd. Ay, ay; for GocFs Sake, Tom Smith, throw down your Arms, and yield, ox, you are all dead Men this Moment. Who must we yield to? where are they f (says Smith again;) Here they are, says he, here's our Captain, and fifty Men with him, have been hunting you this two Hours; the Boatswain is kill'd, Will Frye is wounded, and I am a Prisoner ; and if you do not yield, you are all lost. Will they give us Quarter then, (says Tom Smith) and we will yield.' I'll go and ask, if you proinise to yield, says Robinson J so he ask'd the Captain, and the Captain then calls himself out. You Smith, you know my Voice, if you lay down your Arms immediately, and submit, you shall have your Lives all but Will. Atkins. Upon this, Will. Atkins cry'd out. For God's sake. Captain, give me Quarter, -what have I done? They have been all as bad as I, which by the way was not true neither; for it seems this Will. Atkins was the first Man that laid hold of the Captain, when they first mutiny'd, and used him barbarously, in tying his Hands, and giving him injurious Language. However, the- Captain told him he must lay down his Arms at Discretion, and trust to the ROBINSON CRUSOE, 273. Governour's Mercy, by which he meant me ; for they all call'd me Governour. In a word, they all laid down their Arms, and begg'd their Lives ; and I sent the Man that had parley'd with them, and two more, who bound them all ; and then my great Army of 50, Men, which particularly with those three, were all but eight, came up and seiz'd upon them all, and upon their Boat, only that I kept my self and one more out of Sight, for Reasons of State. Our next Work was to repair the Boat, and think of seizing the Ship; and as for the Captain, now he had Leisure to parley with them. He expostulated with them upon the Villany of their Praflices with him, and at length upon the farther Wickedness of their Design, and how certainly it must bring them to Misery and Distress in the End, and perhaps to the Gallows. They all appear'd very penitent, and begg'd hard for their Lives ; as for that, he told them, they were none of his Prisoners, but the Commander of the Island: that they thought they had set him on Shore in a barren unin- habitated Island, but it had pleased God so to direft them, that the Island was inhabited, and that the Gover- nour was an English Man ; that he might hang them all there, if he pleased ; but as he had given them all Quar- ter, he supposed he would send them to England to be dealt with there, as Justice requir'd, except Atkins, who he was commanded by the Governour to advise to pre- pare for Death; for that he would be hang'd in the Morn- ing. Though this was all a Fiflion of his own, yet it had its desired Effedl; Atkins fell upon his Knees to beg the Captain to intercede with the Governour for his Life ; and all the rest begg'd of him for God's sake; that they might not be sent to England. It now occurr'd to me, that the time of our Deliver- ance was come, and that it would be a most easy thing to bring these Fellows in, to be hearty in getting Possession of the Ship; so I retir'd in the Dark from them, that R. C. 18 274' ADVENTURES OF tliey might not see what Kind of a Govemour they had, and call'd the Captain to me ; when I call'd, as at a good. Distance, one of the Men was order'd to speak again, and say to the Captain, Captain, the Commander calls for you; and presently the Captain reply'd. Tell his Excellency, I am just a coming: This more perfeftly amused them ; and they all believed that the Commander was just by with his fifty Men. Upon the Captain's coming to me, I told him my . Projedl for seizing the Ship, which he lik'd of wonder- fully well, and resolv'd to put it in Execution the next" Morning. But in Order to execute it with more Art, and secure of Success, I told him, we must divide the Prisoners, and that he should go and take Atkins and two more of the worst of them, and send them pinion'd to the Cave where the others lay: This was committed to Friday and the two Men who came on Shore with the Captain. They- convey'd them to the Cave, as to a Prison; and it was indeed a dismal Place, especially to Men in their Condition. The other I order'd to my Bower, as I call'd it, of which I have given a full Description ; and as it was fenc'd in, and they pinion'd, the Place was secure enough^ considering they were upon their Behaviour. To these in the Morning I sent the Captain, who was to enter into a Parley with them, in a Word to try them, and tell me, whether he thought they might be trusted or no, to go on Board and surprize the Ship. He talk'd to them of the Injury done him, of the Condition they were brought to; and that though the Govemour had given them Quarter for their Lives, as to the present Aftion, yet that if they were sent to England, they would all be hang'd in Chains, to be sure ; but that if they would join in so just an Attempt, as to recover the Ship, he would have the Governour's Engagement for their Pardon. Any one may guess how readily such a Proposal would be accepted by Men in their Condition; they fell' HOB/NSON CRUSOE. 275 down on their Knees to the Captain, and promised with the deepest Imprecations, that they would be faithful to him to the last Drop, and that they should owe their Lives to him, and would go with him all over the World, that they would own him for a Father to them as long as they liv'd. Well, says the Captain, I must go and tell the Governour what you say, and see what I can do to bring him to consent to it: So he brought me an Account of the Temper he found them in ; and that he verily believ'd they would be faithful. However, that we might be very secure, I told him he should go back again, and choose out five of them, and tell them, they might see that he did not want Men, that he would take out five of them to be his Assistants, and that the Governour would keep the other two, and the three that were sent Prisoners to the Castle (jny Cave) as Hostages, for the Fidelity of those five ; and that if they prov'd unfaithful in- the Execution, the five Hostages should be hang'd in Chains alive upon the Shore. This look'd severe, and convinc'd them that the Governour was in Earnest; however they had no Way left them, but to accept it ; and it was now the Business of the Prisoners, as much as of the Captain, to perswade the other five to do. their Duty. Our Strength was now thus ordered for the Expe- dition: I. The Captain, his Mate, and Passenger. 2. Then the two Prisoners of the first Gang, to whom having their Charaflers from the Captain, I had given their Liberty, and trusted them with Arms. 3. The other two who 1 had kept till now, in my Apartment, pinion'd ; but upon the Captain's Motion, had now releas'd. 4. The single Man taken in the Boat. 5. These five releas'd at last: So that they were thirteen in all, besides five we kept Prisoners in the Cave, for Hostages. I ask'd the Captain, if he was willing to venture with these Hands on Board the Ship ; for as for me and my Man Friday, I did not think it was proper for us to stir, 18—2 276 ADVENTURES OF having seven Men left behind ; and it was Employment enough for us to keep them asunder, and supply them ■with Vidluals. As to the five in the Cave, I resolv'd to keep them fast, • but Friday went in twice a Day to them, to supply them with Necessaries; and I made the other two carry Pro- visions to a certain Distance, where i^rzVa/ was to take it. When I shew'd my self to the two Hostages, it was with the Captain, who told them, I was the Person the Governour had order'd to look after them, and that it was the Governour's Pleasure they should not stir any where, but by my Direflion ; " that if they did, they should be fetch'd into the Castle, and be lay'd in Irons ; so that as we never suffered them to see me as Governour, so I now appear'd as another Person, and spoke of the Gover- nour, the Garrison, the Castle, and the like, upon all Occasions. The Captain now had no Difficulty before him, but to furnish his two Boats, stop the Breach of one, and Man them. He made his Passenger Captain of one, with four other Men; and himself, and his Mate, and six more went in the other : And they contriv'd their Business very well ; for they came up to the Ship about Midnight : As soon as they came within Call of the Ship, he made Robinson, hale them, and tell them they had brought off the Men and the Boat, but that it was a long time before they had found them, and. the like; holding them in a Chat 'till they came to the Ship's side ; when the Captain and the Mate, entring first with their Arms, immediately knock'd down the second Mate and Carpenter, with the But-end of their Muskets, being very faithfully seconded by their Men, they secur'd all the rest that were upon the Main and Quarter Decks, and began to fasten the Hatches to keep them down who were below, when the other Boat and their Men entring at the fore Chains, secur'd the Fore-Castle of the Ship, and the Scuttle which went down into the Cook-Room, making three Men they found there Prisoners. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 277 When this was done, and all safe upon Deck, the Captain order'd the Mate with three Men to break into the Round-House where the new Rebel Captain lay, and having taken the Alarm, was gotten up, and with two Men and a Boy had gotten Fire Arms in their Hands, and when the Mate with a Crow split open the Door, the new Captain and his Men fir'd boldly among them, and wounded the Mate with a Musket Ball, which broke his Arm, and wounded two more of the Men, but kill'd no Body. The Mate calling for Help, rush'd however into the Round-House, wounded as he was, and with his Pistol shot the new Captain thro' the Head, the Bullet entring at his Mouth, and came out again behind one of his Ears ; so that he never spoke a Word; upon which the rest yielded, and the Ship was taken effeflually, without any more Lives lost. As soon as the Ship was thus secur'd, the Captain order'd seven Guns to be fir'd, which was the Signal a- greed upon with me, to give me Notice of his Success, which you may be sure- 1 was very glad to hear, having sat watching upon the Shore for it till near two of the Clock in the Morning. Having thus heard the Signal plainly, I laid me down ; and it having been a Day of great Fatigue to me, I slept very sound, till I was something surpriz'd with the Noise of a Gun ; and presently starting up, I heard a Man call me by the Name of Governour, Governour, and presently I knew the Captain's Voice, when climbing up to the Top of the Hill, there he stood, and pointing to the Ship, he embrac'd me in his Arms, My dear Friend and Deliverer, says he, therms your Ship, for she is all yours, and so are ■we and all that belong to her. I cast my Eyes to the Ship, and there she rode within little more than half a Mile of the Shore ; for they had weighed her Anchor as soon as they were Masters of her; and the Weather being, fair, had brought her to an Anchor just against the Mouth of the little Creek; and the Tide being up, the Captain, had 278 . ADVENTURES OF \ •brought the Pinnace in near the Place where I at first landed my Rafts, and so landed just at my Door. I was at first ready to sink down with the Surprize. For I saw my Deliverance indeed visibly put into my Hands, all things easy, and a large Ship just ready to carry me away whither I pleased to go. At first, for some time, I was not able to answer him one Word ; but as he had taken me in his Arms, I held fast by him, or I should have fallen to the Ground. He perceived the Surprize, and immediately pulls a Bottle out of his Pocket, and gave me a Dram of Cordial, which he had brought on Purpose for me ; after I had drank it, I sat down upon the Ground; and though it brought me to my self, yet it was a good while before I could speak a Word to him. All this while the poor Man was in as great an Extasy as I, only not under any Surprize, as I was ; and he said a thousand kind tender things to me, to compose me and bring me to my self; but such was the Flood of Joy in my Breast, that it put all my Spirits into Confusion ; at last it broke out into Tears, and in a little while after, I recovered ;my Speech. Then I took my Turn, and embrac'd him as my Deli- verer ; and we rejoyc'd together. I told him, I look'd upon him as a Man sent from Heaven to deliver me, and that the whole Transaftion seemed to be a Chain of Wonders ; that such things as these were the Testimonies we had of a secret Hand of Providence governing the World, and an Evidence, that the Eyes of an infinite Power could search into the remotest Corner of the World, and send Help to the Miserable whenever he pleased. I forgot not to hft up my Heart in Thankfulness to Heaven, and what Heart could forbear to bless him, who had not only in a miraculous Manner provided for one in such a Wilderness, and in such a desolate Condition, but from whom every Deliverance must sJways be acknow- ledged to proceed. When we had talk'd a while, the Captain told me, he ROBINSON CRUSOE. 279 had brought me some little Refreshment, such as the Ship afforded, and such as.the Wretches that had been so long his Masters had not plunder'd him of: Upon this he calj'd aloud to the Boat, and bid his Men bring the things ashore that were for the Governour ; and indeed it was a Present, as if I had been one not that was to be carry'd away along with them, but as if I had been to dwell upon the Island still, and they were to go without me. First he had brought me a Case of Bottles full of excel- lent Cordial Waters, six large Bottles of Madera Wine ; the Bottles held two Quarts a-piece ; two Pound of excellent good Tobacco, twelve good Pieces of the Ship's Beef, and six Pieces of Pork, with a Bag of Pease, and about a hundred Weight of Bisket. He brought me also a Box of Sugar, a Box of Flower, a Bag full of Lemons, and two Bottles of Lime-juice, and Abundance of other things : But besides these, and what was a thousand times more useful to me, he brought me six clean new Shirts, six very good Neckcloaths, two Pair of Gloves, one Pair of Shoes, a Hat, and one Pair of Stock- ings, and a very good Suit of Cloaths of his own, which had been worn but very little : In a Word, he cloathed me from Head to Foot. It was a very kind and agreeable Present, as any one may imagine, to one in my Circumstances: But never was any thing in the World of that Kind so unpleasant, awkard, and uneasy, as it was to me to wear such Cloaths at their first putting on. ' After these Ceremonies past, and after all his good things were brought into my little Apartment, we began to consult what was to be done with the Prisoners we had; for it was worth considering, whether we might venture to take them away with us or no, especially two of them, who we knew to be incorrigible and refraflory to the last Degree; and the Captain said, he knew they were such Rogues, that there was no obliging them, and if he did carry them away, it must be . in Irons, as Malefadlors to be delivered over to Justice at the first 28q adventures of Eng-/tsk Colony he could come at; and I found that the Captain himself was very anxious about it. ' Upon this, I told him, that if he desir'd it, I durst undertake to bring the two Men he spoke of, to make it their own Request that he should leave them upon the Island: / should be very glad of that, says the Captain, •with all my Heart. Well, says I, I will send for them up, and talk with them for you ; so I caused Friday and the two Hostages, for they were now discharg'd, their Comrades having perform'd their Promise ; I say, I caused them to go to the Cave, and bring up the five Men pinion'd, as they were, to the Bower, and keep them there 'till I came. After some time, I came thither dress'd in my new Habit, and now I was call'd Governour again ; being all met, and the Captain with me, I caused the Men to be brought before me, and I told them, I had had a full Account of their villanous Behaviour to the Captain, and how they had run away with the Ship, and were preparing to commit farther Robberies, but that Providence had ensnar'd them in their own Ways, and that they were fallen into the Pit which they had digged for others. I let them know, that by my Diredlion the Ship had been seiz'd, that she lay now in the Road; and they might see by and by, that their new Captain had receiv'd the Reward of his Villany; for that they might see him hanging at the Yard-Arm. That as to them, I wanted to know what they had to say, why I should not execute them as Pirates taken in the Faft, as by my Commission they could not doubt I had Authority to do. One of them answer'd in the Name of the rest, That they had nothing to say, but this. That when they were taken the Captain promis'd them their Lives, and they humbly implor'd my Mercy : But I told them, I knew not what Meircy to shew them; for as for my self, I had resolv'd to quit the Island with all my Men, and had •taken Passage with the Captain to go for England: ROBINSON CRUSOE. ' 281 And as for the Captain he could not carry them to England, other than as Prisoners in Irons to be try'd for Mutiny, and running away with the Ship; the Conse- quence of which, they must needs know, would be the Gallows ; so that I could not tell which was best for them, unless they had a mind to take their Fate in the Island ; if they dosir'd that, I did not care, as I had Liberty to leave it, I had some Inclination to give them their Lives, if they thought they could shift on Shore. They seem'd very thankful for it, said they would much rather venture to stay there, than to be carry'd to England to be hang'd ; so I left it on that Issue. However, the Captain seem'd to make some Difficulty of it, as if he durst not leave them there : Upon this I seem'd a little angry with the Captain, and told him. That they were my Prisoners, not his ; and that seeing I had offer'd them so much Favour, I would be as good as my Word; and that if he did not think fit to consent to it, I would set them at Liberty as I found them ; and if he did not like it, he might take them again if he could catch them. Upon this they appeared very thankful, and I accord- ingly set them at Liberty, and bad them retire into the Woods to the Place whence they came, and I would leave them some Fire Arms, some Anwnunition, and some Direflions how they should live very well, if they thought fit. Upon this I prepar'd to go on Board the Ship, but told the Captain, that I would stay that Night to prepare my things, and desir'd him to go on Board in the mean time, and keep all right in the Ship, and send the Boat on Shore the next Day for me ; ordering him in the mean time to cause the new Captain who was kill'd, to be hang'd at the Yard- Arm that these Men might see him. When the Captain was gone, I sent for the Men up to me to my Apartment, and entred seriously into Discourse with them of their Circumstances ; I told them, I thought they had made a right Choice ; that if the Captain carry'd 282 ADVENTURES OF them away, they would . certainly be hanged. I shewed them the new Captain, hanging at the Yard- Arm of the Ship, and told them they had nothing less to expe only as ROBINSON CRUSOE. 329 they said well, that they were escap'd from the Fire, and had a Possibility that some Ship might happen to be at Sea, and might take them in. They had Sails, Oars, and a Compass, and were preparing to make the best of their Way back to Newfound-Land, the Wind blowing pretty fair, for it blew an easy Gale at S. E. by E. They had as much Provisions and Water, as with sparing it so as to be next Door to Starving, might support them about 12 Days; in which, if they had no bad Weather, and no contrary Winds, the Captain said, he hop'd he might get the Banks of Newfound-Land, and might perhaps take some Fish to sustain them till they might go on Shore, But there were so many Chances against them in all these Cases ; such as. Storms to overset and founder them. Rains and Cold to benumb and perish their Limbs, contrary Winds to keep them out and starve them, that it must have been next to miraculous if they had escap'd. In the midst of their Consultations, every one being hopeless, arid ready to despair, the Captain with Tears in his Eyes told me, they were on a sudden surpriz'd with the Joy of bearing a Gun fire, and after that four more ; these were the five Guns which I caused to be fired at first seeing the Light: This reviv'd their Hearts, and gave them the Notice, which, as above, I desir'd it should, (z'za'.) that there was a Ship at hand for their Help. It was upon hearing these Guns, that they took down their Masts and Sails ; the Sound coming from the Wind- ward, they resolv'd to lye by 'till Morning. Some Time after this, hearing no more Guns, they fir'd three Mus- kets, one a considerable While after another ; but these, the Wind being contrary, we never heard. Some Time after that again, they were still more agreeably surpriz'd with seeing our Lights, and hearing the Guns, which, as I have said, I caus'd to be fir'd all the rest of the Night ; this set them to work with their Oars, to keep their Boats a-head, at least, that we might the sooner come up with them; and at last, to their inexpressible Joy, they found we sawthem. 33° ADVENTURES OF It is impossible for me to express the several Gestures, the strange Extasies, the Variety of Postures which these poor deliver'd People run into to express the Joy of, their Souls at so unexpefted a Deliverance ; Grief and Fear are easily described ; Sighs, Tears, Groans, and a very few Motions of the Head and Hands make up the Sum of its Variety : But an Excess of Joy, a Surprize of Joy, has a Thousand Extravagancies in it ; there were some in Tears, some raging, and tearing themselves, as if they had been in the greatest Agonies of Sorrow, some stark- raving and down-right lunatick, some ran about the Ship stamping with their Feet, others wringing their Hands ; some were dancing, some singing, some laugh- ing, more crying ; many quite dumb, not able to speak a Word ; others sick and vomiting, several swooning, and ready to faint ; and a few were Crossing themselves, and giving God Thanks. I would not wrong them neither ; there might be many that were thankful afterward, but the Passion was! too strong for them at first, and they were not able to master it ; they were thrown into Extasies and a Kind of Frenzy, and it was but a very few that were compos'd and serious in their Joy. Perhaps the Case may have some Addition to it from the particular Circumstance of that Nation they belong'd to, I mean the French, whose Temper is allow'd to be more volatile, more passionate, and more sprightly, and their Spirits more fluid than in other Nations. I am not Philosopher enough to determine the Cause, but nothing I had ever seen before came up to it : The Extasies poor Friday, my trusty Savage, was in, when he found his Father in the Boat, came the nearest to it, and the Sur- prize of the Master and his two Companions, who I deliver'd from the Villains that set them on Shore in the Island, came a little Way towards it; but nothing was to compare to this, either that I saw in Friday, or any where else in my Life. It is further observable, that these Extravagancies did ROBINSON CRUSOE. 331 not shew themselves in that different Manner I have mention'd in different Persons only : But all the Variety- would appear in a short Succession of Moments in one and the same Person. A Man that we saw this Minute dumb, and as it were stupid and confounded, should the next Minute be dancing and hallowing like an Antick ; and the next Moment be tearing his Hair, or pulling his Cloaths to Pieces, and stamping them under his Feet, like a mad Man ; and a few Moments after that, we should have him all in Tears, then sick, then swooning ; ' and had not immediate Help been had, would, in a few Moments more have been dead. And thus it was not with one or two, or ten or twenty, but with the greatest Part of them ; and if I remember right, our Surgeon was oblig'd to let above thirty of them Blood. There were two Priests among them, one an old Man, and the other a young Man ; and that which was strang- est was, that the oldest Man was the worst. As soon as he set his Foot on board our Ship, and saw himself safe, he dropt down stone-dead, not the least Sign of Life could be perceiv'd in him ; our Surgeon immediately apply'd proper Remedies to recover him, and was the only Man in the Ship that believ'd he was not dead ; at length he open'd a Vein in his Arm, having first chaff' d and rubb'd the Part so as to warm it as much as possible : Upon this the Blood, which only dropp'd at first, flow'd something freely ; in three Minutes after, the Man open'd his Eyes, and about a Quarter of an Hour after that, he spoke, grew better, and in a little Time, quite well. After the Blood was stopp'd, he walk'd about, and told us he was perfedlly well, took a Dram of Cordial which the Surgeon gave him, and was what we call'd. Come to him- self. About a Quarter of an Hour after they came run- ning into the Cabin to the Surgeon, who was bleeding a French Woman that had fainted, and told him the Priest was gone stark mad ; it seems he had begun to revolve the Change of his Circumstance, and again this put him into an Extasy of Joy, his Spirits whirl'd about faster 332 ADVENTURES OF than the Vessels could convey them ; the Blood grew hot and feverish, and the Man was as fit for Bedlam as any Creature that ever was in it; the Surgeon would not bleed him again in that Condition, but gave him some- thing to dose, and put him to Sleep, which after some Time operated upon him, and he wak'd the next Morning perfedtly compos'd and well. The younger Priest behav'd with great Command of his Passions, and was really an Example of a serious well- goverh'd Mind; at his first coming on board the Ship, he threw himself flat on his Face, prostrating himself in Thankfulness for his Deliverance, in which I unhappily and unseasonably disturb'd him, really thinking he had been in a Swoon ; but he spake calmly, thank'd me, told me he was giving God Thanks for hig Deliverance, and begg'd me to leave him a few Moments, and that next to his Maker he would give me Thanks also. I was heartily sorry that I disturb'd him, and not only left him, but kept others from interrupting him also. He continued in that Posture about three Minutes, or little more, after I left him, then came to me, as he had said he would, and with a great deal of Seriousness and Affeftion, but with Tears in his Eyes, thank'd me that had, under God, given him and so many miserable Creatures their Lives. I told him, I had no Room to move him to thank God for it, rather than me : But I added. That it was nothing but what Reason and Humanity didtated to all Men, and that we had as much Reason as he to give Thanks to God, who had bless'd us so far as to make us the Instruments of his Mercy to so many of his Creatures. ' After this, the young Priest apply'd himself to his Country-Folks ; labour'd to compose them; perswaded, entreated, argued, reason'd with them, and did his ut- most to keep them within the Exercise of their Rea- son ; and with some he had Success, tho' others were for a Time out of all Government of themselves. I cannot help committing this to Writing, as perhaps it may be useful to those into whose Hands it may fall. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 333 for the guiding themselves in all the Extravagancies of their Passions ; for if an Excess of Joy can carry Men out to such a Length beyond the Reach of their Reason, what will not the Extravagancies of Anger, Rage, and a pro- vok'd Mind, carry us to ? And indeed here I saw Reason for keeping an exceeding Wateh over our Passions of every Kind, as well those of Joy and Satisfadion, as those of Sorrow and Anger. We were something disordered by these Extrava- gancies among our new Guests for the first Day, but when they had been retir'd, Lodgings provided for them as well as our Ship would allow, and they had slept heartily, as most of them did, they were quite another Sort of People the next Day. Nothing of good Manners or civil Acknowledgments for the Kindn£ss shewn them was wanting ; the French, 'tis known, are naturally apt to exceed that Way. The Captain and one of the' Priests came to me the next Day, and desiring to speak with me and my Nephew, the Com- mander, began to consult with us what should be done with them ; and first they told us, that as we had saved their Lives, so all they had was little enough for a Return to us for that Kindness received. The Captain said, they had saved some Money and some Things of Value in their Boats, catch'd hastily up out of the Flames, and if we would accept it, they were ordered to make an Offer of it all to us ; they only desired to be set on Shore somewhere in our Way, where, if possible, they might get Passage to France. My Nephew was for accepting their Money at first Word, and to consider what to do with them afterwards ; but I over-rul'd him in that Part, for I knew what it was to be set on Shore in a strange Country ; and if the Por- tugal Captain that took me up at Sea had served me so, and took all I had for my Deliverance, I must have starv'd, or have been as much a Slave at the Brasils as I had been in Barbary, the meer being sold to a Mahome- tan excepted; and perhaps a Portuguese is not much a 334 ADVENTURES OF better Master than a Turk, if not in some Cases a much worse. I therefore told the French Captain, that we had taken them up in their Distress, it was true ; but that it was our Duty to do so as we were Fellow-Creatures, and as we would desire to be so delivered if we were in the like, or any other Extremity ; that we had done nothing for them but what we believed they would have done for us, if we had been in their Case, and they in ours ; but that we took them up to save them, not to plunder them ; and it would be a most barbarous Thing to take that little from them which they saved out of the Fire, and then set them on Shore and leave them : That this would be first to save them from Death, and then to kill them our selves ; save them from Drowning, and abandon them to Starving; and therefore I would not let the least Thing be taken from them. As to setting them on Shore, I told them indeed that was an exceeding Difficulty to us, for that the Ship was bound to the East Indies j-' and tho' we were driven out of our Course to the Westward a very great Way, and perhaps were directed by Heaven on Purpose for their Deliverance, yet it was impossible for us wilfully to change our Voyage on this particular Account, nor could my Nephew, the Captain, answer it to the Freighters, with whom he was under Charter-Party to pursue his Voyage by the Way of Brasil; and all I knew we could do for them, was to put our selves in the Way of meet- ing with other Ships homeward bound from the West Indies, and get them Passage, if possible, to England or France. The first Part of the Proposal was so generous and kind, they could not but be very thankful for it ; but they were in a very great Consternation, especially the Pas- sengers, at the Notion of being carried away to the East Indies J ajid they then intreated me, that seeing I was driven so far to the Westward, before I met with them, I would at least keep on the same Course to the Banks of Newfound Land, where it was probable I might meet with ROBINSON CRUSOE. 335 some Ship or Sloop that they might hire to carry them back to Canada^ from whence they came. I thought this was but a reasonable Request on their , Part, and therefore I inclined to agree to it ; for indeed I considered, that to carry this whole Company to the East Indies, would not only be an intolerable Severity upon the 'poor People, but would be ruining our whole Voyage by devouring all our Provisions; so I thought it no Breach of Charter-Party, but what an unforeseen Acci- dent made absolutely necessary to us, and in which no one could say we were to blame ; for the Laws of God and Nature would have forbid that we should refuse to take up two Boats full of People in such a distress'd Condition ; and the Nature of the Thing as well respedl- ing our selves as the poor People, oblig'd us to set them on Shore some where or other for their Deliverance : So I consented that we should carry them to Newfound Land, if Wind and Weather would permit, and if not, that I would carry them to Martinico in the West Indies. The Wind continued fresh Easterly, but the Weather pretty good; and as the Winds had continued in the Points between N. E. and S. E. along Time, we missed several Opportunities of sending them to France; for we met several Ships bound to Erurope, whereof two were French, from St. Christopher's, but they had been so long beating up against the Wind, that they durst take in no Passengers for fear of wanting Provisions for the Voyage, as well for themselves as for those they should take in; so we were obliged to go on. It was about a Week after this that we made the Banks of Newfound Land, where, to shorten my Story, we put all our French People on Board a Bark, which they hir'd at Sea there, to put them on Shore, and afterwards to carry them to France, if they could get Provisions to vidlual themselves with. When, I say, all the French went on Shore, I should remember, that the young Priest I spoke of, hear- ing we were bound to the East Indies, desired to go the Voyage with us, and to be set on Shore on the Coast 336 ADVENTURES^ OF of Coromandel, which I readily agreed to, for I wonder- fully lik'd the Man, and had very good Reason, as will appear afterwards ; also four of the Seamen entered them- selves on our Ship, and proved very useful Fellows. From hence we diredled our Coarse to the IVest Indies, steering away S. and S. by E. for about twenty Days together, sometimes little or no Wind at all, when we met with another Subjeft for our Humanity to work upon, almost as deplorable as that before. It was in the Latitude of 27 Degrees 5 Minutes North, and the 19th Day of March 1694-5, when we 'spy'd a Sail, our Course S. E. and by S. We soon per- ceived it was a large Vessel, and that she bore up to us, but could not at first know what to make of her, till after coming a little nearer, we found she had lost her Main- top-Mast, Fore-mast and Boltsprit^ and presently she fired a Gun as a Signal of Distress; the Weather was pretty good, Wind at N. N. W. a fresh Gale, and we soon came to speak with her. We found her a Ship of Bristol, bound Home from Barhadoes, but had been blown out of the Road at Bar- badoes a few Days before she was ready to sail, by a terrible Hurricane, while the Captain and chief Mate were both gone on Shore, so that besides the Terror of the Storm, they were but in an indifferent Case for good Artists to bring the Ship Home. They had been already nine Weeks at Sea, and had met with another terrible Storm after the Hurricane was over, which had blown them quite out of their Knowledge to the Westward, and in which they lost their Masts, as above ; They told us they expefted to have seen the Bahama Islands, but were then driven away again to the South-East by a strong Gale of Wind at N. N. W. the same that blew now, and having no Sails to work the Ship with but a main Course, and a kind of square Sail upon a Jury Fore-mast, which they had set up, they could, not lye near the Wind, but were endeavouring to stand away for the Canaries. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 337 ' But that which was worst of all, was, that they were almost starv'd for want of Provisions, besides the Fatigues they had undergone ; their Bread and Flesh was quite gone, they had not one Ounce left in the Ship, and had had none for eleven Days ; the only Relief they had, was, their Water was not all spent, and they had about half a Barrel of Flower left; they had Sugar enough; some Sue- cades, or Sweet-mea;ts they had at first, but they were devour' d, and they had seven Casks of Rum. There was a Youth and his Mother and a Maid- Servant on Board, who were going Passengers, and think- ing the Ship was ready to sail, unhappily came on Board the Evening before the Hurricane began, and having no Provisions of their own left, they were in a more de- plorable Condition than the rest, for the Seamen being reduced to such an extreme Necessity themselves, had no Compassion, we may be sure, for the poor Passengers, and they were indeed in a Condition that their Misery is very hard to describe. I had, perhaps, not known this Part, if my Curiosity had not led me, the Weather being fair, and the Wind abated, to go on Board the Ship : The Second Mate who upon this Occasion commanded the Ship, had been on Board our Ship, and he told me indeed they had three Passengers in the Great Cabin, that were in a deplorable Condition; nay, says he, I believe they are dead, for 1 have heard nothing of them for above two Days, and I was afraid to enquire after them, said he, for I had nothing to relieve them with. We immediately apply'd our selves to give them what Relief we could spare ; and indeed I had so far over-ruled Things with my Nephew, that I would have vi(fluall'd them, tho' we had gone away to Virginia, or any Part of the Coast of America, to have suppl/d our selves; but there was no Necessity for that. But now they were in a new Danger; for they were afraid of eating too much, even of that little we gave themi The Mate, or Commander, brought six Men with R. C. 22 33? ADVENTURES OF him in his Bbat, but these poor Wretches look'd like Skeletons, and were so weak, they could hardly sit to their Oars: The Mate himself was very ill, and half starv'd ; for he declar'd he had reserv'd nothing from the Men, and went Share and Share alike with them in every Bit they eat. I caution'd him to eat sparingly, but set Meat before him immediately, and he had not eaten three Mouthfuls before be began to be Sick, and out of Order ; so he stopt a while, and our Surgeon mix'd him up something'with some Broth, which he said would be to him both Food and Physick ; and after he had taken it, he grew better. In the mean Time, I forgot not the Men; I order'd Vifluals to be given them, and the poor Creatures rather devour'd than eat it ; they were so exceeding hungry, that they were in a kind ravenous, and had no Command of themselves ; and two of them eat with so much Greedi- ness, that they were in Danger of their Lives the next Morning. The Sight of these People's Distress was very moving to me, and brought to Mind what I had a terrible Pros- pefl of at my first coming on Shore in the Island, where I had neither the least Mouthful of Food, or apy Prospefb of procuring any ; besides the hourly Apprehension I had of being made the Food of other Creatures : But all the while the Mate was thus relating to me the miserable Condition of the Ship's Company, I could not put out of my Thought the Story he had told me of the three poor Creatures in the Great Cabin, (z'z>.) the Mother, her Son,- and the Maid-servant, whom he had heard nothing of for two or three Days, and whom he seem'd to con- fess they had wholly neglefted, their own Extremities being so great ; by which I understood, that they had really given them no Food at all, and that therefore they must be perish'd, and be all lying dead perhaps on the Floor, or Deck of the Cabbin. As 1 therefore kept the Mate, who we then called Captain, on board with his Men, to refresh them, so I kOBtNSON CRUSOE. 339 also forgot not the starving Crew that were left on board, but order'd my own Boat to go on board the Ship, and with my Mate and twelve Men to carry them a Sack of Bread, and four or five Pieces of Beef to boil. Our Sur- geon charg'd the Men to cause the Meat to be boil'd while they stay'd, and to keep Guard in the Cook-Room, to prevent the Men taking it to eat raw, or taking it out of the Pot before it was well boil'd, and then to give every Man but a very little at a Time ; andTjy this Caution he preserv'd the Men, who would otherwise ha' killed them- selves with that very Food that was given them on Pur- pose to save their Lives. At the same Time, I order'd the Mate to go into the Great Cabin, and see what Condition the poor Passengers were in, and if they were alive, to comfort them, and give them what Refreshment was proper ; and the Surgeon gave him a large Pitcher with some of the prepar'd Broth which he had given the Mate that was on board, and which he did not question would restore them gradu- ally. I was not satisfy'd with this, but as I said above, hav- ing a great Mind to see the Scene of Misery, which I knew the Ship it self would present me with, in a more lively Manner than I could have it by Report, I took the Captain of the Ship, as we now caU'd him, with me, and went my self a little after in their Boat. I found the poor Men on board almost in a Tumult, to get the Vi(fluals out of the Boyler before it was ready : But my Mate obserVd his Order, and kept a good Guard at the Cook-Room Door, and the Man he plac'd there, after using all possible Perswasion to have Patience, kept them off by Force : However, he caused some Bisket Cakes to be dipp'd in the Pot, and soften'd with the Li- quor of the Meat, which they calls Brewes, and gave them every one, one, to stay their Stomachs, and told them it was for their own Safety that he was oblig'd to give them but a little at a Time : But it was all in vain ; and had I not come on Board, and their own Commander and Offi- 22 — 2 340 ADVENTURES OF cers with me, and with good Words, and some Threats also of giving them no more, I beUeve they would have broke into the Cook-Room by Force, and tore the Meat out of the Furnace : For Words are indeed of very small Force to a hungry Belly: However we pacify'd them, and fed them gradually and cautiously for the first Time, and the next Time gave them more, and at last fiU'd their Bellies, and the Men did well enough. But the Misery of the poor Passengers in the Cabbin, was of another Nature, and far beyond the rest ; for as first the Ship's Company had so little for themselves, it was but too true that they had at first kept them very low, and at last totally negledled them ; so that for six or seven Days, it might be said, they had really had no Food at all, and for several Days before very little. The poor Mother, who as the Men reported, was a Woman of good Sense and good Breeding, had spar'd all she could get, so affeflionately for her Son, that at last she entirely sunk under it : And when the Mate of our Ship went in, she sat upon the Floor or Deck, with her Back up against the Sides, between two Chairs, which were lash'd fast, and her Head sunk in between her Shoulders, like a Corpse, tho' not quite dead. My Mate said all he could to revive and encourage her, and with a Spoon put some Broth into her Mouth ; she open'd her Lips, and hfted up one Hand, but could not speak ; yet she understood what he said, and made Signs to him, intimating that it was too late for her, but pointed to her Child, as if she would have said, they should take Care of him. However, the Mate, who was exceedingly mov'd with the Sight, endeavour'd to get some of the Brbth into hpr Mouth ; and as he said, got two or three Spoonfuls down, tho' I question whether he could be sure of it or not : But it was too late, and she dy'd the same Night. The Youth, who was preserved at the Price of his most affeflionate Mother's Life, was not so far gone, yet he lay in a Cabbin-bed as one stretch'd out, with hardly any Life left in him ; he had a Piece of an old Glove in ROBINSON CRUSOE. 341 his Mouth, having eaten up the rest of it ; however, being young, and having more Strength than his Mother, the Mate got something down his Throat, and he began sen- sibly to revive, tho' by giving him some time after but two or three Spoonfuls extraordinary, he was very sick, and brought it up again. But the next Care was the poor Maid ; she lay all along upon the Deck hard by her Mistress, and just like one that had fallen down with an Apoplexy, and strug- gled for Life : Her Limbs were distorted, one of her Hands was clasp'd round the Frame of a Chair, and she grip'd it so hard, that we could not easily make her let go ; her other Arm lay over her Head, and her Feet lay both together set fast against the Frame of the Cabbin Table ; in short, she lay just like one in the last Agonies of Death, and yet she was alive too. The poor Creature was not only starVd with Hunger, and terrify'd with the Thoughts of Death, but as the Men told us afterwards, was broken-hearted for her Mistress, who she saw dying for two or three Days before, and who she lov'd most tenderly. We knew not what to do with this poor Girl ; for when our Surgeon, who was a Man of very great Know- ledge and Experience, had with great Application reco- ver'd her as to Life ; he had her upon his Hand as to her Senses, for she was little less than distradled for a con- siderable Time after, as shall appear presently. Whoever shall read these Memorandums must be de- sir'd to consider, that Visits at Sea are not like a Journey into the Country, where sometimes People stay a Week or a Fortnight at a Place. Our Business was to relieve this distressed Ship's Crew, but not to lye by for them ; and tho' they were willing to steer the same Course with us for some Days, yet we could carry no Sail to keep Pace with a Ship that had no Masts ; However, as their Captain begg'd of us to help him to set up a Main-Top- Mast, and a Kind of a Top-Mast to his Jury Fore-Mast, we did, as it were, lye by him for three or four Days, and 342 ADVENTURES OF then having given him five Barrels of Beef, and a Barrel of Pork, two Hogsheads of Bisket, and a Proportion of Peas, Flour, and what other Things we could spare ; and taking three Casks of Sugar, some Rum, and some Pieces of Eight of them for Satisfaflion, we left them, taking on board with us, at their own earnest Request, the Priest, the Youth, arid the Maid, and all their Goods. The young Lad was about seventeen Years of Age, a pretty, well-bred, modest, and sensible Youth, greatly dejefled with the Loss of his Mother, and as it seems had lost his Father but a few Months before at Barbadoes. He begg'd of the Surgeon to speak to me to take him out of the Ship, for he said the cruel Fellows had murther'd his Mother ; and indeed so they had, that is to say, pas- sively j for they might ha' spar'd a small Sustenance to the poor helpless Widow, that might have preserv'd her Life, tho' it had been but just to keep her alive. But Hunger knows no Friend, no Relation, no Justice, no Right, and therefore is remorseless, and capable of no Compassion. The Surgeon told him how far we were going, and how it would carry him away from all his Friends, and put him perhaps in as bad Circumstances almost as those • we found him in ; that is to say, starving in the World. He said he matter'd not whether he went, if he was but delivered from the terrible Crew he was among : That the Captain (by which he meant me, for he could know nothing of my Nephew) had sav'd his Life, and he was sure wou'd not hurt him ; and as for the Maid, he was sure, if she came to herself, she would be very thankful for it, let us carry them where we would. The Surgeon represented the Case so affecflionately to me, that I yielded, andwe took them both on- board with all their Goods, except eleven Hogsheads of Sugar, which could not be remov'd, or come at ; and as the Youth had a Bill of Lading for them, I made his Commander sign a Writing, obliging himself to go as soon as he came to Bristol, to one Mr. Rogers a Merchant there, to whom ROBINSON CRUSOE. 343 the Youth said he was related, and to deliver a Letter which I wrote to him, and all the Goods he had belong- ing to the deceased Widow; which I suppose was not done, for I could never learn that the Ship came to Bris- tol, but was, as is most probable, lost at Sea, being in so disabled a Condition, and so far from any Land, that I am of Opinion, the first Storm she met with afterwards she might founder in the Sea ; for she was leaky, and had Damage in her, Hold when we met with her. I was now in the Latitude of 19 Deg. 32 Min. and had hitherto had a tolerable Voyage as to Weather, tho' at first the Winds had been contrary. I shall trouble no body with the little Incidents of Wind, Weather, Cur- rents, dr'c. on the rest of our Voyage ; but shortning my Story for the sake of what is to follow, shall observe that I came to my old Habitation, the Island, on the loth of April 1695. It was with no small Difficulty that I found the Place ; for as I came to it, and went from it before, on the South and East Side of the Island, as coming from the Brasils, so now coming in between the Main and the Island, and having no Chart for the Coast, nor any Land- . Mark, I did not know it when I saw it, or know whether I saw it or no. We beat about a great while, and went on Shore on several Islands in the Mouth of the great River Oronooque, but none for my Purpose. Only this I learn'd by my Coasting the Shore, that I was under one great Mistake before, viz. that the Continent which I thought I saw, from the Island I liv'd in, was really no Continent, but a long Island, or rather a Ridge of Islands, reaching from one to the other Side of the extended Mouth of that great River, and that the Savages who came to my Island, were not properly those which we call Caribbees, but Islanders, and other Barbarians of the same Kind, who inhabited something nearer to our Side than the rest. In short, I visited several of these Islands to no Pur- pose ; some I found were inhabited, and some were not. "On one of them I found some Spaniards, and thought 344 ADVENTURES OF they had liv'd there; but speaking with them, I found they had a Sloop lay in a small Creek hard by, and they came thither to make Salt, and to catch some Pearl Mussels if they could, but that they belong'd to the Isle de Trinidad, which lay farther North, in the Latitude of lo and 1 1 Degrees. But at last coasting from one Island to another, some- times with the Ship, sometimes with the French Man's Shalloup, which we had found a convenient Boat, and therefore kept her with their very good Will ; at length I came fair on the South Side of my Island, and I pre- sently knew the very Countenance of the Place; so I brought the Ship safe to an Anchor, Broadside with the little Creek where was my old Habitation. As soon as I saw the Place, I call'd for Friday, and ask'd him if he knew where he was? He look'd about a little, and presently clapping his Hands, cry'd; O yes, there, yes, O there, pointing to our old Habitation, and fell a dancing and capering like a mad Fellow, and I had much ado to keep him from jumping into the Sea, to swim ashore to the Place. Well, Friday, says I, do you think we shall find any Body here or no ? And what do you think, shall we see your Father? The Fellow stood mute as a Stock a good while ; but when I nam'd his Father, the poor affeflionate Creature look'd dejedted, and I could see the Tears run down his Face very plentifully. What is the Matter, Fri- day, says I ? Are you troubled because you may see your Father? No, no, says he, shaking his Head, no see him more, no ever more .see again ; why so, said I Friday, how do you htow that? O no, O no, says Friday, he long ago die, long ago ; he much old Man. Well, well, said I, Friday, you don't know ; but shall we see any one else then? The Fellow, it seems, had better Eyes than I, and he points just to the Hill above my old House; and -tho' we lay half a League off, he cries out, we see! we see ! yes, we see much Men there, and there, and there. 1 look'd, but I could see no body, no not with a Per- ROBINSON CRUSOE. 345 speflive Glass, which was, I suppose, because I could not hit the Place, for the Fellow was right, as I found upon Enquiry the next Day, and there was five or six Men altogether, stood to look at the Ship, not knowing what to think of us. As soon as Friday had told me he saw People, I caus'd the English Antient to be spread, and fir'd three Guns, to give them Notice we were Friends, and in about half a Quarter of an Hour after, we perceiv'd a Smoke rise from the Side of the Creek ; so I immediately order'd a Boat out, taking Friday with me, and hanging out a white Flag, or Flag of Truce, I went diredlly on Shore, taking with me the young Fryer I mention'd, to whom I had told the whole Story of my living there, and the Manner of it, and every Particular both of my self, and those I left there; and who was on that Account ex- tremely desirous to go with me. We had besides about sixteen Men very well arm'd, if we had found any new Guests there which we did not know of; but we had no Need of Weapons. As we went on Shore upon the Tide of Flood, near high Water, we row'd diredlly into the Creek, and the first Man I fix'd my Eye upon, was the Spaniard whose Life I had sav'd, and whom I knew by his Face per- feiflly well ; as to his Habit I shall describe it afterwards. I order'd no body to go on Shore at first but my self, but there was no keeping Friday in the Boat ; for the affe<5lionate Creature had spy'd his Father at a Distance, a good Way off of the Spaniards, where indeed I saw nothing of him ; and if they had not let him go on Shore, he would have jump'd into the Sea. He was no sooner on Shore, but he flew away to^his Father like an Arrow out of a Bow. It would have made any Man have shed Tears in Spight of the firmest Resolution, to have seen the first Transports of this poor Fellow's Joy when he came to his Father ; how he embrac'd him, kiss'd him, strok'd his Face, took him up in his Arms, set him down upon a Tree, and lay down by him, then stood and look'd at 346 AD VENTURES OF him, as any one would look at a strange Pifture for a Quarter of an Hour together ; then lye down on the Ground, and stroke his Legs, and kiss them, and then get up again, and stare at him ; one would ha' thought the Fellow bewitch'd: But it would ha' made a Dog laugh to see how the next Day his Passion run out an- other Way: In the Morning he walk'd along the Shore, to and again, with his Father several Hours, always leading him by the Hand, as if he had been a Lady; and every now and then he would come to fetch some- thing or other for him to the Boat, either a Lump of Sugar, or a Dram, a Bisket Cake, or something or other that was good. In the Afternoon his Frolicks run an- other Way ; for then he would set the old Man down upon the Ground, and dance about him, and make a Thou- sand antick Postures and Gestures; and all the while he did this, he would be talking to him, and telling him one Story or another of his Travels, and of what had happen'd to him Abroad, to divert him. In short, if the same filial Affedlion was to be found in Christians to their Parents, in our Part of the World, one would be tempted to say, there would hardly ha' been any Need of the Fifth Commandment. But this is a Digression; I return to my Landing. It would be endless to take Notice of all the Ceremonies and Civilities that the Spaniards receiv'd me with. The first Spaniard, whom, as I said, I knew very well, was he whose Life I had sav'd ; he came towards the Boat, attended by one more, carrying a Flag of Truce also ; and he did not only not know me at first, but he had no Thoughts, no Notion of its being me that was come, till I spoke to him: Seignior, said I in Portuguese, Do you not know me? At which he spoke not a Word ; but giving his Musket to the Man that was with him, threw his Arms abroad, and saying something in Spanish, that I did not perfefUy hear, comes forward, and embrac'd me, telling me he was inexcusable, not to know that Face again, that he had once seen, as of an Angel from Hea- ROBINSON CRUSOE. 347 ven sent to save his Life: He said Abundance of very handsome Things, as a well-bred Spaniard aVwa-ys knows how; and then beckoning to the Person that attended him, bad him go and call out his Comrades. He then ask'd me, if I would walk to my old Habitation, where he would give me Possession of my own House again, and where I should, see there had been but mean Im- provements; so I walk'd along with him; but alas! I could no more find the Place again, than if I had never been there; for they had planted so many Trees, and plac'd them in such a Posture, so thick and close to one another; and in ten Years Time they were grown so big, that in short the Place was inaccessible, except by such Windings and blind Ways, as they themselves only, who made them, could find. I ask'd them what put them upon all these Fortifi- cations? He told me, I would say there was Need enough of it, when they had given me an Account how they had pass'd their Time since their Arriving in the Island ; especially after they had the Misfortune to find that I was gone. He told me, he could not but have some Satisfaftion in my good Fortune, when he heard that I was gone away in a good Ship, and to my Satis- faftion ; and that he had often-times a strong Persuasion, that one Time or other he should see me again : But no- thing that ever befel him in his Life, he said, was so sur- prizing, and afflidling to him at first, as the Disappoint- ment he was under when he came back to the Island, and found I was not there. As to the three Barbarians (so he call'd them) that were left behind, and of whom he said he had a long Story to tell me ; the Spaniards all thought themselves much better among the Savages, only that their Number was so small. And, says he, had they been strong enough, we had been all long ago in Purgatory ; and with that he cross'd himself on the Breast : But Sir, says he, I hope you will not be displeas'd, when I shall tell you how forc'd by Necessity we were oblig'd, for our own Pre- 348 ADVENTURES OF servation, to disarm them, and make them our Subjedls, who would not be content with being moderately our Masters, but would be our Murtherers. I answer'd, I was heartily afraid of it when I left them there ; and nothing troubled me at my parting from the Island, but that they were not come back, that I might have put them in Pos- session of every Thing first, and left the other in a State of Subjedtion, as they deserv'd : But if they had reduc'd them to it, I was very glad, and should be very far from finding any Fault with it ; for I knew they were a Parcel of refradlory, ungovern'd Villains, and were fit for any Manner of Mischief. While I was saying this, came the Man whom he had sent back, and with him eleven Men more : In the Dis- tress they were in, it was impossible to guess what Nation they were of: But he made all clear both to them and to me. First he turn'd to me, and pointing to them, saidy These, Sir, are some of the Gentlemen who owe their Lives to you ; and then turning to them, and pointing to me, he let them know who I was ; upon which they all came up one by one, not as if they had been Sailors and ordinary Fellows, and I the like, but really, as if they had been Ambassadors of Noblemen, and I a Monarch or a great Conqueror ; their Behaviour was to the last Degree obliging and courteous, and yet mix'd with a manly, ma- jestick Gravity, which very well became them; and in short, they had so much more Manners than I, that I scarce knew how to receive their Civilities, much less how to return them in Kind. The History of their coming, to, and Conduct in the Island, after my going away, is so very remarkable, and has so many Incidents, which the former Part' of my Relation will help to understand, and which will in most of the Particulars, refer to that Account I have already given, that I cannot but commit them with great Delight to the Reading of those that come after me. I shall no longer trouble the Story with a Relation in the first Person, which will put me to the Expence ROBINSON CRUSOE. 349 of ten thousand Said I's, and Said He's, and he Told trie's, and I Told him's, and the like ; but I shall coUedl the Fadls historically, as near as I can gather them out of my Memory from what they related to me, and from what I met with in my conversing with them and with the Place. In Order to do this succindlly, and as intelligibly as I can, I must go back to the Circumstance in which I left the Island, and in which the Persons were of whom I am to speak. And first it is necessary to repeat, that I had sent away Friday's Father and the Spaniard, the two whose Lives I had rescued from the Savages : I say, I had sent them away in a large Canoe to the Main, as I then thought it, to fetch over the Spaniard' s Com- panions, whoni he had left behind him, in order to save them from the like Calamity that he had been in ; and in order to succour them for the present, and that if pos- sible, we might together find some Way for our Deliver- ance afterward. When I sent them away, I had no visible Appear- ance of, or the least Room to hope for my own Deliver- ance any more than I had twenty Years before; much less had I any Fore-knowledge of what afterwards hap- pened, I mean of an English Ship coming on Shore there to fetch me off; and it could not but be a very great Surprize to them when they came back, not only to find that I was gone, but to find three Strangers left on the Spotj possessed of all that I had left behind me, which would otherwise have been their own. The first Thing, however, which I enquired into, that I might begin where I left off, was of their own Part ; and I desired he would give me a particular Account of his Voyage back to his Countrymen with the Boat, when I sent him to fetch them over. He told me there was little Variety in that Part, for nothing remarkable happened to them on the Way, they having very calin Weather, and a smooth Sea ; for his Countrymen it could not be doubted,' he said, but that they were overjoyed to see him. (It 35° ADVENTURES OF seems he was the principal Man among them, the Captain of the Vessel they had been shipwreck'd in having been dead some Time) they were, he said, the more surprized to see him, because they knew that he was fallen into the Hands of the Savages, who, they were satisfied, would devour him as they did all the rest of the Prisoners ; that when he told them the Story of his Deliverance, and in what Manner he was furnished for carrying them away, it was like a Dream to them; and their Astonishment, they said, was something like that of Joseph's Brethren,' when he told them who he was, and told them the Story of his Exaltation in Pharaoh's Court: But when he shewed them the Arms, the Powder, the Ball, and the Provisions that he brought them for their Journey or Voyage, they were restored to themselves, took a just Share of the Joy of their Deliverance, and immediately prepared to come away with him. Their first Business was to get Canoes ; and in this they were obliged not to stick so much upon the honest Part of it, but to trespass upon their friendly Savages, and to borrow two large Canoes, or Periaguas, on Pre- tence of going out a Fishing, or for Pleasure. In these they came away the next Morning. It seems they wanted no Time to get themselves ready ; for they had no Baggage, neither Clothes or Provisions, or any Thing in the World, but what they had on them, and a few Roots to eat, of which they used to make their Bread. They were in all three Weeks absent, and in that Time, unluckily for them, I had the Occasion offered for my Escape, as I mentioned in my other Part, and to get off from the Island, leaving three of the most impudent, hardned, ungpverned, disagreeable Villains behind me, that any Man could desire to meet with, to the poor Spaniards great Grief and Disappointment, you may be sure. The only just Thing the Rogues did, was, That when the Spaniards came on Shore, they gave my Letter to them, .and gave them Provisions and other Relief, as I ROBINSON CRUSOE. 351- had ordered them to do ; also they gave them the long Paper of Diredlions which I had left with them, contain- ing the particular Methods which I took for managing every Part of my Life there ; the Way how I baked my Bread, bred up tame Goats, and planted my Corn, how I cur'd my Grapes, made my Pots ; and in a Word, every Thing I did. All this being written down, they gave to the Spaniards, two of whom understood English well enough ; nor did they refuse to accommodate the Span- iards with every Thing else, for they agreed very well for some Time. They gave them an equal Admission into the House or Cave ; and they began to live very sociably, and the Head Spaniard, who had seen pretty much of my Methods, and Friday's Father together, managed all their Affairs : For, as for the English Men, they did no- thing but ramble about the Island, shoot Parrots, and catch Tortoises, and when they came Home at Night, the Spaniards provided their Suppers for them. The Spaniards would have been satisfied with this, would the other but have let them alone, which, however, they could not find in their Hearts to do long, but like the Dog in the Manger, they would not eat themselves, and would not let others eat neither. The Differences, nevertheless, were at first but trivial, and such as are not worth relating ; but at last, it broke out into open War, and it begun with all the Rudeness and Insolence that can be imagined, without Reason, without Provocation, contrary to Nature, and indeed, to common Sense, and tho' it is true the first Relation of it came from the Span- iards themselves, whom I may call the Accusers, yet when I came to examine the Fellows, they could not deny a Word of it. But before I come to the Particulars of this Part, I must supply a Defefl in my former Relaition, and this was, that I forgot to set down among the rest, that just as we were weighing the Anchor to set Sail, there happened a little Quarrel on board our Ship, which I was afraid once would have turned to a second Mutiny; nor was it 352 ADVENTURES OF appeased, till the Captain rouzing up his Courage, and taking us all to his Assistance, parted them by Force, and making two of the most refraflory Fellows Prisoners, he laid them in Irons ; and as they had been adlive in the former Disorders, and let fall some dangerous ugly Words the second Time, he threatened to carry them in Irons to England, and have them hanged there for Mu- tiny, and running away with the Ship. This, it seems, tho' the Captain did not intend to do it, frighted some other Men in the Ship, and some of them had put it into the Heads of the rest, that the Cap- tain only gave them good Words for the present, till they should come to some English Port, and that then they should be all put into Jayl, and try'd for their Lives. The Mate got Intelligence of this, and acquainted us with it ; upon which it was desired, that I, who still pass'd for a great Man among them, should go down with the Mate, and satisfy the Men, and tell them, that they might be assured, if they behav'd well the rest of the Voyage, all they had done for the Time past should be pardoned. So I went, and after passing my Honour's Word to them, they appeared easy ; and the more so, when I caused the two Men who were in Irons, to be released and forgiven. But this Mutiny had broiight us to an Anchor for that Night, the Wind also falling calm ; next Morning we found, that our two Men who had been laid in Irons, had stole each of them a Musket, and some other Weapons ; what Powder or Shot they had, we know not; and had taken the Ship's Pinnace, which was not yet hal'd up, and ran away with her to their Companions in Roguery on Shore. As soon as we found this, I ordered the Lpng-Boat on Shore, with twelve Men and the Mate, and away they went to seek the Rogues, but they could neither find them, nor any of the rest; for they all fled into the Woods when they saw the Boat coming on Shore. The; Mate was once resolv'd, in Justice to their Roguery, to. have destroyed their Plantations, burnt all their Houshold- ROBINSON CRUSOE. 353 Stuff and Furniture, and left them to shift without it ; but having no Order, he let it all alone, left every Thing as they found it, and bringing the Pinnace away, came on board without them. These two Men made their Number five, but the other three Villains were so much wickeder than these, that after they had been two or three Days together, they turn'd their two new Comers out of Doors to shift for themselves, and would have nothing to do with them, nor could they for a good while be perswaded to give them any Food ; as for the Spaniards they were not yet come. When the Spaniards came first on Shore, the Busi- ness began to go forward ; the Spaniards would have perswaded the three English Brutes to have taken in their two Countrymen again, that, as they said, they might be all one Family ; but they would not hear of it. So the two poor Fellows liv'd by themselves, and finding nothing but Industry and Application would make them live comfortably, they pitch'd their Tents on the North Shore of the Island, but a little more on the West, to be out of the Danger of the Savages, who always landed on the East Parts of the Island. Here they built them two Huts, one to lodge in, and the other to lay up their Magazines and Stores in, and the Spaniards having given them some Corn for Seed, and especially some of the Pease which I had left them ; they dug, and planted, and enclosed, after the Pattern I had set for them all, and began to live pretty well. Their first Crop of Corn was on the Ground ; and tho' it was but a little Bit of Land which they had dug up at first, having had but a little Time, yet it was enough to relieve them, and find them with Bread and other Eatables ; and one of the Fellows being the Cook's Mate of the Ship was very ready at making Soup, Puddings, and other such Preparations, as the Rice, and the Milk, and such littl? Flesh as they got, furnished him to do. They were going on in this little thriving Posture, R. C. ' 23 3S4- ADVENTURES OF when the three unnatural Rogues, their own Countrymen too, in meer Humour, and to insult them, came and bullied them, and told them, the , Island was theirs, that the Governor, meaning me, had given them Possession of it, and no Body else had any Right to it, and damn 'em, they should build no Houses upon their Ground, unless they would pay them Rent for them. The two Men thought they had jested at first, ask'd them to come in and sit down, and see what fine Houses they were that they had built, and tell them what Rent they demanded ; and one of them merrily told them, if they were Ground-Landlords, he hoped, if they built Tenements upon their Land, and made Improvements, they would, according to the Custom of Landlords, grant them a long Lease, and bid them go fetch a Scrivener to draw the Writings. One of the three damning and raging, told them, they should see they were not in Jest, and going to a little Place at a Distance, where the ho- nest Men had made a fire to dress their Vifluals, he takes a Firebrand, and claps it to the Out-side of their Hut, and very fairly set it on Fire, and it would have been all burnt down in a few Minutes, if one of the two had not run to the Fellow, thrust him away, and trode the Fire out with his Feet, and that not without some Difficulty too. The Fellow was in such a Rage at the honest Man's thrusting him away, that he returned upon him with a Pole he had in his Hand, and had not the Man avoided the Blow very nimbly, and run into the Hut, he had ended his Days at once. His Comrade seeing the Dan- ger they were both in, run in after him, and immediately they came both out with their Muskets, and the Man that was first struck at with the Pole, knock'd the Fellow down, that had begun the Quarrel, with the Stock of his Musket, and that before the other two could come to help him, and then seeing the rest come at them, they stood together, and presenting the other Ends of their Pieces to them, bad them stand off. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 355 The other had Fire-Arms with them too, but one of the two honest Men, bolder than his Conarade, and made desperate by. his Danger, told them, if they offer'd to move Hand or Foot, they were dead Men, and boldly commanded them to lay down their Arms. They did not indeed lay down their Arms, but seeing him so resolute, it brought them to a Parley, and they consented to take their wounded Man with them, and be gone; and in- . deed it seems the Fellow was wounded sufficiently with the Blow. However, they were much in the wrong, since they had the Advantage, that they did not disarm them effedlually, as they might have done, and have gone im- mediately to the Spaniards, and given them an Account how the Rogues had treated them ; for the three Villains studied nothing but Revenge, and every Day gave them, some Intimation that they did so. But not to crowd this Part with an Account of the lesser Part of their Rogueries, such as treading down their Corn, shooting three young Kids, and a She-Goat, which the poor Men had got to breed up tame for their Store; an^) i^^ ^ word, plaguing them Night and Day in this Manner, it forced the two Men to such a Despe- ration, that they resolv'd to fight them all three the first Time they had a fair Opportunity. In Order to this, they resolv'd to go to the Castle, as they call'd it, that was my old Dwelling, where the three Rogues and the Spaniards all liv'd together, at that Time intending to have a fair Battle, and the Spaniards should stand by to see fair Play; so they got up in the Morning before Day, and came to the Place, and call'd the English Men by their Names, telling a Spaniard, that answer'd, that they want- ed to speak with them. It happen'd, that the Day before, two of the Spani- ards having been in the Woods, had seen one of the two English Men, whom, for Distinflion, I call the Honest Men, and he had made a sad Complaint to the Spaniards, of the barbarous Usage they had met with from their three Countrymen, and how they had ruin'd their Planta- 23—2 356 ADVENTURES OF tion, and destroy'd their Corn, that they had labour'd so hard to bring forward, and kill'd the Milch-Goat and their three Kids, which was all they had provided for their Sustenance ; and that if he and his Friends, mean- ing the Spaniards, did not assist them again, they should be starved. When the Spaniards came home at Night, and they were all at Supper, he took the Freedom to re- prove the three English Men, tho' in very gentle and mannerly Terms, and ask'd them. How they could be so cruel, they being harmless inoifensive Fellows, and that they were only putting themselves in a way to subsist by their Labour, and that it had cost them a great deal of Pains to bring things to such Perfedlion as they had? One of the English Men return'd very briskly, What had they to do there? That they came on Shore with- out Leave, and they should not plant or build upon the Island, it was none of their Ground. Why, says the Spaniard very calmly. Seignior Inglese, they must not starve. The English Man reply'd like a true rough-hewn Tarpaulin, they might starve and be damn'd, they should not Plant nor Build. But what must they do then, Seignior, said the Spaniard? Another of the Brutes return'd, do ! D — n 'em, they should be Servants, and work for them. But how can you expedl that of them, says the Spaniard, that are not bought with your Money? You have no Right to make them Servants. The Eng- lish Man answer'd, the Island was theirs, the Govemour had given it to them, and no Man had any thing to do there but themselves ; and with that swore by his Maker, that they would go and burn all their new Huts, they should build none upon their Land. Why, Seignior, says the Spaniard, by the same Rule we must be your Servants too? Ah, says the bold Dog, and so you shall too, before we have done with you, mix- ing two or three G — d Damme's in the proper Intervals of his Speech. The Spaniard only smil'd at that, and made him no Answer. However, this little Discourse had heated them, and starting up, one says to the other, I ROBINSON CRUSOE. 357 think it was he they call'd Will. Atkins, Come Jack, let us go and have t'other Brash with them ; we'll demolish their Castle, I'll warrant you, they shall plant no Colony in our Dominions. Upon this, they went all Trooping away, with every Man a Gun, a Pistol, and a Sword, and mutter'd some insolent Things among themselves, of what they would do to the Spaniards too, when Opportunity offer'd; but the .Spaniards it seems did not so perfeftly understand them, as to know all the Particulars ; only, that, in gene- ral, they threatned them hard for taking the two Eng- lish Mens Part. Whether they went, or how they bestow'd their Time that Evening, the Spaniards said, they did not know ; but it seems they wandred about the Country, Part of the Night, and then lying down in the Place which I used to call my Bower, they were weary, and over-slept them- selves. The case was this, they had resolv'd to stay till Mid-night, and so to take the two poor Men when they were asleep, and as they acknowledg'd afterwards, in- tended to set Fire to their Huts while they were in them, and either burn them in them, or murder them as they came out; and as Malice seldom sleeps very sound, it was very strange they should not have been kept waking. However, as the two Men had also a Design upon them, a§ I have said, tho' a much fairer one than that of Burning and Murthering, it happen'd, and very luckily for them all, that they were up and gone abroad, before the bloody-minded Rogues came to their Huts. When they came there and found the Men gone, Atkins, who it seems, was the forwardest Man, call'd out to his Comrades, ha! Jack, here's the Nest, but D — n 'em the Birds are flown; they mused a while to think what should be the Occasion of their being gone abroad so soon, and suggested presently, that the Spaniards had given them Notice of it, and with that they shook Hands, and swore to one another that they would be reveng'd of the Spaniards. As soon as they had made this bloody 3S8 ADVENTURES OF Bargain, they fell to work with the poor Mens Habita- tion ; they did not set Fire indeed to any thing, but they puU'd down both their little Houses, and puU'd them so Limb from Limb, that they left not the least Stick stand- ing, or scarce any Sign oh the Ground where they stood: They tore all their little coUefted Houshold Stuff in Pieces, and threw every Thing about in such a manner, that the poor Men afterwards found some of their Things a: Mile off of their Habitation. When they had done this, they pull'd up all the young Trees the poor Men had planted, pull'd up an Enclosure they had made to secure their Cattle and their Corn ; and in a Word, sack'd and plunder'd every thing, as com- pleatly as a Hoord of Tartars would have done. The two Men were at this Juniflure gone to find them out, and had resolved to fight them whereever they had been, tho' they were but two to three : So that had they met, there certainly would have been Bloodshed among them, for they were all very stout resolute Fellows, to give them their due. But Providence took more Care to keep them assun- der, than they themselves ' could do to meet ; for, as if they had dogg'd one another, when the three were gone thither, the two were here ; and afterwards when the two went back to find them, the three were come to the old Habitation again ; we shall see their differing Condudl presently. When the three came back, like furious Crea- tures, flush' d with the Rage which the Work they had been about had put them into, they came up to the Spaniards, and told them what they had done, by way of Scoff and Bravado ; and one of them stepping up to one of the Spaniards, as if they had been a Couple of. Boys at Play, takes hold of his Hat, as it was upon his Head, and giving it a Twirl about, sneering in his Face, says he to him, And you, Seignior, Jack Spaniard, shall have the same Sauce, if you do not mend your Manners: The Spaniard, who tho' a quiet civil Man, was as brave as a Man could be desir'd to be, and withal a strong well- ROBINSON CRUSOE. 359 made Man, look'd steadily at him for a good while, and then having no Weapon in his Hand, stept gravely up to him, and with one Blow of his Fist knock'd him down, as an Ox is fell'd with a Pole-Axe; at which one of the Rogues, insolent at the first, fir'd his Pistol at the Spaniard immediately. He miss'd his Body indeed, for the Bullets went thro' his Hair, but one of them touch'd the tip of his Ear, and he bled pretty much. The Blood made the Spaniard believe, he was more hurt then he really was, and that put him into some Heat; for before, he afled all in a perfeft Calm ; but now resolving to go thro' with bis Work, he stoop'd to take the Fellow's Musket whom he had knock'd down, and was just going to shoot the Man, and had fir'd at him, when the rest of the Spaniards^ being in the Cave, caine out, and calling to him not to shoot, they stept in, secur'd the other two, and took their Arms from them. When they were thus disarm'd, and found they had made all the Spaniards their Enemies, as well as their own Countrymen, they began to cool, and giving the Spaniards better Words, would have had their Arms again ; but the Spaniards considering the Feud that was between them and the other two English Men, and that it would be the best Method they could take, to keep them from killing one another, told them, they would do them no Harm, and if they would live peaceably, they would be very willing to assist and sociate with them, as they did before : but that they could not think of giving them their Arms again, while they appear'd so resolv'd to do Mischief with them to their own Coimtrymen, and had even threatned them all, to make them their Servants. The Rogues were now no more capable to hear Rea- son, than to adl Reason, and being refus'd their Arms, they went raving away and raging like mad Men, threat- ning what they would do, tho' they had no Fire-Arms. But the Spaniards despising their Threatning, told them they should take Care how they offer'd any Injury to their Plantation or Cattle, for if they did, they would 36o ADVENTURES OF shoot them as they would do ravenous Beasts, where ever they found them ; and if they fell into their Hands alive, they should certainly be hang'd. However, this was far from cooling them, but away they went raging and swearing like Furies of Hell. As soon as they were gone, came back the two Men in Passion and Rage enough also, tho' of another Kind; for having been at their Plantation, and finding it all demolish'd and de- stroy" d, as above, it will easily be suppos'd they had Provocation enough; they could scarce have Room to tell their Tale, the Spaniards were so eager to teU them theirs; and it was strange enough to find three Men thus bully nineteen, and receive no Punishment at all. The Spaniards indeed despised them, and especially having thus disarm'd them, made light of all their Threatnings ; but the two English Men resolv'd to have their Remedy against them, what Pain soever it cost to find them out. But the Spaniards interpos'd here too, and told them, that as they had disarm'd them, they could not consent that they (the Two) should pursue them with Fire- Arms, and perhaps kill them ; but said the grave Spaniard, who was their Governour, we will endeavour to make them do you Justice if you will leave it to us ; for as there is no doubt but they will come to us again when their Passion is over, being not able to subsist without our Assistance, we promise you to make no Peace with them, without having a full Satisfaflion for you ; upon this Condition we hope you wiU promise to use no Violence' with them, other than in your own Defence. The two English Men yielded to this very awkardly, and with great Reluflance ; but the Spaniards protested, they did it only to keep them from Bloodshed, and to make all easy at last ; for said they, We are not so many of us, here is Room enough for us all, and it is great Pity we should not be all good Friends ; at length they did consent, and waited for the Issue of the Thing, living ROBINSON CRUSOE. 361 for some Days with the Spaniards, for their own Habita- tion was destroyed. In about five Days Time the three Vagrants, tir'd with Wandring, and almost starv'd with Hunger, having chiefly Hv'd on Turtles Eggs all that while, came back to the Grove, and finding my Spaniard, who, as I have said, was the Governour, and two more with him walking by the Side of the Creek, they came up in a very submissive humble Manner, and begg'd to be receiv'd again into the Family. The Spaniards used them civilly, but told them, they had adted so unnaturally by their Countrymen, and so very grossly by them (the Spaniards) that they could not come to any Conclusion, without consulting the two English Men and the rest; but however, they would go to them and discourse about it, and they should know in half an Hour. It may be guess'd, that they were very hard put to it; for, it seems, as they were to wait this half Hour for an Answer, they begged he would send them out some Bread in the mean Time, which he did, and sent them at the same Time a large Piece of Goats Flesh, and a broiled Parrot, which they eat very heartily, for they were hungry enough. After Half an Hour's -Consultation they were call'd in, and a long Debate had among them, their two Coun- trymen charging them with the Ruin of all their Labour, and a Design to murder them; all which they owned before, and therefore could not deny now. Upon the whole, the Spaniard adled the Moderator between them, and as they had obliged the two English Men not to hurt the three while they were naked and unarmed, so they now obliged the three to go and build their Fellows two Huts, one of the same, and the other of larger Dimensions, than they were before ; to fence their Ground again, where they had pulled up the Fences, plant Trees in the Room of those pulled up, dig up the Land again for planting Corh, where they had spoiled it; and in a Word, to restore every Thing in the same State they found it, as near as they could, for entirely it could 362 ADVENTURES OF not be, the Season for the Corn, and the Growth of the Trees and Hedges, not being possible to be re- covered. Well, they submitted to all this, and as they had Plenty of Provisions given them all the while, they grew very orderly, and the whole Society began to live plea- santly and agreeably together, only that these three Fel- lows could never be persuaded to work, I mean for them- selves, except now and then a little, just as they pleas'd. However, the Spaniards told them plainly, that if they would but live sociably and friendly together, and study in the whole the Good of the Plantation, they would be content to work for them, and let them walk about, and be as idle as they pleas'd ; and thus having lived pretty well together for a Month or two, the Spaniards gave them Arms again, and gave them Liberty to go abroad with them as before. It was not above a Week after they had these Arms, and went abroad, but the ungrateful Creatures began to be insolent and troublesome as before ; but however, an Accident happening presently upon this, which endan- gered the Safety of them all, they were obliged to lay by all private Resentments, and look to the Preservation of their Lives. It happened one Night, that the Spaniard Governour, as I call him, that is to say, the Spaniard, whose Life I had saved, who was now the Captain, or Leader, or Governour of the rest, found himself very uneasy in the Night, and could by no Means get any Sleep; he was perfeftly well in Body, as he told. me the Story, only found his Thoughts tumultuous, his Mind run upon Men fighting and killing of one another, but was broad awake, and could not by any Means get any Sleep. In short, he lay a great while, but growing more and more uneasy, he resolved to rise : As they lay, being so many of them, upon Goats-skins, laid thick upon such Couches, and Pads, as they made for themselves, not in Hammocks and Ship Beds, as I did, who was but one, so they had ROBINSON CRUSOE. 363 little to do, when they were willing to rise, but to get up upon their Feet, and perhaps put on a Coat, such as it was, and their Pumps, and they were ready for gbing any Way that their Thoughts guided them. Being thus gotten up, he look'd out, but being dark, he could see little or nothing; and besides, the Trees which I had planted, as in my former Account is de- scribed, and which were now grown tall, intercepted his Sight, so that he could only look up, and see that it was a clear Starlight Night, and hearing no Noise, he returned and laid him down again ; but it was all one, he coflld not sleep, nor could he compose himself to any Thing like Rest, but his Thoughts were to the last Degree un- easy, and yet he knew not for what. - Having made some Noise with rising and walking about, going out and coming in, another of them waked, and calling, asked, who it was that was up? The Go- vernour told him, how it had been with him. Say you so, says the other Spaniard, such Things are not to be slighted, I assure you; there is certainly some Mischief working, says he, near us ; and presently he asked him, Where are the English Men? They are all in their Huts, says he, safe enough. It seems, the Spaniards had kept Possession of the main Apartment, and had made a Place where the three English Men, since their last Mutiny always quartered by themselves, and could not come at the rest. Well, says the Spaniard, there is something in it, I am persuaded from my own Expe- rience ; I am satisfied our Spirits embodied have a. Con- verse with, and receive Intelligence from the Spirits unembodied, and inhabiting the invisible World, and this friendly Notice is given for our Advantage, if we know how to make Use of it. Come, says he, let us go out and look abroad, and if we find nothing at all in it to justify the Trouble, I will tell you a Story to the Pur- pose, that shall convince you of the Justice of my pro- posing it. In a Word, they went out to go up to the Top of the 364 ADVENTURES OF Hill, where I used to go, but they being strong and in good Company, not alone, as I was, used none of my Cautions, to go up by the Ladder, and then pulling it up after them, to go up a second Stage to the Top, but were going round thro' the Grove unconcerned and unwary, when they were surprized with seeing a Light, as of Fire, a very little Way off from them, ■ and hearing the Voices of Men, not of one, or two, but of a great Number. In all the Discoveries I had made of the Savages landing on the Island, it was my constant Care to prevent them making the least Discovery of there being any In- habitant upon the Place ; and when by any Occasion they came to know it, they felt it so effefbually, that they that got away were scarce able to give any Account of it, for we disappeared as soon as possible ; nor did ever any that had seen me, escape to tell any one else, except it were the three Savages in our last Encounter, who jumped into the Boat, of whom I mentioned, that I was afraid they should go Home and bring more Help. Whether it was the Consequence of the Escape of those Men, that so great a Number came now together, or whether they came ignorantly, and by Accident, on their usual bloody Errand, they could not it seems under- stand ; but whatever it was, it had been their Business, ■ either to have concealed themselves, as not to have seen them at all, much less to have let the Savages have seen that there were any Inhabitants in the Place, or to have fallen upon them so effedlually, as that not a Man of them should have escaped, which could only have been, by getting in between them and their Boats ; but this Presence of Mind was wanting to them, which was the Ruin of their Tranquillity for a great while. We need not doubt, but that the Governour and the Man with him, surprized with this Sight run back immediately, and rais'd their Fellows, giving them an Account of the imminent Danger they were all in ; and they again as readily took the Alarm, but it was impos- sible to persuade them to stay close within where they ROBINSON CRUSOE. 365 were, but that they must run all out to see how Things stood. While it was dark indeed, they were well enough, and they had Opportunity enough for some Hours to view them by the Light of three Fires they had made at ■ a Distance from one another ; what they were doing they knew not, and what to do themselves they knew not. For, first, the Enemy were too many ; and secondly, they did not keep together, but were divided into several Par- ties, and were on Shore in several Places. The Spaniards were in no small Consternation at this Sight, and as they found that the Fellows ran straggling all over the Shore, they made no doubt, but first or last, some of them would chop in upon their Habitation, or upon some other Place, where they would see the Token of Inhabitants, and they were in great Perplexity also for fear of their Flock of Goats, which would have been little less than starving them, if they should have been de- stroy'd ; so the first Thing they resolv'd upon, was to dis- patch three Men away before it was light, viz. two Span- iards and one Englishman, to drive all the Goats away to the great Valley where the Cave was, and if Need were, to drive them into the very Cave itself. Could they have seen the Savages all together in one Body, and at any Distance from their Canoes, they re- solv'd, if they had been an hundred of them, to have attack'd them ; but that could not be obtain' d, for they were some of them two Miles off from the other, and, as it appear'd afterwards, were of two different Nations. After having mused a great while on the Course they should take, and beaten their Brains in consider- ing their present Circumstances, they resolv'd at last, while it was dark, to send the old Savage, Friday's Fa- ther, out as a Spy, to learn, if possible, something con- cerning them, what they came for, and what they intended to do ; the old Man readily undertook it, and stripping himself quite naked, as most of the Savages were, away he went. After he had been gone an Hour or two, he 366 .ADVENTURES OF brings Word, that he had been among them undiscover'd, that he found they were two Parties, and of two several Nations who had War with one another, and had had a great Battle in their own Country, and that both Sides having had several Prisoners taken in the Fight, they were by meer Chance landed all in the same Island, for the devouring their Prisoners, and making merry ; but their coming so by Chance to the same Place had spoil'd all their Mirth; that they were in a great Rage at one another, and that they were so near, that he believ'd they would fight again as soon as Day-light began to appear ; but he did not perceive that they had any Notion of any Body's being on the Island but themselves. He had hardly made an End of telling his Story, when they could perceive, by the unusual Noise they made, that the two little Armies were engag'd in a bloody Fight. Friday's Father used all the Arguments he could to persuade our people to lye close, and not be seen ; he told them their Safety consisted in it, and that they had nothing to do but lye still, and the Savages would kill one another to their Hands, and then the rest would go away ; and it was so to a Tittle. But it was impossible to prevail, especially upon the Englishmen, their Curi- osity was so importunate upon their Prudentials, that they must run out and see the Battle : However, they used some Caution too, (fz>.) they did not go openly, just by their own Dwelling, but went farther into the Woods, and plac'd themselves to Advantage, where they might securely see them manage the Fight, and, as they thought, not to be seen by them ; but it seems the Savages did see them, as we shall find hereafter. The Battle was very fierce, and if I might believe the Englishmen, one of them said, he could perceive, that some of them were Men of great Bravery, of in- vincible Spirit, and of great Policy in guiding the Fight. The Battle, they said, held two Hours, before they could guess which Party would be beaten ; but then that Party which was nearest our People's Habitation began to ap- ROBINSON CRUSOE. 367 pear weakest, and after some Time more, some of them began to fly; and this put our Men again into a great Consternation, lest any of those that fled should run into the Grove before their Dwelling, for Shelter, and thereby involuntarily discover the Place; and that by Conse- quence the Pursuers should do the like in Search for them. Upon this they resolv'd that they would stand arm'd within the Wall, and whoever came into the Grove, they should sally out over the Wall and kill them : so that, if possible, not one should return to give an Ac- count of it. They order'd also, that it shoiild be done with their Swords, or by knocldng them down with the Stock of the Musket, but not by shooting them, for fear of the Noise. . As they expedled, it fell , out ; three of the routed Army fled for Life, and, crossing the Creek, ran direftly into the Place, not in the least knowing whether they went, but running as into a thick Wood for Shelter ; the Scout they kept to look Abroad, gave Notice of this within, with this Addition, to our Mens great Satisfac- tion {viz.) That the Conquerors had not pursued them, or feeen which Way they were gone. Upon this the Spa- niard Govemour, a Man of Humanity, would not suffer them to kill the three Fugitives, but sending three Men out by the Top of the Hill, order'd them to go round and come in behind them, surprise, and take them Pri- soners, which was done. The Residue of the conquer'd People fled to their Canoes, and got off to Sea; the Viftors retir'd, and made no Pursuit, or very little, but drawing theipselves into a Body together, gave two great skreaming Shouts, which they suppos'd was by way of Triumph, and so the Fight ended: And the same Day, about three a Clock in the Afternoon, they also march'd to their Canoes ; and thus the Spaniards had their Island again free to themselves, their Fright was over, and they saw no Savages in several Years after. After they were all gone, the Spaniards came out of their den, and viewing the Field of Battle, they found 368 ADVENTURES OF about two and thirty dead Men upon the Spot; some were killed with great long Arrows, some of which were found sticking in their Bodies ; but most of them were killed with their great wooden Swords, sixteen or seven- ,teen of which they found in the Field of Battle, and as many Bows, with a great many Arrows. These Swords were strange great unweildy Things, and they must be very strong Men that used them. Most of those Men that were killed with them, had their Heads mash'd to Pieces, as we may say, or as we call it in English, their brains knock'd out, and several their Arms and Legs broken; so that 'tis evident they fight with inexpressible Rage and Fury. We found not one wounded Man that was not stone dead ; for either they stay by their Enemy till they have quite kill'd him, or they carry all the wounded Men, that are not quite dead, away with them. This Deliverance tam'd our English Men for a great while ; the Sight had fill'd them with Honor, and the Consequences appear'd terrible to the last Degree, even to them, if ever they should fall into the Hands of those Creatures, who would not only kill them as Enemies, but kill them for Food, as we kill our Cattle. And they profess'd to me, that the Thoughts of being eaten up like Beef or. Mutton, the' it was supposed it was not to be till they were dead, had something in it so horrible, that it nauseated their very Stomachs, made them sick when they thought of it, and fill'd their Minds with such unusual Terror, that they were not themselves for some Weeks after. This, as I said, tamed even the three English Brutes I have been speaking of; and for a great while after they were very tradlable, and went about the common Business of their whole Society well enough; planted, sow'd, reap'd, and began to be all naturaliz'd to the Country. But sometime after this, they fell all into such Measures as brought them into a great deal of Trouble. They had taken three Prisoners, as I had observed, ROBINSON CRUSOE. 369 and these three being lusty stout young Fellows, .they made them Servants, and taught them to work for them, and as Slaves they did well enough; but they did not take their Measures with them as I did by my Man Friday, viz. to begin with them upon the Principle of having saved their Lives, and then instruct them in the rational Principles of Life, much less of Religion, civiliz- ing and reducing them by kind Usage and affeflionate Arguings ; but as they gave them their Food every Day, so they gave them their Work too, and kept them fully employed in Drudgery enough ; but they fail'd in this, by it, that they never had them to assist them and fight for them, as I had my Man Friday, who was as true to me as the very Flesh upon my Bones. But to come to the Family Part, being all now good Friends, for common Danger, as I said above, had effedlually reconciled them, they began to consider their general Circumstances; and the first Thing that came under their Consideration was. Whether, seeing the Savages particularly haunted that Side pf the Island, and that there were more remote and retir'd Parts of it equally adapted to their Way of Living, and manifestly to their Advantage, they should not rather remove their Habitation, and plant in some more proper Place for their Safety, and especially for the Security of their Cattle and Corn? Upon this, after long Debate, it was concluded, That they would not remove their Habitation; because, that some Time or other, they thought they might hear from their Governour again, meaning me ; and if I should send any one to seek them, I shoidd be sure to diredl them to that Side, where, if they should find the Place de- molished, they would conclude the Savages had kill'd us all, and we were gone, and so our Supply would go too. But as to their Corn and Cattle, they agreed to re- move them into the Valley where my Cave was, where the Land was as proper for both, and where indeed there was Land enough : However, upon second Thoughts, thej R. C. 24 37q ADVENTURES OF altered one Part of that Resolution too, and resolved only to remove Part of their Cattle thither, and plant Part of their Corn there ; and so if one Part was destroyed, the other might be saved. And one Part of Prudence they used, which it was very well they did, viz. That they never trusted those thre* Savages, which they had Pri- soners, with knowing any Thing of the Plantation they had made in that Valley, or of any Cattle they had there ; much less of the Cave there, which they kept, in Case of Necessity, as a safe Retreat, and whither they carried also the two Barrels of Powder, which I had sent them at my coming away. But however, they resolved not to change their Habi- tation, yet they agreed, that as I had carefully covered it first with a Wall or Fortification, and then with a Grove of Trees; so, seeing their Safety consisted entirely in their being concealed, of which they were now fully con- vinc'd, they set to work to cover and conceal the Place yet more effeflually than before. To this Purpose, as I had planted Trees, (or rather thrust in Stakes, which in Time all grew up to be Trees) for some good Distance before the Entrance into my Apartment ; they went on in the same Manner, and filled up the rest of that whole Space of Ground, from the Trees I had set, quite down to the Side of the Creek, where, as I said, I landed my Floats, and even in the very Ooze where the Tide flow'd, not so much as leaving any Place to land, or any Sign that there had been any Landing thereabout. These Stakes also, being of a Wood very forward to grow, as I have noted formerly, they took Care to have generally very much larger and taller than those which I had planted ; and as they grew apace, so they planted them so very thick and close together, that when they had been three or four Years grown, there was no piercing with the Eye any considerable Way into the Plantation. And as for that Part which I had planted, the Trees were grown as thick as a Man's Thigh ; and among them they pjaced so many other short ones, and so thick, that, in a ROBINSOJV CRUSOE. 371 Word, it stood like a Pallisado, a Quarter of a Mile thick, and it was next to impossible to penetrate it, but with a little Army to cut it all down ; for a little Dog could hardly get between the Trees, they stood so close. But this was not all, for they did the same by all the Ground to the right Hand, and to the Left, and round even to the Top of the Hill; leaving no Way, not so much as for themselves to come out, but by the Ladder placed up to the Side of the Hill, and then lifted up, and placed again from the first Stage up to the Top ; which Ladder, when it was taken down, nothing but what had Wings or Witchcraft to assist it, could come at them. This was excellently well contriv'd; nor was it less than what they afterwards found Occasion for, which serv'd to convince me, that as human Prudence has the Authority of Providence to justify it, so it has, doubtless, the Direction of Providence to set it to Work; and would we listen carefully to the Voice of it, I am fully persuaded we inight prevent many of the Disasters, which our Lives are now by our own Negligence, subjedled to. But this by the Way. I return to the Story. They lived two Years after this in perfewith her : All this appear'd so just, that every one agreed to it without any Difficulty. Then the English Men ask'd the Spaniards, if they design'd to take any of them? But every one of them answer'd, NO : Some of them said, they had Wives in Spain, and the others did. not like Women that were not Christians ; and all together declar'd, that they would not touch one of them ; which was an Instance of such Virtue as I have not met with in all my Travels. On the other Hand, to be short, the five English Men took them every one a Wife, that is to say, a temporary Wife ; and so they set up a new Form of Living ; for the Spoy niards and Friday's Father liv'd in my old Habitation,' which they had enlarg'd exceedingly within. The three Servants which were taken in the late Battle of the Savages, liv'd with them ; and these carry'd on the main Part of the Colony, supplying all the rest with Food, dnd assisting them in any Thing as they could, or as they found Necessity requir'd. But the Wonder of this Story was, how five such re- fradlory ill-match'd Fellows should agree about these Women, and that two of them should not pitch upon the same Woman, especially seeing two or three of them were, without Comparison, more agreeable than the other : But they took a good Way enough to prevent quarreling among tlfemselves ; for they set the five women by them- selves in one of their Huts, and they went all into the other Hut, and drew Lots among them, who should chuse first. He that drew to chuse first, went away by himself ROBINSON CRUSOE. 385 to the Hut where the poor naked Creatures were, and fetch'd out her he chose; and it was worth observing, that he that chose first took her that was reckon'd the homeliest, and the oldest of the five, which made Mirth enough among the rest ; and even the Spaniards laugh'd at it : But the Fellow consider'd better than any of them, that it was Application and Business that they were to expefl Assistance in, as much as any Thing else ; and she proved the best Wife of all the Parcel. When the poor Women saw themselves set in a Row thus, and fetch'd out one by one, the Terrors of their Condition returned upon them again, and they firmly believed that they were now a going to be devoured; accordingly when the English Sailor came in, and fetched out one of them, the rest set up a most lamentable Cry, and hung about her, and took their Leave of her with such Agonies and such Aifeflion, as would have grieved the hardest Heart in the World ; nor was it possible for the English Men to satisfy them, that they were not to be immediately murdered, 'till they fetched the old Man, Friday's Father, who immediately let them know that the five Men, who had fetch'd them out one by one, had chosen 'em for their Wives. When they had done, and the Fright the Women were in was a little over, the Men went to Work, and the Spaniards came and helped them; and in a few Hours they had built them every one a new Hut, or Tent, for their Lodging apart ; for those they had already were crowded with their Tools, Household-Stuff and Provision. The three wicked Ones had pitched farthest off, and the two honest Ones nearer, but both on the North Shore of the Island, so that they continued separate as before. And thus my Island was peopled in three Places ; and, as I might say, three Towns were begun to be planted. And here 'tis very well worth observing, That as it often happens in the World (what the wise Ends of God's Providence are in such a Disposition of Things, I can- not say) the two honest Fellows had the two worst Wives, R. C. 25 386 ADVENTURES OF and the three Reprobates, that were scarce worth hanpng, that were fit for nothing, and neither seemed born to do themselves Good, or any one else, had three clever, dili- gent, careful, and ingenious Wives ; not that the two first were ill Wives as to their Temper or Humour; for all the five were most willing, quiet, passive, and subjefted Creatures, rather like Slaves than Wives ; but my Mean- ing is, they were not alike capable, ingenious, or indus- trious, or alike cleanly and neat. Another Observation I must make, to the Honour of a diligent Application on one Hand, and to the Disgrace of a slothful, negligent, idle Temper, on the other, that when I came to the Place, and viewed the several Im- provements, Plantings, and Management of the several little Colonies, the two Men had so far out-gone the three, that there was no Comparison. They had indeed both of them as much Ground laid out for Corn as they •wanted ; and the Reason was, because, according to my Rule, Nature didlated, that it was to no Purpose to sow more Corn than they wanted, but the Difference of the Cultivation, of the Planting, of the Fences, and indeed of every thing else was edsy to be seen at first View. The two Men had innumerable young Trees planted about their Huts, that when you came to the Place, nothing was- to be seen but a Wood, and tho' they had twice had their Plantations demolish'd, once by their own Countrymen, and once by the Enemy, as shall be shewn in its Place; yet they had restored all again, and every Thing was thriving and flourishing about them ; they had Grapes planted in Order, and managed like a Vineyard, tho' they had themselves never seen any thing of that Kind; and by their good ordering their Vines, their Grapes were as good again as any of the others. They had also found themselves out a Re- treat in the thickest Part of the Woods, where, though there was not a natural Cave, as I had found, yet they made one with incessant Labour of their Hands, and where when the Mischief which followed happened, they 'ROBINSON CRVSOS. 387. secured their Wives and Children, so as they could never be found; they having by sticking innumerable Stakes and Poles of the Wood, which, as I said, grew so easily, made the Wood unpassable, except in some Places, where they climbed up to get over the out-side Part, and then went on by Ways of their own leaving. As to the three Reprobates, as I justly call them, tho' they were much civilized by their, new Settlement, com- par'd to what they were before, and were not so quarrel- som, having not the same Opportunity; yet one of the certain Companions of a profligate Mind never left them, and that was their Idleness. It is true, they planted Corn, and made Fences; but Solomon's Words were never better verified than in them. / went by the Vine- yard of the Slothful, and it was- all over-grown with Thorns; for when the Spaniards came to view their Crop, they could not see it in some Places for Weeds, The Hedge had several Gaps in it, where the wild Goats had gotten in, and eaten up the Corn ; perhaps, here and there, a dead Bush was cramm'd in, to stop them out for the present, but it was only shutting the Stable Door after the Stead was stoln. Whereas, when they looked on the Colony of the other two, there was the very Face of Industry and Success upon all they did; there was not a Weed to be seen in all their Corn, or a Gap in any of their Hedges : And they on the other Hand verified Solo?non's Words in another Place, That the diligent Hand maketh richj for every Thing grew and thrived, and they had Plenty within and without ; they had more tame Cattle than the other, more Utensils and Neces- saries within Doors, and yet more Pleasure and Diver- sion too. It is true, the Wives of the three were very handy and cleanly within Doors, and having learned the English Ways of Dressing and Cooking from one of the other English Men, who, as I said, was Cook's-mate on board the Ship, they dressed their Husbands Victuals very ^nicely and well ; whereas the other could not be brought 25 — 2 388 ADVENTURES OF ' to understand it. But then the Husband, who, as I say, had been Cook's-mate, did it himself; but as for the Husbands of the three Wives, they loiter'd about, fetch'd Turtles Eggs, and caught Fish and Birds: In a Word, any thing but Labour, and they far'd accordingly. The Diligent liv'd well and comfortably, and the Slothful liVd hard and beggarly ; and so I believe, generally speaking, it is all over the World. But now I come to a Scene different from all that had happened before, either to them, or to me ; and the Ori- ginal of the Story was this. Early one Morning there came on Shore five or six Canoes of Indians, or Savages, call them which ypu please ; and there is no Room to doubt that they came upon the old Errand of feeding upon their Slaves : But that Part was now so familiar to the Spaniards, and to our Men too, that they did not concern themselves about it, as I did; but having been made sensible by their Experience, that their only Business was to lye concealed, and that if they were not seen by any of the Savages, they would go off again quietly when their Business was done, having as yet not the least Notion of there being any Inhabitants in the Island; I say, having been made sensible of this, they had nothing to do but to give Notice to all the three Plantations, to keep within Doors, and not shew themselves, only placing a Scout in a proper Place, to give Notice when the Boats went to Sea again. This was without doubt very right; but a Disaster spoil'd all these Measures, and made it known among the Savages, that there were Inhabitants there, which was in the End the Desolation of almost the whole Colony ; after the Canoes' with the Savages were gone off, the Spaniards peep'd abroad again, and some of them had the Curiosity to go to the Place where they had been, to see what they had been doing: Here, to their great Surprize, they found three Savages left behind, and lying fast asleep upon the Ground; it was suppos'd, ROBINSON CRUSOE. 389 they had either been so gorg'd with their inhuman Feast, that, like Beasts, they were asleep, and would not stir when the others went, or they were wander'd into the Woods, and did not come back in time to be taken in. The Spaniards were greatly surpriz'd at this Sight, and perfeflly at a Loss what to do. The Spaniard Governour, as it happen' d, was with them, and his Ad- vice was ask'd, but he profess'd he knew not what to do ; as for Slaves, they had enough already ; and as to killing them, they were none of them inclin'd to that. The Spaniard Governour told me, they could not think of shedding innocent Blood, for as to them, the poor Crea- tures had done them no Wrong, invaded none of their Property, and they thought they had no just Quarrel against them, to take away their Lives. And here I must, in Justice to these Spaniards, ob- serve, that let the Accounts of Spanish Cruelty in Mexico and Peru, be what they will, I never met with seven- teen Men of any Nation whatsoever, in any foreign Country, who were so universally Modest, Temperate, Virtuous, so very Good-humoui-'d, and so Courteous as these Spanniardsj and as to Cruelty, they had nothing of it in their very Nature, no Inhumanity, no Barbarity, no outrageous Passions, and yet all of them Men of great Courage and Spirit. Their Temper and Calmness had appeared in their bearing the unsufferable Usage of the three English Men: and their Justice and Humanity appear'd ijow in the Case of the Savages, as above. After some Consulta- tion, they resolv'd upon this, that they would lie still a while longer, 'till, if possible, these three Men might be gone ; but then the Governour Spaniard recoUefted, that the three Savages had no Boat, and that if they were left to rove about the Island, they would certainly dis- cover that there were Inhabitants in it, and so they should be undone that Way. Upon this, they went back again, and there lay the Fellows fast asleep still ; so they resolv'd to waken them, 390 • ADVENTURES OF and take them Prisoners, and they did so. The poor Fellows were strangely frighted when they were seiz'd upon and bound, and afraid, like the Women, that they should be murder'd and eaten; for it seems those Peo- ple think all the World does as they do, eating Mens Flesh ; but they were soon made easy as to that, and away they carry'd them. It was very happy to them that they did not carry them Home to their Castle, I mean to my Palace under the Hill; but they carry'd them first to the Bower, where was the chief of their Country-work, such as the keeping the Goats, the planting the Com, &c. and afterwards, they carry'd them to the Habitation of the two English Men. Here they were set to Work, tho' it was not much they had for them to do ; and whether it was by Negli- gence in guarding them, or that they thought the Fel- lows could not mend themselves, I know not, but one of them run away, and taking into the Woods, they could never hear of him more. They had good Reason to believe he got Home again soon after, in some other Boats or Canoes of Savages, who came on Shore three or four Weeks afterwards, and who, carrying on their Revels as usual, went off again in two Days time. This Thought terrify'd them exceed- ingly; for they concluded, and that not without good Cause indeed, that if this Fellow came safe Home among his Comrades, he would certainly give them an Account, that there were People in the Island, as also how few and weak they were ; for this Savage, as I observ'd be- fore, had never been told, and it was very happy he had not, how many there were, or where they liv'd ; nor had he ever seen or heard the Fire of any of their Guns, much less had they shewn him any of their other retir'd Places ;^ such as the Cave in the Valley, or the new Retreat which the two English Men had made, and the like. ^ The first Testimony they had that this Fellow had ROBINSON CRUSOE. 391 given Intelligence of them, was, that about two Months after this, six Canoes of Savages, with about seven, or eight, or ten Men in a Canoe, came rowing along the North Side of the Island, where they never used to come be- fore, and landed about an Hour after Sunrise, at a con- venient Place, about a Mile from the Habitation of the two Englishmen, where this escap'd Man had been kept. As the Spaniard Governour said, had they been all there, the Damage would not have been so much, for not a Man of them would have escap'd ; but the Case differ'd now very much, for two Men to fifty was too much odds : The two Men had the happiness to discover them about a League off, so that it was above an Hour before they landed, and as they landed a Mile from their Huts, it was some time before they could come at them: Now having great Reason to believe that they were betray'd, the first Thing they did, was to bind the two Slaves which were left, and cause two of the three Men, whom they brought with the Women, who it seems prov'd very faithful to them, to lead them with their two Wives, and whatever they could carry away with them, to their re- tir'd Place in the Woods, which I have spoken of above, and there to bind the two Fellows Hand and Foot 'till they heard farther. In the next Place, seeing the Savages were all come on Shore, and that they bent their Course direftly that Way, they open'd the Fences where their Milch-Goats were kept, and drove them all out, leaving their Goats to straggle into the Woods, whither they pleas'd, that the Savages might think they were all bred wild; but the Rogue who came with them was too cunning for . that, and gave them an Account of it all ; for they went direflly to the Place. When the two poor frighted Men had secur'd their Wives and Goods, they sent the other Slave they had of the three, who came with the Women, and who was ; at their Place by Accident, away to the Spaniards, with all Speed, to give them the Alarm, and desire speedy 392 ADVENTURES OF' Help; and in the mean Time they took their Arms, and what Ammunition they had, and retreated towards the Place in the Wood, where their Wives were sent, keep- ing at a Distance, yet so that they might see, if possi- ble, which Way the Savages took. They had not gone far, but that, from a rising Ground, they could see the little Army of their Enemies come on diredlly to their Habitation, and in a Moment more, could see all their Huts and Houshold-Stuff flaming up together, " to their great Grief and Mortification; for they had a very great Loss, to them irretrievable, at least for some Time. They kept their Station for a while, 'till they found the Savages, like wild Beasts, spread themselves all over the Place, rummaging every Way and every Place they could think of, in Search for Prey, and in par- ticular for the People, of whom it now plainly appear'd they had Intelligence. The two Englishmen seeing this, thinking themselves not secure where they stood, because as it was likely some of the wild People might come that Way, so they might come too many together, thought it proper to make another Retreat about half a Mile farther, believing, as it afterwards happen' d, that the farther they stroll' d, the fewer would be together. The next Halt was at the Entrance into a very thick grown Part of the Woods, and where an old Trunk of a Tree stood, which was hollow and vastly large ; and in this Tree they both took their Standing, resolving to see there what might offer. They had not stood there long, but two of the Savages appear'd running diredlly that way, as if they had already had Notice where they stood, and were coming up to attack them ; and a little Way farther, they spied three more coming after them, and five more beyond them, all coming the same Way; besides which, they saw seven or eight more ^at a Distance, running another Way ; for in a Word, they ran every Way like Sportsmen beating for their Game. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 393 The poor Men were now in great Perplexity, whether they should stand and keep their Posture, or fly: But after a very short Debate with themselves, they consider- ed, that if the Savages rang'd the Country thus before Help came, they might perhaps find out their Retreat in the Woods, then all would be lost ; so they resolved to stand them there: And if they were too many to deal with, then they would get up to the Top of the Tree, from whence they doubted not to defend themselves, Fire ex- cepted, as long as their Ammunition lasted, tho' all the Savages that were landed, which was near fifty, were to attack them. Having resolved upon this, they next considered whe- ther they should fire at the first two, or wait for the three, and so take the middle Party, by which the two and the five that followed would be separated ; and they resolv'd to let the two first pass by, unless they should spy them in the Tree, and come to attack them. The two first Savages also confirm'd them in this Regulation, by turn- ing a little from them towards another Part of the Wood ; but the three, and the five after them, came forwards di- redlly to the Tree, as if they had known the English Men were there. Seeing them come so strait towards them, they re- solved to take them in a Line, as they came ; and as they resolved to fire but one at a time, perhaps the first Shot might hit them all three. To which Purpose, the Man who was to fire, put three or four small Bullets into his Piece, and having a fair Loop-hole, as it were, from a broken Hole in the Tree, he took a sure Aim, without being seen, waiting till they were within about thirty Yards of the Tree, so that he could not miss. While they were thus waiting, and the Savages came on, they plainly saw, that one of the three was the Run- away Savage that had escap'd from them, and they both knew him distinflly, and resolv'd that, if possible, he should not escape, tho' they should both fire ; so the other 394 _ ADVENTURES OF stood ready with his Piece, that if he did not drop at -the first Shot, he should be sure to have a second. But the first was too good a Marksman to miss his Aim ; for as the Savages kept near one another, a httle behind in a Line, in a Word, he fir'd and hit two of them direftly : The foremost was kill'd outright, being shot in the Head : The second, which was the Run-away Indian, was shot thro' the Body, and fell, but was not quite dead: And the third had a little Scratch in the Shoulder, per- haps by the same Ball that went thro' the Body of the second, and being dreadfully frighted, tho' not much hurt, sat down upon the Ground, skreaming and yeUing in a hideous manner. The five that were behind, more frighted with the Noise than sensible of the Danger, stood still at first; for the Woods made the sound a thousand Times bigger than it really was ; the Echo's rattUng from one Side to another, and the Fowls rising from all Parts, skreaming and making, every Sort, a several Kind of Noise, accord- ing to their Kind, just as it was when I fir'd the first Gun that perhaps was ever shot off in that Place since it was an Island. However, all being silent again, and they not know- ing what the Matter was, came on unconcern'd, 'till they came to the Place where their Companions lay in a Con- dition miserable enough: And here the poor ignorant Creatures, not sensible that they were within Reach of the same Mischief, stood all of a Huddle over the wounded Man, talking, and, as may be suppos'd, enquir- ing of him, how he came to be hurt ; and who, 'tis very rational to believe, told them, that a Flash of Fire first, and immediately after that. Thunder from their Gods, had kill'd two and wounded him : This, I say, is rational ; for nothing is more certain than that, as they saw no Man near them, so they had never heard a Gun in all their Lives, or so much as heard of a Gun ; neither knew they any Thing of killing or wounding, at a Distance, with ROBINSON CRUSOE. 395 Fire and Bullets ; if they had, one might reasonably be- lieve, they would not have stood so unconcern'd in view- ing the Fate of their Fellows, without some Apprehen- sion of their own. Our two Men, tho', as they confess'd to me, it griev'd them to be oblig'd to kill so many poor Creatures, who at the same Time had no Notion of their Danger; yet having them all thus in their Power, and the first hav- ing loaded his Piece again, resolv'd to let fly both to- gether among them; and singling out, by Agreement, which to aim at, they shot together, and kiU'd, or very much wounded four of them ; the fifth frighted even to Death, tho' not hurt, fell with the rest : So that our Men seeing them all fall together, thought they had kill'd them all. The BeUef that the Savages were all kill'd, made our two Men come boldly out from the Tree before they had charg'd their Guns again, which was a, wrong Step; and they were under some Surprize when they came to the Place, and found no less than four of the Men alive, and of them two very little hurt, and one not at all: This oblig'd them to fall upon them with the Stocks of their Muskets ; and first they made sure of the Run-away Savage, that had been the Cause of all the Mischief, and of another that Was hurt in his Knee, and put them out of their Pain ; then the Man that was not hurt at all, came and kneel'd down to them, with his two Hands held up, and made piteous Moans to them by Gestures and Signs, for his Life; but could not say one Word to them that they could understand. However, they sign'd to him to sit down at the Foot of a Tree thereby; and one of the English Men, with a Piece of Rope-Twine which he had, by great Chance, in his Pocket, ty'd his two Feet fast together, and his two .Hands behind him, and there they left him; and with what Speed they could, made after the other two, which were gone before; fearing they, or any more of them, should (find the Way to their cover'd Place in the Woods, where 336 ADVENTURES OF their Wives, and the few Goods they had left, lay. They came once in Sight of the two Men, but it was at a great Distance ; however, they had the Satisfaflion to see them cross over a Valley towards the Sea, the quite contrary Way from that which led to their Retreat, which they were afraid of ; and being satisfy'd with that, they went back to the Tree, where they left their Prisoner, who, as they suppos'd, was deliver'd by his Comrades ; for he was gone, and the two Pieces of Rope- Yarn, with which they bound him, lay just at the Foot of the Tree. They were now in as great Concern as before, not knowing what Course to take, or how near the Enemy might be, or in what Numbers; so they resolVd to go away to the Place where their Wives were, to see if all was well there, and to make them easy, who were in Fright enough to be sure; for tho' the Savages were their own Country Folk, yet they were most terribly afraid of them, and perhaps the more, for the Knowledge they had of them. When they came there, they found the Savages had been in the Wood, and very near that Place, but had not found it ; for it was indeed inaccessible, by the Trees standing so thick, as before, had not the Persons seek- ing it been diredled by those that knew it, which these did not ; they found therefore every Thing very safe, only the Women in a terrible Fright. While they were here, they had the Comfort to have seven of the Spaniards come to their Assistance ; the other ten, with their Ser- vants, and old Friday, I mean Friday's Father, were gone in a Body to defend their Bower, and the Corn, and Cattle that was kept there, in Case the Savages should have rov'd over to that Side of the Country ; but they did not spread so far. With the seven Spaniards came one of the three Savages, who, as I said, were their Prisoners formerly ; and with them also came the Savage, whom the English Men had left bound Hand and Foot at the Tree ; for it seems they came that Way, saw the Slaughter of the seven Men, and unbound the eighth, ROB/NSON CRUSOE. 397 and brought him along with them ; where, however, they were oblig'd to bind him again, as they had the two others, who were left when the third run away. The Prisoners began now to be a Burden to them ; and they were so afraid of their escaping, that they were once resolving to kill them all, believing they were under an absolute Necessity to do so, for their own Preserva- tion. Howevei*, the Spaniard Governour would not con- sent to it, but order'd for the present, that they should be sent out of the Way to my old Cave in the Valley, and be kept there with two Spaniards to guard them, and give them Food for their Subsistence, which was done ; and they were bound there Hand and Foot for that Night. When the Spaniards came, the two English Men were so encourag'd, that they could not satisfy themselves to stay any longer there ; but taking five of the Spaniards, and themselves, with four Muskets and a Pistol among them, and two stout Quarter-Staves, away they went in Quest of the Savages. And first they came to the Tree where the Men lay that had been kill'd ; but it was easy to see, that some more of the Savages had been there ; for they had attempted to carry their dead Men away, and had dragg'd two of them a good Way, but had given it over. From thence they advanc'd to the first rising Ground, where they stood, and saw their Camp destroy'd, and where they had the Mortification still to see some of the Smoke ; but neither could they here see any of the Savages. They then resolv'd, tho' with all possible Cau- tion, to go forward towards their ruin'd Plantation. But a little before they came thither, coming in Sight of the Sea Shore, they saw plainly the Savages all embarking again in their Canoes, in order to be gone. They seem'd sorry at first ; and there was no Way to come at them, to give them a parting Blow : But upon the whole, were very well satisfy'd to be rid of them. The poor English Men being now twice ruin'd, and all their improvement destroy'd, the rest all agreed to come and help them to rebuild, and to assist them with 3S8 .' AD VENTURES ' OF^ needful Supplies. Their three Countrymen, who were not yet noted for having the least Inclination to any Good, yet as soon as they heard of it (for they living remote Eastward, knew nothing of the Matter 'till all was over) came and offer'd their Help and Assistancej and did very friendly work for several Days, to restore their Habitation^ and make Necessaries for them: And thus, in a little Time, they were set upon their Legs again. About two Days after this, they had the farther Satis- faflion of seeing three of the Savages Canoes come driving on Shore, and at some Distance from them, two drown'd Men ; by which they had Reason to believe, that they had met with a Storm at Sea, and had overset some of them ; for it had blown very hard the very Night after they went off. However, as some might miscarry, so on the other Hand, enough of them escap'd to inform the rest, as well of what they had done, as of what had happen'd to them; and to whet them on to another Enterprize of the same Nature, which they, it seems, resolv'd to attempt, with sufficient Force to carry all before them ; for except what the first Man had told them of Inha- bitants, they could say little to it of their own Know- ledge; for they never saw one Man, and the Fellow being kill'd that had affirm'd it, they had no otheir Wit^ ness to confirm it to them. It was five or six Months after this, before they heard any more of the Savages ; in which Time our Men were in Hopes they had either forgot their former bad Luck, or given over the Hopes of better; when on a sudden they were invaded with the most formidable Fleet, of no less than eight and twenty Canoes full of Savages, arm'd with Bows and Arrows, great Clubs, wooden Swords^ and such like Engines of War; and they brought such Numbers with them, that in short, it put all our People into the utmost Consternation. - As they came on Shore in the Evening, and at the ROBINSON CRUSOE. 399 Easter-most Side of the Island, our Men had that Night to consult and consider what to do ; and, in the first Place, knowing that their being entirely concealed, was their only Safety before, and would much more be so now, while the Number of their Enemies was so great, they therefore resolved first of all to take down the Huts which were built for the two English Men, and drive away their Goats to the old Cave ; because they suppos'd :the Savages would go diredlly thither, as soon as it was Day, to play the old Game over again, tho' they did not now land within two Leagues of it. In the next Place, they drove away all the Flock of Goats they had at the old Bower, as I call'd it, which belonged to the Spaniards; and in short, left as little Appearance of Inhabitants any where as was possible; and the next Morning early they posted themselves with all their Force at the Plantation of the two Men, waiting for their Coming. As they guess'd, so it happened : These new Invaders leaving their Canoes at the East End of the Island,- came ranging along the Shore diredlly to- wards the Place, to the Number of two hundred and fifty, as near as our Men could judge. Our Army was but small indeed; but that which was worse, they had not Arms for all their Number neither. The whole Ac- count, it seems, stood thus. First, as to the Men. 17 Spaniards. S English Men. I Old Friday, or Friday's Father. 3 The three Slaves taken with the Women, who prov'd very faithful. 3 Other Slaves who liVd with the Spaniards, To arm these, they had, 1 1 Muskets. S Pistols. 3 Fowling Pieces. 400 ADVENTURES OF 5 Muskets or Fowling Pieces, which were taken by me from the mutinous Seamen, whom I reduc'd. 2 Swords, 3 old Halberds. To their Slaves they did not give either Musket or Fuzee, but they had every one a Halberd, or a long Staff, like a Quarter-Staff, with a great Spike of Iron fastened into each End of it, and by his Side a Hatchet ; also every one of our Men had Hatchets. Two of the Women could not be prevailed upon but they would come into the Fight; and they had Bows and Arrows, which the Spaniards had taken from the Savages, when the first Adlion happened, which I have spoken of, where the Indians fought with one another, and the Women had Hatchets too. The, Spaniard Governour, whom I have describ'd so often, commanded the whole; and William Atkins, who, though a dreadful Fellow for Wickedness, was a most daring bold Fellow, commanded under him. The Sa- vages came forward like Lions, and our Men, which was the worst of their Fate, had no Advantage in their Situa- tion ; only that William Atkins, who now proved a most useful Fellow, with six Men, was planted just behind a small Thicket of Bushes, as an advanced Guard, with Orders to let the first of them pass by, and then fire into the Middle of them, and as soon as he had fired, to make his Retreat as nimbly as he could, round a Part of the Wood, and so come in behind the Spaniards where they stood, having a Thicket of Trees also before them. When the Savages came on, they run straggling about every Way in Heaps, out of all minner of Order, and William Atkins let about fifty of them pass by him; then seeing the rest come in a very thick Throng, he orders three of his Men to fire, having loaded their Muskets with six or seven Bullets a piece, about as big as large Pistol Bullets. How many they kill'd or wounded they knew not, but the Consternation and Surprize' was ROSINSON CRUSOE. 401 inexpressible among the Savages ; they were frighted to the last Degree, to hear such a dreadful Noise, and see their Men killed, and others hurt, but see no Body that ■did it ; when in the Middle of their Fright, William Atkins and his other three; let fly again among the thickest of them ; and in less than a Minute the first three, being loaded again, gave them a third Volley. Had William Atkins and his Men retired immedi- ately, as soon as they had fir'd, as they were ordered to do ; or had the rest of the Body been at Hand to have poured in their Shot continually, the Savages had been effedlually routed ; for the Terror that was among them, came principally from this, (7/Z2-.) That they were killed by the Gods with Thunder and Lightning, and could see no Body that hurt them; but William Atkins staying to load again, discovered the Cheat. Some of the Savages, who were at a Distance, spying them, came upon them behind, and though Atkins and his Men fir'd at them also, two or three Times, and killed above twenty, retir- ing as fast as they could, yet they wounded Atkins him- self, and killed one of his Fellow English Men with their Arrows, as they did afterwards one Spaniard, and one of the Indian Slaves who came with the Women. This Slave was a most gallant Fellow, and fought most despe- rately, killing five of them with his own Hand, having no Weapon, but one of the arm'd Staves, and a Hatchet. Our Men being thus hard laid at, Atkins wounded, and two other Men killed, retreated to a rising Ground in the Wood ; and the Spaniards, after firing three Vol- lies upon them, retreated also ; for their Number was so great, and they were so desperate, that though above fifty of them were killed, and more than so many wounded^ yet they came on in the Teeth of our Men, fearless of Danger, and shot their Arrows like a Cloud; and it was observed, that their wounded Men, who were not quite disabled, were made outrageous by their Wounds, and -fought likfr Madmen. R. C. 26 403 ADVENTURES OF When our Men retreated, they left the Spaniard and the English Man that was killed behind them ; and the Savages, when they came up to them, killed them over again in a wretched Manner, breaking their Arms, Legs, and Heads, with their Clubs and wooden Swords, like true Savages : But finding our Men were gone, they did not seem to pursue them, but drew themselves up in a Kind of a Ring, which is, it seems, their Custom, and shouted twice in Token of their Vidlory. After which, they had the Mortification to see several of their wounded Men fall, dying with the meer Loss of Blood. The Spaniard Governor having drawn his little Body up together upon a rising Ground, Atkins, though he was wounded, would have had him marched, and charged them again altogether at once : But the Spaniard K^lfd, Seignior Atkins, you see how their wounded Men fight, let therm alone till Morning ; all these- wounded Men will be stiff and sore with their Wounds, and faint with the Loss of Blood ; and so we shall have the fewer to engage. The Advice was good: But William Atkins replied merrily, That's true. Seignior, and so shall I too; and that's the Reason I would go on while I am warm. Well, Seignior Atkins, says the Spaniard, you have be- haved gallantly, and done your Part; we will fight for you, if you cannot come on ; but I think ;t best to stay 'till Morning: So they waited. But as it was a clear Moon-light Night, and they found the Savages in great Disorder about their dead and wounded Men, and a, great Hurry and Noise among them where they lay, they afterwards resolved to fall upon them in the Night, especially if they could come to give them but one Volley before they were discovered, which they had a fair Opportunity to do; for one of the two English Men, in whose Quarter it was where the Fight began, led them round between the Woods, and Sea-side Westward, and then turning short South, they came so near where the thickest of them lay, that before ROBINSON CRUSOE. 403 they were seen or heard, eight of them fir'd in among them, and did dreadful Execution upon them. In Half a Minute more, eight others fired after them, pouring in their Small Shot in such a Quantity, that Abundance were killed and wounded ; and all this while they were not able to see who hurt them, or which Way to fly. The Spaniards charged again with the utmost Expe- dition, and then divided themselves into three Bodies, and resolved to fall in among them altogether. They had in each Body eight Persons, that is to say, 24, whereof were 22 Men, and the two Women, who by the Way fought desperately. They divided the Fire-Arms equally in each Party, and so of the Halberds and Staves. They would have had the Women keep back, but they said, they were resolv'd to die with their Husbands. Having thus formed their little Army, they march'd out from among the Trees, and came up to the Teeth of the Enemy, shouting and hallooing as loud as they could. The Savages stood all together, but were in the utmost Confusion, hearing the Noise of our Men shouting from three Quarters toge- ther ; they would have fought if they had seen us. And as soon as we came near enough to be seen, some Arrows were shot, and poor old Friday was wounded, tho' not dangerously. But our Men gave them no Time; but running up to them, fired among them three Ways, and then fell in with the But-ends of their Muskets, their Swords, arm'd Staves, and Hatchets, and laid about them so well, that in a Word, they set up a dismal Skreaming and Howling, flying to save their Lives, which Way soever they could. Our Men were tired with the Execution ; and killed, or mortally wounded, in the two Fights, about 180 of them ; the rest, being frighted out of their Wits, scour'd through the Woods, and over the Hills, with all the Speed and Fear that nimble Feet could help them to do ; and as we did not trouble our selves much to pursue them, they got all together to the Sea Side, where they 26—2 404 ADVENTURES OF landed, and where their Canoes lay. But their Disaster was not at an End yet ; for it blew a terrible Storm of Wind that Evening from the Seaward, so that it was impossible for them to go off; nay, the Storm continuing all Night, when the Tide came up, their Canoes were- most of them driven by the Surge of the Sea so high upon the Shore, that it requir'd infinite Toil to get them off; and some of them were even dash'd to Pieces against the Beach, or against one another. Our Men, tho' glad of their Viflory, yet got little Rest that Night ; but having refresh'd themselves as well as they could, they resolv'd to march to that Part of the Island where the Savages were fled, and see what Posture they were in. This necessarily led them over the Place where the Fight had been, and where they found several of the poor Creatures not quite dead, and yet past recovering Life ; a Sight disagreeable enough to generous Minds ; for a truly great Man, tho' obliged by the Law of Battle to destroy his Enemy, takes no Delight in his Misery. However, there was no Need to give any Orders in this Case; for their own Savages, who were their Servants, dispatch'd those poor Creatures with their Hatchets. At length they came in View of the Place where the more miserable Remains of the Savages Army lay, where there appear'd about an hundred still ; their Pos- ture was generally sitting upon the Ground, with their Knees up towards their Mouth, and the Head put be- tween the two Hands, leaning down upon the Knees. When our Men came within two Musket Shot of them, the Spaniard Governor order'd two Muskets to be fir'd without Ball, to alarm them; this he did, that by their Countenance he might know what to expeft, viz. Whether they were still in Heart to fight, or were so heartily beaten, as to be dispirited and discourag'd, and so he might manage accordingly. This Stratagem took ; for, as sopn as the Savages ROBINSON CRUSOE. 405 heard the first Gun, and saw the Flash of the second, they started up from their Feet in the greatest Conster- nation , imaginable ; and as our Men advanc'd swiftly towards them, they all ran skreaming and yawling away, with a kind of a howling Noise, which our Men did not understand, and had never heard before ; and thus they ran up the Hills into the Country. At first, our- Men had m\ich rather the Weather had been calm, and they had all gone away to Sea : But they did not then consider that this might probably have been the Occasion of their coming again in such Multitudes, as not to be resisted, or, at least, to come so many, and so often, as would quite desolate the island, and starve them. Will. Atkins therefore, who, notwithstand- ing his Wound, kept always with them, prov'd the best Counsellor in this Case: His Advice was, to take the Advantage that offer'd, and clap in between them and their Boats, and so deprive them of the Capacity of ever returning any more to plague the Island. They consulted long about this, and some were against it, for fear of making the Wretches fly to the Woods, and live there desperate ; and so they should have them to hunt like wild Beasts, be afraid to stir out about their Business, and have their Plantations continually rifled, all their tame Goats destroy'd, and, in short, be reduc'd to a Life of continual Distress. Will. Atkins told them, they had better have to do with a hundred Men, than with a hundred Nations: That as they must destroy their Boats, so they must destroy the Men, or be all of them destroy'd themselves. In a Word, he shew'd them the Necessity of it so plainly, that they all came into it ; so they went to work imme- diately with the Boats, and getting some dry Wood toge- ther from a dead Tree, they try'd to set some on them on Fire, but they were so wet, that they would not burri; however, the Fire so burn'd the upper Part, that it soon made them unfit for swimming in the Sea as Boats. When the Indians saw what t)iey were; about. 4o6 ADVENTURES OF some of them came running out of the Woods, and coming as near as they could to our Men, kneel'd down, and cry'd, Oa, Oa, Waramoka, and some other Words of their Language, which none of the others understood any thing of; but as they made pitiful Gestures, and strange Noises, it was easy to understand, they begg'd to have their Boats spar'd, and that they would be gone, and never come there again. But our Men were now satisfy'd, that they had no Way to preserve themselves, or to save their Colony, but effectually to prevent any of these People from ever going Home again; depending upon this, that if ever so much as one of them got back into their Country to tell the Story, the Colony was undone ; so that letting them know that they should not* have any Mercy, they fell to work with their Canoes, and destroy'd them every one, that the Storm had not destroy'd before; at the Sight of which, the Savages rais'd a hideous Cry in the Woods, which our People heard plain enough ; after which, they ran about the Island like distracted Men; so that, in a Word, our Men did not really know at first what to do with them. Nor did the Spaniards, with all their Prudence, con- sider, that while they made those People thus desperate, they ought to have kept good Guard at the same Time upon their Plantations ; for tho' it is true, they had driven away their Cattle, and the Indians did not find out their main Retreat, I mean my old Castle at the Hill, nor the Cave in the Valley, yet they found out my Plantation at the Bower, and puU'd it all to Pieces, and all the Fences and Planting about it ; trod all the Com under Foot; tore up the Vines and Grapes, being just then almost ripe, and did to our Men an inestimable Damage, tho' to themselves not one Farthing-worth of Service. Tho' our Men were able to fight them upon all Oc- casions, yet they were in no Condition to pursue them, or hunt them up or down ; for as they were too nimble ROBINSON CRUSOE, 407 of Foot for our Men, when they found them single, so our Men durst not go about single, for fear of being surrounded with their Numbers. The best was, they had no Weapons ; for tho' they had Bows, they had no Arrows left, nor any Materials to make any, nor had they any edg'd Tool or Weapon among them. The Extremity and Distress they were reduc'd to was great, and indeed deplorable ; but at the same Time, our Men were also brought to very bad Circumstances by them ; for tho' their Retreats were preserv'd, yet their Provision was destroy'd, and their Harvest spoil'd, and what to do, or which Way to turn themselves, they knew not: The only Refuge they had now, was tlie Stock of Cattle they had in the Valley by the Cave, and some little Corn which grew there ; and the Plantation of the three Englishmen, William. Atkins and his Comrades, who were now reduc'd to two, one of them being kill'd by an Arrow, which struck him on the Side of his Head, just under the Temple, so that he never spoke more; and it was very remarkable, that this was the same bar- barous Fellow who cut the poor Savage Slave with his Hatchet, and who afterwards intended to have murder'd all the Spaniards. I look'd upon this Case to have been worse at this Time, than mine was at any Time, after I first discover'd the Grains of Barley and Rice, and got into the Manner of planting and raising my Corn, and my tame Cattle ; for now they had, as I may say, a hundred Wolves upon the Island, which would devour every Thing they could come at, yet could very hardly be come at them- selves. The first Thing they concluded, when they saw what their Circumstances were, was that they would, if pos- sible, drive them up to the farther Part of the Island, South- West, that if any more Savages came on Shore, they might not find one another. Then, that they would daily hunt and harrass them, and kill as many of them as they could come at, till they had reduc'd their Num- 408 ADVENTURES OF ber; aijd if they could at last tame them, arid brin^ them to any Thing, they would give them Com, and teach them how to plant and live upon their daily- Labour. In order to this, they so follow'd them, and so ter- rify'd them with their Guns, that in a few Days, if any of them fir'd a Gun at an Indian, if he did not hit him, yet he would fall down for Fear ; and so dreadfully frighted they were, that they kept out of Sight farther and farther, till at last our Men following them, and every Day almost killing and wounding some of them, they kept up in the Woods and hollow Places so much, that it reduc'd them to the utmost Misery for want of Food, and many were afterwards found dead in the Woods, without any Hurt, but meerly starv'd to Death. When our Men found this, it made their Hearts relent, and Pity mov'd them ; especially the Sj>aniard Governour, who was the most gentlemanly generous- minded Man that ever I met with in my Life ; and he propos'd, if possible, to take one of them alive, and bring him to understand what they meant, so far as to be able to a£l as Interpreter, and to go among them, and see if they might be brought to - some Conditions, that might be depended upon, to save their Lives, and to do us no Spoil. It was some while before any of them could be taken ; but being weak and half starv'd, one of them was at last surpriz'd and made a Prisoner : He was sullen at first, and would neither eat nor drink ; but finding himself kindly used, and Vifluals given him, and no Violence ofifer'd him, he at last grew traflable, and came to him- self They brought old Friday to him, who talk'd often with him, and told him how kind the other would be to them all ; that they would not only save their Lives, but would give them a Part of the Island to live in, pro- vided they would give Satisfadlion that they would keep in their own Bounds, and not come beyond it, to injure ROBINSON CRUSOE. 409 or prejudice others, and that they should have Corn given them, to plant and make it grow for their Bread, and some Bread given them for their present Sub- sistence; and old Friday bad the Fellow go and talk with the rest of his Countrymen, and see what they said to it, assuring them, that if they did not agree immedi- ately, they should be all destroy'd. The poor Wretches, thoroughly humbled, ai>d reduc'd in Number to about thirty seven, clos'd with the Proposal at the first Offer, and begg'd to have some Food given them; upon which, twelve Spaniards and two English Men well arm'd, with three Indian Slaves, and old Fri- day, march'd to the Place where they were; the three Indian Slaves carry'd them a large Quantity of Bread ; some Rice boil'd up to Cakes, and dry'd in the Sun, and three live Goats ; and they were order'd to go to the Side of a Hill, where they sat down, eat the Pro- visions very thankfully, and were the most faithful Fel- lows to their Words that could be thought of; for except when they came to beg Vidluals and Diredlions, they never came out of their Bounds; and there they liv'd when I came to the Island, and I went to see them. They had taught them both to plant Corn, make Bread, breed tame Goats, and milk them ; they wanted , nothing but Wives, and they soon would have been a Nation. They were confin'd to a Neck of Land, sur- rounded with high Rocks behind them, and lying plain towards the Sea before them, on the South-East Corner of the Island : They had Land enough, and it was very good and fruitful; they had a Piece of Land about a Mile and half broad, and three or four Mile in Length. Our Men taught them to make wooden Spades, such ,as I made for myself, and gave them among them twelve Hatchets, and three or four Knives; and there they liv'd the most subjedled innocent Creatures that ever were heard of. After this, the Colony enjoy'd a perfeifl TranquiUity .with .Respedl to the Savages, tiU I came to revisit them, 4IO ADVENTURES OF which was above two Years: Not, but that now and then some Canoes of Savages came on Shore for their tri- umphal unnatural Feasts ; but as they were of several Nations, and perhaps had never heard of those that came before, or the Reason of it, they did not make any Search or Enquiry after their Countrymen; and if they had, it would have been very hard to have found them out. Thus, I think, I have given a full Account of alLthat happen'd to them, to my Return, at least that was worth Notice. The Indians or Savages were wonderfully civi- liz'd by them, and they frequently went among them, but forbid, on Pain of Death, a.ny of the Indians coming to them, because they would not have their Settlement be- tray 'd again. One Thing was very remarkable, -viz. That they taught the Savages to make Wicker-work, or Baskets; but they soon outdid their Masters; for they made Abundance of most ingenious Things in Wicker-work; particularly, all Sorts of Baskets, Sieves, Bird-Cages, Cup-boards, ^c. as also Chairs to sit on. Stools, Beds, Couches, and Abundance of other Things, being very ingenioiis at such Work, when they were once put in the Way of it. My coming was a particular Relief to these People, because we furnish'd them with Knives, Scissars, Spades, Shovels, Pick-axes, and all Things of that Kind which they could want. With the Help of these Tools they were sij very handy, that they came at last to build up their Huts, or our Houses, very handsomely; raddling or working it up like Basket-work all the way round, which Was a very extraordinary Piece of Ingenuity, and look'd very odd, but was an exceeding good Fence, as well against Heat, as against all Sorts of Vermin ; and our Men were so taken with it, that they got the wild Savages to come and do the like for them ; so that when I came to see the two English Mens Colonies, they look'd, at a Dis- ROB/NSOJV CRUSOE. 411 tance, as if they liv'd all like Bees in a Hive. And as for IVi'l/. Atkins, who was now become a very indus- trious, necessary, and sober Fellow, he had made himself such a Tent of Basket-work as I believe was never seen ; it was 120 Paces round in the Out-side, as I measur'd by my Steps ; the Walls were as close work'd as a Bas- ket in Pannels, or Squares, of 33 in Number, and very strong, standing about seven Foot high. In the Middle was another not above 22 Paces round, but built stronger, being Eight-square in its Form; and in the eight Cor- ners stood eight very strong Posts, round the Top of which he laid strong Pieces pinn'd together with wooden Pins, from which he rais'd a Pyramid for the Roof, of eight Rafters, very handsome, I assure you, and join'd together very well, tho' he had no Nails, and only a few Iron Spikes, which he made himself too, out of the old Iron that I had left there ; and indeed this Fellow shew'd Abundance of Ingenuity in several Things, which he had no Knowledge of. He made him a Forge, with a Pair of wooden Bellows to blow the Fire; he made himself Charcoal for his Work, and he form'd out of one of the Iron Crows a middling good Anvil to hammer upon ; in this Manner he made many Things, but especially Hooks, Staples, and Spikes, Bolts and Hinges. But to return to the House ; after he had pitch 'd the Roof of his inner- most Tent, he work'd it up between the Rafters with Basket-work, so firm, and thatch'd that over again so ingeniously with Rice-straw, and over that a large Leaf of a Tree, which cover'd the Top, that his House was as dry as if it had been til'd or slated. Indeed he own'd that the Savages made the Basket-work for him. The outer Circuit was cover'd, as a Lean-to, all round this inner Apartment, and long Rafters lay from the two and thirty Angles to the_j2B_pf the Posts of the inner House, being about (fwenty Foop Distance ; so that there was a Space like a wUkwitJim the outer Wicker-wall, and without the inner, near twenty Foot wide. The inner Place he partitipn'd off with the same 412 ADVENTURES OF Wicker-work, but much fairer, and divided it into six Apartments, so that he had six Rooms on a Floor ; and out of every one of these there was a Door, first into the Entry or Coming into the main Tent, and another Door into the Space or Walk that was round it ; so that Walk was also divided into six equal Parts, which serv'd not only for Retreat, but to store up' any Necessaries which the Family had Occasion for. These six Spaces not taking up the whole Circumference, what other Apart- ments the outer Circle had, were thus order'd. As soon' as you were in at the Door of the outer Circle, you had a short Passage strait before you to the Door of the inner House, but on either Side was a Wicker Partition, and a Door in it, by which you went, first, into a large Roonj or Store house, twenty Foot wide, and about thirty Foot long, and thro' that into another not quite so long; so that in the outer Circle was ten handsome Rooms, six of which were only to be come at thro' the Apartments of the inner Tent, and serv'd as Closets or retiring Rooms to the respeftive Chambers of the inner Circle ; and four large Ware-houses or Barns, or what you please to call them, which went in thro' one another, two on either Hand of the Passage, that led thro' the outer Door to the inner Tent. Such a piece of Basket-work, I believe, was never seen in the World, nor a House, or Tent, so neatly con- triv'd, much less, so built. In this great Bee-hive liv'd the three Families, that is to say. Will. Atkins and his Companion; the third was kill'd, but his Wife remain'd with three Children ; for she was, it seems, big with Child when he dy'd, and the other two were not at all back- ward to give the Widow her foil Share of every Thing, I mean, as to their Corn, Milk, Grapes, Ss'c and when they kill'd a Kid, or found a Turtle on the Shore; so that they all liv'd well enough, tho' it was true, they were not so industrious as the other two, as has been observ'd already. ■ One thing, however, cannot be omitted, viz. That is ROBINSON CRUSOE. 413 for Religion, I doh't know that there was any Thing of that Kind among them ; they pretty often indeed put one another in Mind that there was a God, by the very com- mon Method of Seamen, viz. Swearing by his Name: Nor were their poor ignorant Savage Wives much the better for having been marry'd to Christians, as we must call them ; for as they knew very little of God themselves, so they were utterly uncapable of entering into any Dis- course \yith their Wives about a God, or to talk any thing to them concerning Religion. The utmost of all the Improvement which I can say • the Wives had made from them, was, that they had taught them to speak English pretty well, and all the Children they had, which were near 20 in all, were taught to speak English too, from their first learning to speak, tho' they at first spoke it in a very broken Manner, like ; their Mothers. There were none of these Children above six Years old when I came thither, for it was not much above seven Years that they had fetch'd these five Savage Ladies ov.er, but they had all been pretty fruitful, for they had all Children, more or less : I think the Cook's Mate's • Wife was big of her sixth Child ; and the Mothers were all a good Sort of well-govern'd, quiet, laborious Women, modest and decent, helpful to one another; mighty ob- servant and subjefl to their Masters, I cannot call them Husbands ; and wanted nothing but to be well instrufled in the Christian Religion, and to be legally marry'd ; both which were happily brought about afterwards by my Means, or, at least, in Consequence of my coming among them. Having thus given an Account of the Colony in ge- neral, and pretty much of my five Runagate English Men, I must say something of the Spaniards, who were the main Body of the Family ; and in whose Story there are some Incidents also remarkable enough. I had a great many Discourses with them about their Circumstances when they were among the Savages : They ; told me readily, that they had no Instances to give of 414 ADVENTURES OF their Application or Ingenuity in that Country; that they' were a poor miserable dejedled Handful of People; that if Means had been put into their Hands, they had yet so abandon'd themselves to Despair, and so sunk under the Weight of their Misfortunes, that they thought of nothing iDut Starving: One of them, a grave and very sensible Man, told me, he was convinc'd they were in the Wrong ; that it was not the Part of wise Men to give up themselves to their Misery, but always to take Hold of the Helps which Reason ofFer'd, as well for present Support, as for future Deliverance. He told me, that Grief was the most senseless insignificant Passion in the World ; for that it regarded only Things past, which were generally impossible to be recall'd, or to be remedy^ d, but had no View to Things to come, and had no Share in any Thing that look'd like Deliverance, but rather added to the Affliflion, than propos'd a Remedy: And upon this, he repeated a Spanish. Proverb ; which tho' I cannot repeat in just the same Words that he spoke in, yet I remember I made it into an English Proverb of my own, thus : In Trouble to be iroubl'd. Is to have your Trouble doubrd. He ran on then in Remarks upon all the little Im- provements I had made in my Solitude; my unweary'd Application, as he call'd it, and how I had made a Condition, which, in its Circumstances, was at first much worse than theirs a thousand Times, more happy than theirs was, even now, when they were all together. He told me, it was remarkable, that English Men had a greater Presence of Mind in their Distress, than any People that ever he met with ; that their unhappy Nation, and the Portuguese, were the worst Men in the World to struggle with Misfortunes ; for their first Step in Dan- gers, after the common Efforts are over, was always to despair, lie down under it, and die, without rousing their Thoughts up to proper Remedies for Escape. I told him, their Case and mine differ'd exceedingly, ROBINSON CRUSOE. 415 that they were cast upon the Shore without Necessaries, without Supply of Food, or of present Sustenance, till they could provide: That it is true, I had this Disad- vantage and Discomfort, that I was alone ; but then the Supplies I had providentially thrown into my Hands, by the unexpefled driving of the Ship on Shore, was such a Help, as would have encourag'd any Creature in the World to have applied himself as I had done. Seignior, says the Spaniard, had we poor Spaniards been in your Case, we should never have gotten half those Things out of the Ship, as you did : Nay, says he, we should never have found Means to have gotten a Raft to carry them, or to have gotten the Raft on Shore without Boat or Sail; and how much less should we have done, said he, if any of us had been alone ? Well, I desired him to abate his Compliment, and go on with the history of their coming on Shore, where they landed : He told me, they unhappily landed at a Place where there were People without Provisions ; whereas, had they had the common Sense to have put off to Sea again, and gone to another Island a little farther, they had found Provisions, tho' without People ; there- being an Island that Way, as they had been told, where there was Provisions, tho' no Peo- ple ; that is to say. That the Spaniards of Trinidad had frequently been there, and had fill'd the Island with Goats and Hogs at several Times ; where they have bred in such Multitudes, and where Turtle and Sea-Fowls were in such Plenty, that they could ha' been in no Want of Flesh, tho' they had found no bread; whereas here, they were only sustain'd with a few Roots and Herbs which they understood not, and which had no Substance in them, and which the Inhabitants gave them sparingly enough, and who could treat them no better, unless they would turn Ganibals, and eat Men's Flesh, which was the great Dainty of their Country. They gave me an Account how many Ways they strove to civilize the Savages they were with, and to teach them rajtippal Customs in the ordinary Way of L,iv- 4i6- ADVENTURES OF ing-i but in vain ; and how they retorted it upon them, as unjust, that they who came there for Assistance and Sup- port, should attempt to set up for Instrudlors of those' that gave them Bread ; intimating, it seems, that none should set up for the Instrudlors of others, but those wh» eould live without them. They gave me dismal Accounts of the Extremities they were driven to ; how sometimes they were many Ways without any Food at all; the Island they were upon being inhabited by a Sort of Savages that lived more indolent, and for that Reason were less supplied with the- Necessaries of Life, than they had Reason to believe others were in the same Part of the World ; and yet they found, that these Savages were less ravenous and voracious, than those who had better Supplies of Food. Also they added. That they could not but see with what Demonstrations of Wisdom and Goodness the go- verning Providence of God direfls the Events of Things in the World ; which they said, appear'd in their Circum- stances ; for if press'd by the Hardships they were under, and the Barrenness of the Country where they were, they had searched after a better Place to live in ; they had then been out of the Way of the Rehef that happen'd to them by my Means. Then they gave me an Account, how the Savages, whom they liv'd among, expefted them to go out with them into their Wars: And it was true, that, as they had Fire-Arms with them, had they not had the Dis- aster to lose their Ammunition, they should not have been serviceable only to their Friends, but have made themselves terrible both to Friends and Enemies; but being without Powder and Shot, and yet in a Condition, that they could not in Reason deny to go out with theif Landlords to their Wars ; when they came into the Field of Battle, they were in a worse Condition than the Sa- vages. themselves; for they neither had Bows or Arrows,^ nor could they use those the Savages gave them; so that ROBINSON CRUSOE. 417 they could do nothing but stand still, and be wounded with Arrows, till they came up to the Teeth of their Ene- my ; and then indeed the three Halberds they had, were of Use to them ; and they would often drive a whole little Army before them with those Halberds and sharpen'd Sticks put into the Muzzles of their Muskets: But that for all this, they were sometimes surrounded with Mul- titudes, and in great Danger from their Arrows, till at last they found the Way to make themselves large Tar- gets of Wood, which they covered with Skins of wild Beasts, whose Names they knew not ; and these cover'd them from the Arrows of the Savages; that notwith- standing these, they were sometimies in great Danger, and were once five of them knock'd down together with the Clubs of the Savages, which was the Time when one of them was taken Prisoner; that is to say, the Spaniard, whom I had relieved, that at first they thought had been killed: But when afterwards they heard he was taken Prisoner, they were under the greatest Grief imaginable, and would willingly have ventured their Lives to have rescued him. They told me. That when they were so knock'd down, the rest of their Company rescued them, and stood over them, fighting till they were ceme to themselves, all but him who they thought had been dead; and then they made their Way with their Halberds and Pieces, standing close together in a Line, thro' a Body of above a thousand Savages, beating down all that came in their Way, got the Viftory over their Enemies, but to their great Sorrow, because it was with the Loss of their Friend; whom, the other Party, finding him alive, carried off with some others, as I gave an Account in my former. They described most affeiftionately, how they were surprized with Joy at the Return of their Friend and Companion in Misery, who they thought had been de- voured by wild Beasts of the worst Kind, (viz.) by wild- Men ; and yet how more and more they were surprized with the Account he gave them of his Errand, and that R. c. 27 4.1 8 .ADVENTURES OF there was not a Christian in any Place near, much more one that was able, and had Humanity enough to contri- bute to their Deliverance. They described how they were astonished at the Sight of the Relief I sent them, and at the Appearance of Loaves of Bread, Things they had not seen since their coming to that miserable Place ; how often they cross'd it, and bless'd it, as Bread sent from Heaven ; and what a reviving Cordial it was to their Spirits to taste it; as also of the other Things I had sent for their Supply. And after all, they would have told me something of the Joy they were in, at the Sight of a Boat and Pilots to carry them away to the Person and Place from whence all these new Comforts came ; but they told me it was im- possible to express it by Words, for their excessive Joy, naturally driving them to unbecoming Extravagancies, they had no way to describe them; but by telling me that they bordered upon Lunacy, having no way to give Vent to their Passion, suitable to the Sense that was upon them; that in some it worked one Way, and in some another;, and that some of them, thro' a Surprize of Joy,' would burst out into Tears ; others be stark mad, and others im- mediately faint. This Discourse extremely affedled me, and call'd to my Mind Friday's Extasy, when he met his Father, and the poor People's Extasy, when I took them up at Sea, after their Ship was on Fire ; the Mate of the Ship's Joy, when he found himself deliver'd in the Place where he expedled to perish; and my own Joy, when after 28 Years Captivity, I found a good Ship ready to carry me to my own Country. All these Things made me more sensible of the Relation of those poor Men, and more affedled with it. Having thus given a View of the State of Things; as I found them, I must relate the Heads of what I did for. these People, and the Condition in which I left them. It was their Opinion and mine too, that they would be trou- bled no more with the Savages ; or that if they were, they would be able to cut them off, if they were twice as many liOSINSON CRUSOE. 419 as before ; so they had no Concern about that. Then I entered into a serious Discourse with \}i\e. Spaniard, whom I call Governour, about their Stay in the Island ; for as I was not come to carry any of them off, so it would not be just to carry off sopie, and leave others, who perhaps would be unwilling to stay, if their Strength was diminished. On the other Hand, I told them, I came to establish them there, not to remove them; and then I let them know, that I had brought with me Relief of sundry Kinds for them ; that I had been at a great Charge to supply them with all Things necessary, as well for their Conve- nience, as their Defence ; and that I had such and such particular Persons with me, as well to encrease and re- cruit their Number, as by the particular necessary Em- ployments which they were bred to, being Artificers, to assist them in those things, in which, at present, they were to seek. They were all together when I talk'd thus to them, and before I delivered to them the Stores I had brought, I ask'd them one by one. If they had entirely forgot and buried the first Animosities that had been among them, and would shake Hands with one another, and engage in a stridl Friendship and Union of Interest, that so there might be no more Misunderstandings or Jealousies. William Atkins, with Abundance of Frankness and good Humour, said. They had met with Afflidlions enough to make them all sober, and Enemies enough to make them all Friends ; that for his Part, he would live and die with them ; and was so far from designing any Thing against the Spaniards, that he owned they had done nothing to him, but what his own mad Humours made necessary, and what he would have done, and per- haps much worse in their Case ; and that he would ask them Pardon, if I desired it, for the foolish and brutish Things he had done to them ; and was very willing and desirous of living in Terms of entire Friendship and Union with them ; and would do any thing that lay in his Power to convince them of it ; and as for going to 27 — 2 420 ADVENTURES OF England, he cared not if he did not go, thither these, twenty Years. The Sjianiards said, They had indeed at first dis- armed and excluded William Atkins and his two Coun- trymen for their ill Condu(ft,»as they had let me know; and they appealed to me, for the Necessity they were under to do so: But that Williotin Atkins had behaved himself so bravely in the great Fight they had with the Savages, and on several Occasions since ; and had shewn himself so faithful to, and concerned for the general Interest of them all, that they had forgotten all that was past, and thought he merited as much to be trusted with 'Arms, and to- be supply'd with Necessaries as. any of them ; and that they had testified their Satisfa£lion in him, by committing the Command to him, next to the Governour himself. And as they had an entire Confi- dence in him and all his Countrymen, so they acknow- ledged they had merited, that Confidence, by all the Methods that honest Men could merit to be vahied and trusted; and they most heartily embraced the, Occasion of giving me this Assurance, that they would never have any Interest separate from one another. Upon these frank and open Declarations of Friend- ship, we appointed the next Day to dine all together; and indeed we made a splendid Feast: I caused the Ship's Cook and his Mate to come on Shore, and dress our Dinner; and the old Cook's Mate we had on Shore, assisted. We brought on Shore six Pieces of good Beef, and four Pieces of Pork out of the Ship's Provision, with our Punch-Bowl, and Materials to fill it; and in parti- cular, gave them ten Bottles of French Claret, and ten Bottles of English Beer ; Things that neither the Spaniards, or the English Men had tasted for many Years ; and which, it may be supposed, they were exceed- ■ing glad of. The Spaniards added to our Feast five whole Kids, which the Cooks roasted ; and three of them were sent cover'd up close on Board the Ship,, to the Seamen, that ROBINSON CRUSOE. 421 thfey might feast on fresh Meat from on Shore, as we did with their Salt Meat from oft Board. Afteir this Feast, at which we were very innocently merry, I brought out my Cargo of Goods, wherein, that there might be no Dispute about dividing, I shew'd therii that there was Sufficient for them all; and desir'd that they might all take an ^qual Quantity of the Goods that Were for wearing ; that is to say, equal when tnade up ; as first, I distributed Linnen sufficient to make every one of thfem four Shirts ; and at the Spaniards Request after- wards, made them up six; these were exceeding com- fortable to them, having been what, as I may say, they had long since forgot the Use of, or what it was to wear them. I allotted the thin English Stuffs, which I mention'd before, to make every one a light Coat, like a Frock, which I judged fittest for the Heat of the Season ; cool and loose, and order'd, that whenever they decayed, they should make more, as they thought fit: The like for PumpSj Shoes, Stockings and Hats, &'C. I cannot express what Pleasure, what Satisfaflion, sat upon the Countenances of all these poor Men, when they saw the Care I had taken of them, and how well I had furnish'd them; they told me, I was a Father to them, and that having such a Correspondent as I was, in so remote a Part of the World, it would make them forget that they were left in a desolate Place; and they all votantarily engag'd to me not to leave the Place without my Consent. Then I presented to them the People I had brought with me, particularly the Taylor, the Smith, and the two Carpenters, all of them inost necessary People ; but above all, my general Artificer, than whofti they could not name any thing that was more useful to them. And the Tay- lor, to shew his Concern for them, went to work imme- diately, and, with my Leave, made them every one a Shirt the first Thing he did • and which was still more, he taught the Women, not only how to sew and stitch, 422 ADVENTURES OF .and use the Needle, but made them assist to make the Shirts for their Husbands, and for all the rest. As to the Carpenters, I scarce need mention how use- ful they were, for they took in Pieces all my clumsy unhandy Things, and made them clever convenient Tables, Stools, Bed-steads, Cup-boards, Lockers, Shelves, and every thing they wanted of that Kind. But to let them see how Nature made Artificers at first, I carried the Carpenters to see Will. Atkin^s -Basket-house, as I call'd it, and they both owrfd they -never saw an Instance of such natural Ingenuity before ; nor any thing so regular, and so handily built, at least of its Kind : And one of them, when he saw it, after musing a good while, turning about to me, I am sure, says he, that Man has no need of us, you need do nothing but give him Tools. Then I brought them out all my Store of Tools, and gave every Man a Digging-Spade, a Shovel, and a Rake, for we had no: Harrows or Plows ; and to every separate Place, a Pick-axe, Crow, a broad Axe, and a Saw; always appointing, that as , often as any were broken, or worn out, they should be supply'd without grudging, out of the general Stores that I left behind. Nails, Staples, Hinges, Hammers, Chissels, Knives, Scissars, and all sorts of Tools, and Iron-work, they had without Tale, as they requir'd, for no Man would care to take more than they wanted, and he must be a Fool that would waste or spoil them, on any Account what- ever; and for the Use of the Smith, I left two Ton of unwrought Iron for a Supply. My Magazine of Powder and Arms, which I brought them, was such, even to Profusion, that they could not but rejoice at them; for now they could march as I us'd ■ to do, with a Musket upon each Shoulder, if there was -Occasion, and were able to fight a thousand Savages, . if they had but some little Advantages of Situation, which also they could not miss of, if they had Occasion. - , I carry'd on Shore .with -me .the young Man, whose ROBINSON CRUSOE. 423 Mother was starv'd to Death, and the Maid also; she was a sober, well educated, religious young Woman, and behav'd so inoffensively, that every one gave her a good Word; she had indeed an unhappy Life with us, there being no Woman in the Ship but herself; but she bore it with Patience. After a while seeing Things so well order' d, and in so fine a way of thriving upon my Island, and conBid-ering that they had neither Business or Ac- quaintance in the East-Indies, or Reason for taking so long a Voyage:' I say, considering all this, both of them came to me, and desir'd I would give thetti leave to remain on the Island, and be enter'd among my Family, as they call'd it. I agreed to it readily, and they had a little Plat of Ground allotted to them, where they had three Tents or Houses set up, surrounded with a Basket-work, Palisado'd like Atkins's, adjoining to his Plantation: Their Tents were' contriv'd so, that they had each of them a Room' apart to lodge in, and a middle Tent like a great Store- house to lay all their Goods in, and to eat and drink in.; And now the other two English Men remdv'd their Habi- tation to the same Place, and so' the Island was divided into three Colonies, and no mOre, viz. the Spaniards with old Friday, and the first Servants, at my old Habitatioa under the Hill; which was, in a Word, the capital City; and where they had so enlarg'd and extended their Works,^ as -well under, as on the Out-side of the Hill, that they liv'd, tho' perfeiftly conceal'd, yet full at large. Never was there such a little City in a Wood, and So hid, I be- lieve, in any Part of the World ; for I verily believe, a thousand Men might have rang'd the Island a Month, and if they had not known there was such a Thing, and look'd on purpose for it, they would not have found it ; for the Trees stood so thick, and so close, and grew so fast matted into one another, that nothing but cutting them down first could discover the Place ; except the only two narrow Entrances, where they went in and out, could, be found, which Was not very easy. One of them' was- 424 ADVENTURES OF just down at the Watert-Edge of the Creek, and it was afterwards above two hundred Yards to the Place ; and the other was up the Ladder at twice, as I have already formerly describ'd it ; and they had a large Wood thicfc planted, also, on the Top of the Hill, which contain'd above an Acre, which grew apace, and cover'd the Place ■ from all Discovery there, with only one narrow Place between two Trees, not easy to be discover'di to enter on that Side. The other Colony was that of Will. Atkins, where there were four Families of English Men, I mean those I had left there, with their Wives and Children; three Savages that were Slaves; the Widow and Children of the English Man that was kill'd, the young Man and the Maid ; and by the way, we made a Wife of her also, be- fore we went away : There were also the two Carpenters and the Taylor, whom I brought with me for them ; also the Smith, who was a very necessary Man to them, es- pecially as a Gunsmith, to take care of their Arms ; and. my other Man, whom I call'd, yack of all Trades^ who was in himself as good, almost, as 20 Men ; for he was not only a very ingenious Fellow, but a very merry Fellow, and before I went away, we married him to the honest Maid that came with the Youth in the Ship I mention'd, tefore. And now I speak of Marrying, it brings me naturally to say something of the French Fcclesiastick that I had brought with me out of the Ship's Crew whom I took up at Sea. It is true, this Man was a Roman, and perhaps it may give Offence to some hereafter, if I leave any Thing extraordinary upon Record, of a Man, whom, before I begin, I must, (to set him out in just Colours,) re- present in Terms very much to his Disadvantage, in the Account of Protestants ; as first, that he was a Papist^ secondly, a Popish Priest; and thirdly, a French Popish Priest. But Justice demands of me to give him a due Charac- ter ; and I must say, he was a grave, sober, pious, and ROBINSON CRUSOE. 425 most religious PersoH; exafl in his Life, extensive in his Charity, and exemplajr in almost every Thing he did. What then can any one say, against my being very sensible of the Value of such a Man, notwithstanding his Profession? Tho' it may be my Opinion, perhaps, as well as' the Opinion of others, who shall read this, that he was mistaken. The first Hour that I began to converse with him, after he had agreed to go with me to the East-Indies, I found Reason to delight exceedingly in his Conversation ; and he first began with me about Religion, in the most obliging Manner imaginable. Sir, says he, you have not only, under God, (and at that he cross'd his Breast) sav'd my Life, but you have admitted me to go this Voyage in your Ship, and by your obliging Civility have taken me into your Family, giving me an Opportunity of free Conversation. Now Sir, says he, you se? by my Habit what my Profession is, and I guess by your Nation what yours is : I may think it is my Duty, and doubtless it is so, to use my utmost Endea- vours, on all Occasions, to bring all the Souls I can to the Knowledge of the Truth, and to embrace the Catho- lick Do(flrine ; but as I am here under your Permission, and in your Family, I am bound in Justice to your Kind- ness, as well as in Decency and good Manners, to be under your Government ; and therefore I shall not, with- out your Leave, enter into any Debates on the Point of Religion, in which we may not agree, farther than you shall give me Leave. I told him, his Carriage was so modest, that I could not but acknowledge it ; that it was true, we were such People as they call'd Hereticks ; but that he was not the first Catholick that I had convers'd with, without falling, into any Inconveniencies, or carrying the Questions to any Height in Debate : That he should not find himself the worse used for being of a different Opinion from us, and if we did not converse without any Dislike on either Side upon that Score, it should be his Fault, not ours. 426 • ADVENTURES OF He reply'd, That he thought all our "Conversation might be easily separated from Disputes : That it was not his Business to cap Principles with every Man h-e discours'd with ; and that he rather desir'd me to converse With him as a Gentleman, than as a Retigieuse; that if I would give him Leave at any Time' to discourse uport religious Subjedls, he would readily comply with it ; and that then, he did not doubt but I would allow him also to defend his own Opinions, as well as he co&ld; but that without my Leave he would not break in upon me with any such Thing. He told me farther. That he would not cease to do aU that became him in his Office, as a Priest, as well as a private Christian, to procure the Good of the Ship, and the Safety of all that was in her ; and tho' perhaps we would not join with him, and he could not pray with us, he hop'd he might pray for us, which he would do upon airOccasions. In this Manner we convers'd; and as he was of a most obliging Gentleman-like Behaviour, so he Was, if I may be allowed to say so, a Man of good Sense, &ftd a;S I believe, of great Learning. He gave me a most diverting Account of his Life, and of the many extraordinary Events of it ; of many Adventures which had befallen him in the few Years that he had been abroad in the world; and particUleirly, this was very remarkable, (■z/fe.) That in the Voyage he was now engag'd, he had had the Misfortune to be five Times shipp'd and unshi'pp'd, and never to go to the Place whither any of the Ships he was in, were at first de- sign'd : That his first Intent was to have gone to Mar- tinico] and that he went on board a Ship bound thither; at St. Malo; but being forc'd into Lisbon by bad Wea- ther, the Ship receiv'd some Damage by running a ^ound in the Mouth of the River Tagtcs, and was obhged to unload her Cargo there : That finding a Por- tuguese Ship there bound to the Maderas, and ready to sail, and supposing he should easily meet with a Vessel there bound to Martinicoj he went on board, ia Order ROBINSON CRUSOE. 427 to sail to the Maderas. But the Master of the Portuguese Ship being but an indifferent Mariner, had been out in his Reckoning, and they drove to Fial; where, however, he happen'd to find a very good Market for his Carge, which Was Corn, and therefore resolved not to go to the Maderas, but to load Salt at the Isle of May, and go away to Newfoundland. He had no Remedy in this Exigence, but to go with the Ship, and had a pretty good Voyage as far as the Banks, so they call the Place where they catch the Fish, where meeting with a French Ship, bound from France to Quebeck in the River of Canada, and from thence to Martinico, to carry Pro- visions, he thought he should have an Opportunity to compleat his first: Design : But when he came to Quebeck, the Master of the Ship dy'd, and the Ship proceeded no farther; so the next Voyage he shipp'd himself for i^^raa^, in the Ship that was burnt,, when we took them up at Sea, and then shipp'd with us for the East Indies, as I have already said. Thus he had been disappointed in five Voyages, all, as I may call it, in one Voyage, besides what I shall have Occasion to mention farther of the same Person. But, I shall not make Digressions into other Mens Stories, which have no Relation to my own. I return to what concerns our Affair in the Island; He Came to me one Morning, for he lodg'd among us all the while we were upon the Island ; and it happen'd to be just when I was going to visit the English Men's Colony at the far- thest Part of the Island ; I say, he came to me, and told me, with a very grave Countenance, That he had for two or three Days desir'd an Opportunity of some -Discourse with me, which he hop'd would not be. displeasing to me, because he thought it might in some Measure correspond with my general Design, which was the Prosperity of iny new Colony, and perhaps might put it, at least more than he yet thought it was, in the Way of God's Blessing. •' • I look'd a Uttle surpriz'd at the last Part of his Dis- course, and turning a little short, Mow, Sir, said I, can it 428 ADVENTURES OF be said, that we are not in the Way of God's Blessing, after such visible Asiistanc-es and wanderfiU Deliverances, as we have seen here, and of which J have given you a large Account ? If you had pleas'd Sir,saidhe, with a world of Modesty, and yet with great P.ecidiness, to have heard me, you would have found no room to have been displeas'd, much less to think so hard of me, that I should suggest, that you have not had 'wonderful Assistances and Deliverances; and I hope, on yojir Behalf, that you are in the Way 6f God's Blessing, and your Design is exceeding good, and will prosper: But, Sir, tho' it were more so, than is even possible to you, yet there may be some among you that are not equally right in their Adlions: And you know, that in the Story of the Children of Israel, one Achan in the Camp, remov'd God's Blessing from them, and turned his Hand so against them, that six and thirty of them, tho' not concern'd in the Crime, were the Objeft of Divine Vengeance, and bore the Weight of that Punishment. I was sensibly touch'd with his Discourse, and told him, his Inference was so just, and the whole Design seem'd so sincere, and was really so religious in its own Nature, that I was very sorry I had interrupted him, and begg'd him to go on ; and in the mean Time, because it seem'd, that what we had both to say rnight take up some Time, I told him, I was going to the English Mefe's Plant- ations, and ask'd him to go with me, and we might discourse of it by the Way : He told me, he would inore willingly wait on me thither, because there partly the Thing was a(5led, which he desir'd to speak to me about ; so we walk'd on; and I press'd him to be free and plain with me in what he had to say. Why then, Sir, says he, be pleased to give me Leave to lay down a few Propositions as the Foundation of what I have to say, that we may not differ ih the general Princi- ples, tho' we may be of some differing Opinions in the Pradlice of Particulars. First, Sir, tho' we differ in some of the dodtrinal Articles of Religion ; and it is very wabafpy ROBINSON CRUSOE. 429 that it is so, especially in the Case before us, as I shall shew afterwards : Yet there are some general Principles in which we both agree, (wz>.) first. That there is a God ; and that this God haying given us some stated general Rules for our Service and Obedience,- we ought not wil- lingly and knowingly to offend him ; either by neglefting to do what he has commanded, or by doing what he has expressly forbidden: And let our different Religions; be what they will, this general Principle is readily own'd by us all, That the Blessing of God does not ordinarily foUow a presumptuous Sinning against his Command ; and every good Chrrstiaa will be affeftionately concern'd to prevent any that are under his Care, living in a total Neg- le£l of God and his Commands. It is not your Men, being Protestants, whatever my Opinion may be of such, that discharges me from being concern'd for their Souls, and from endeavouring, if it lies before me, that they should live in as little Distance from and Enmity with their Maker, as possible, especially if you give me Leave to meddle so far in your Circuit. I could not yet imagine what he aim'd at, and told him, I granted all he had said, and thank'd him, that he would so far concern himself for us ; and begg'd he would explain the Particulars of what he had observ'd, that, like Joshua, to take his own Parable, I might put away the accursed Thing, from us. Why then, Sir, says he, I will take the Liberty you give me; and there are three Things, which, if I am right, must stand in the Way of God's Blessing upon your Endeavours here, and which I should rejoice for your sake, and their own, to see remov'd. And, Sir, says he, I promise myself, that you will fully agree with me in them all, as soon as I name them ; especially because I shall convince you, that every one of them may, with great Ease, and very much to your Satisfadtion, be remedy'd. He gave me no. Leave to put in any more Civilities, but went on. First, Sir, says he, you have, here four 430 ADVENTURES OF English Men, who have fetch'd Women from among the Savages, and have taken them as their Wives, and have had many Children by them all, and yet are not marry'd to them after any stated legal Manner, as the Laws of God and Man require; and therefore are yet, in the Sense of both, no less than Adulterers, and living in Adultery. To this, Sir, says he, I know you will objeft. That there was no Clergyman or Priest of any Kind, or of any Profession, to perform the Ceremony; nor any Pen and Ink, or Paper, to write down a Contra.) that Parents should never give over to teach and instruct, or ever despair of the Success of their Endeavours, let the Children be ever so obstinate, refraftory, or to Appear- ance, insensible of Instruftion; for if ever God in his Providence touches the Consciences of such, the Force of their Education returns upon them, and the early In- strudlion of Parents is not lost; tho' it may have been many Years laid asleep; but some Time or other they may find the Benefit of it. Thus it was with this poor Man, however ignorant he was, or divested of Religion and Christian Knowledge; he found he had some to do with now, more ignorant than himself; and that the least Part of the Instrudlion of his good Father that could now come to his Mind, was of Use to him. Among the rest it occurred to him, he said, how his Father us'd to insist much upon the inexpressible Value of the Bible, the Privilege and Blessing of it to Nations, 4^o . ADVENTURES OF Families, and Persons ; but he never entertained the least Notion of the Worth of it, till now ; when being to talk to Heathens, Savages, and Barbarians, he wanted the Help of the written Oracle for his Assistance. The young Woman was very glad of it also for the present Occasion, tho' she had one, and so had the Youth on board our Ship among their Goods, which were not yet brought on Shore ; and now having said so many Things of this young Woman, I cannot omit telling one Story more of her, and my self, which has something in it very informing and remarkable. I have related, to what Extremity the poor young Woman was reduced ; how her Mistress was starved to Death, and did die on board that unhappy Ship we met at Sea; and how the whole Ship's Company being re- duc'd to the last Extremity ; the Gentlewoman, and her Son, and this Maid, were first hardly used as to Provi- sions, and at last totally neglefted and starved ; that is to say, brought to the last Extremity of Hunger, One Day being discoursing with her upon the Ex- tremities they suffered, I ask'd her if she could describe by what she had felt, what it was to starve, and how it appear'd ; she told me, she believed she could ; and she told her Tale very distinflly thus : " First, Sir, said she, we had for some Days far'd ex- " ceeding hard, and suffer'd very great Hunger; but now " at last, we were wholly without Food of any Kind, ex- " cept Sugar, and a little Wine, and a little Water. The " first Day, after I had receiv'd no Food at all, I found " ihy self towards Evening, first empty and sickish at my " Stomach, and nearer Night mightily inclin'd to yawn- " ing, and sleepy. I laid down on a Couch in the great " Cabin to sleep, and slept about three Hour.j, and awak'd " a little refresh'd ; having taken a Glass of Wine when I " lay down ; after being about three Hours awake, it " being about five a Clock in the Morning, I found my " self empty, and my Stomach sickish, and lay down *' again, but could not sleep at jail, being very faint, and KOBINSON CRUSOE. 471 " ill ; and thus I continued alt the second' Day, with a " strange Variety, first hungry, then sick again, with " Reachings to Vomit. The second Night being oblig'd " to go to Bed again, without any Food, more than a: " Draught of fair Water, and being asleep, I dream'd I " was at Barbadoes^ and that the Market was mightily ' " stock'd with Provisions ; that I bought some for my " Mistress, and went and din'd very heartily. " I thought my Stomach was as full after this as any "would have been after, or at a good Dinner; but when " I wak'd, I was exceedingly sunk in my Spirits, to find " my self in the Extremity of Famine : The last Glass of " Wine we had, I drank, and put Sugar in it, because of "its having some Spirit to supply Nourishment; but "there being no Substance in the Stomach for the di- "gesting Office to work upon, I found the only Effeifl of "the Wine was, to raise disagreeable Fumes from the " Stomach, into the Head ; and I lay, as they told me, " stupid, and senseless, as one drunk for some Time. "The third Day in the Morning, after a Night of "strange and confus'd inconsistent Dreams, and rathei* " dozing than sleeping, I wak'd, ravenous and furiou^ "with Hunger; and I question, had not my Understaind- "ing return'd and conquer'd it; I say, I question whe- " ther, if I had been a Mother, and had had a little Child "with me, its Life would have been safe or not? ' "This lasted about three Hours; during which Time " I was twice raging mad as any Creature in Bedlam, as " my young Master told me, and as he can now inform " you. ' " In oneof these Fits of Lunacy or Distradlion, whe- "ther by the Motion of the Ship, or some Slip of my " Foot, I know not ; I fell down, and struck my FacS " against the Corner of a Palat Bed, in which my Mis-' " tress lay; and with the Blow the Blood gush'd out of "my Nose; and the Cabin Boy bringing me a littlel " Bason, I sat down and bled into it a^.great deal ; and aS " thft Blood run from me, I came to my self j and the 472 .ADVENTURES OF "Violence of the Flame or the Fever, I was in, abated, "and so did the ravenous Part of the Hunger. " Then I grew sick, and reach'd to vomit, but could "not; for I had nothing in my Stomach to bring up:- "After I had bled some Time, I swoon'd, and they all "beUev'd I was dead; but I came to my self soon after, "and then had a most dreadful Pain in my Stomach, " not to be described ; not like the Cholick, but a gnawing "eager Pain for Food: And towards Night it went off " with a kind of earnest Wishing or Longing for Food ; " something like, as I suppose, the Longing of a Woman "with Child. I took another Draught of Water with "Sugar in it, but my Stomach loathed the Sugar, and " brought it all up again ; then I took a Draught of Water " without Sugar, and that stay'd with me ; and I laid me " down upon the Bed, praying most heartily, that it would "please God to take me away; and composing my Mind " in Hopes of it, I slumber'd a while, and then waking, " thought my self dying, being light with Vapours from " an empty Stomach. I recommended my Soul then to " God, and earnestly wish'd that some Body would throw "me into the Sea. "All this while my Mistress lay by me, just, as I " thought, expiring, but bore it with much more Patience "than I, and gave the last Bit of Bread she had left to "her Child, my young Master, who would not have taken " it, but she obliged him to eat it ; and I believe it sav'd "his Life. " Towards the Morning I slept again, and first when I " awaked, I fell into a violent Passion of Crying, and after " that had a second Fit of violent Hunger. I got up " ravenous, and in a most dreadful Condition. Had my " Mistress been dead, as much as I loved her, I am cer- " tain, I should have eaten a Piece of her Flesh, with as "much Relish, and as unconcerned, as ever I did the " Flesh of any Creature appointed for Food ; and once or " twice I was going to bite my own Arm. At last, I saw "the Bason in which was the Blood 1 had bled at my • ROBINSON CRUSOE. 473 " Nose the Day before. I ran to it, and swallowed it with "such Haste, and such a greedy Appetite, as if I had "wonder'd no Body had taken it before, and afraid it "would be taken from me now. " Tho' after it was down, the Thoughts of it fill'd me' "with Horror, yet it check'd the Fit of Hunger, and I " drank a Draught of fair Water, and was compos'd and "refresh'd for some Hours after it. This was the 4th " Day, and thus I held it, 'till towards Night, when within "the Compass of three Hours, I had all these several "Circumstances over again, one after another, {viz!) sickj " sleepy, eagerly hungry, Pain in the Stomach, then raven- " ous again, then sick again, then lunatick, then crying, "then ravenous again; and so every Quarter of an Hour, "and my Strength wasted exceedingly. At Night I laid " me down, having no Comfort, but in the Hope that I " should die before Morning. "All this, Night I had no Sleep. But the Hunger was "now turned into a Disease; and I had a terrible Cholick " and Griping, by Wind, instead of Food, having found " its Way into the Bowels. And in this Condition I lay " 'till Morning, when I was surprized a little with the Cries " and Lamentations of my young Master, who call'd out "to me that his Mother was dead. I lifted myself up a " little ; for I had not Strength to rise, but found she was " not dead, though she was able to give very little Signs "of life. "I had then such Convulsions in my Stomach, for "want of some Sustenance, that I cannot describe, with " such frequent Throws and Pangs of Appetite, that no- " thing but the Tortures of Death can imitate: And in "this condition I was, when I heard the Seamen above, " cry out, A Sail, a Sail, and halloo and jump about, as if " they were distrafted. " I was not able to get off from the Bed, and my Mis- ^' tress much less; and my young Master was so sick,- "that I thought he had been expiring; so we could not "open, the Cabin Door, or get any Account wbat.it was 474 ADVENTURES OF "that occasioned such a Combustion, nor had we had "any Conversation with the Ship's Company for two " Days ; they having told us, that they had not a Mouth- " ful of any Thing to eat in the Ship ; and they told us" " afterwards, they thought we had been dead. " It was this dreadful Condition we were in when you " were sent to save our Lives ; and how you fovmd us, Sir, " you know as well as I, and better too." This was her own Relation, and is such a distindl Account of Starving to Death, as I confess I never met with, and was exceeding entertaining to me. 1 am the rather apt to believe it to be a true Account, because the Youth gave me an Account of a good Part of it ; though I must own, not so distindl and so feelingly as his Maid; and the rather, because it seems his Mother fed him at the Price of her own Life : But the poor Maid, tho' her Constitution being stronger than that of her Mistress, who was in Years, and a wealdy Woman too, she might struggle harder with it ; I say, the poor Maid might be supposed to feel the Extremity something sooner than her Mistress, who might be allowed to keep the last Bit some- thing longer than she parted with any to relieve the Maid. No Question, as the Case is here related, if our Ship, or some other, had not so providentially met them, a few t)ays more would have ended all their Lives, unless they had pre- vented it by eating one another ; and even that, as their Case Stood, would have served them but a little while, they being 500 Leagues from any Land, or any Possibility of Relief, other than in the miraculous Manner it hap^ pened :■ Bot this is by the Way. I return to my Disposi- tion of Things among the People. Andi, First, It is to be observ'd here. That for many Reasons I did not think fit to let them know any Thing of the Sloop I had framed, and which I -thought of sgtting up among' them, for I found, at least at my first comings such Seeds of Divisions among them, that I saw it plainly,- had I set up the Sloop, and left it among them, ROBINSON CRUSOE. 475 they would upon every light Disgust have separated, and gone away from one another, or perhaps have turned Pjnrates, and so made the Island a Den of Thieves, in- stead of a Plantation of sober and religious People, so as I intended it Nor did I leave the two Pieces of Brass Cannon that I had on Board, or the two Quarter-Deck Guns, that my Nephew took extraordinarily, for the same Reason, I thought it was enough to qualify them for a defensive War against any that should invade them; but not to set them up for an offensive War, or to encourage them to go Abroad to attack others, which in the End would only bring Ruin and Destrudlion upon themselves and all their Undertaking. I reserved the Sloop there- fore, and the Guns, for their Service another Way, as I shall observe in its Place. I have now done with the Island. I left them all in good Circumstances, and in a flourishing Condition, and went on board my Ship again the fifth Day of May, having been five and twenty Days among them. And as they were all resolved to stay upon the Island 'till I came to remove them, I promised to send some farther Relief from the Brasils, if I could possibly find an Opportunity: And particularly, I promised to send them some CattleJ such as Sheep, Hogs and Cows. For as to the two Cows and Calves which I brought from England, we had been obliged by the Length of our Voyage to kill them at Sea^ for want of Hay to feed them. The next Day, giving them a^ Salute of five Guns at Parting, we set Sail, and arriv'd at the Bay of All-Saints in the Brasils in about 22 Days; meeting nothing re- markable in our Passage, but this, That about threfe Days after we sail'd, being becalm 'd, and the Current setting strong to the E.N.E. running, as it were, into a Bay or Gulph on the Land Side, we were driven some- thing out of our Course, and once or twice our Men cry'd Land to the Eastward; but whether it was the Continent or Islands, we could not tell by any Means. ' But the third Day towards Evening, the Sea smooth^ 476 ADVENTURES OF and the Weather calm, we saw the Sea, as it were cover'd towards the Land with something very black, not being able to discoveir what it was, 'till after some Time, our chief Mate going up the main Shrowds a little Way, and looking at them with a Perspeiflive, cry'd out it was an Army. I could not imagine what he meant by an Army, and spoke a little hastily, calling the Fellow a Fool, or some such Word: Nay, Sir, says he, don't be angry, for 'tis an Army and a Fleet too ; for I believe there are a thousand Canoes, and you may see them paddle along, and they are coming towards us too, apace. I was a little surpriz'd then indeed, and so was my Nephew, the Captain; for he had heard such terrible Stories of them in the Island, and having never been in those Seas before, that he could not tell what to think of it, but said two or thiree Times, we should all be devoured. I must confess, considering we were becalm' d, and the Current set strong towards the Shore, I lik'd it the worse : However, I bad him not be afraid, but bring the Ship to an Anchor, as soon as we came so near to know that we must engage them. The Weather continu'd calm, and they came on apace towards us ; so I gave Order to come to an Anchor, and furl all our Sails : As for the Savages, I told them they had nothing to fear but Fire ; and therefore they should get their Boats out, and fasten them, one close by the Head, and the other by the Stern, and Man them both well, and wait the Issue in that Posture. This I did, that the Men in the Boats might be ready with Skeets and Buckets to put out any Fire these Savages might endea- vour to fix to the Outside of the Ship. In this Posture we lay by for them, and in a little while they came up with us ; but never was such a horrid Sight seen by Christians : My Mate was much mistaken in his Calculation of their Number, I mean of a thousand Canoes; the most we could make of them when they came up, being about a hundred and six and twenty ; and a great many of them too ; for some of them had sixteen 'ROBINSON CRUSOE. 477 or seventeen Men in them, and some more j and the least six or seven. When they came nearer to us, they seem'd to be struck with Wonder and Astonishment, as at a Sight which they had doubtless never seen before ; nor could they at first,, as we afterwards understood, know what to make of us. They came boldly up, however, very near td us, and seem'd to go about to row round us ; but we call'd to our Men in the Boats, not to let them come too near them. This very Order brought us to an Engagement with them, without our designing it ; for five or six of their large Canoes came so near our Long-Boat, that our Men beck- on'd with their Hands to them to keep back; which they understood very well, and went back; but at their Re- treat, about 50 Arrows came on board us from those Boats ; and one of our Men in the Long-Boat was very much wounded. However, I call'd to them not to fire by any Means ; but we handed down some Deal-Boards into the Boat, and the Carpenters presently set up a kind of Fence, like waste Boards, to -cover them from the Arrows of the Savages, if they should shoot again. About half an Hour afterwards they came all up in a Body a-stern of us, and pretty near us, so near that we could easily discern what they were, tho' we could not tell their Design : And I easily found they were some of my old Friends, the same Sort of Savages that I had been used to engage with ; and in a little Time more they row'd a little farther out to Sea, 'till they came di- redlly Broad-side with us, and then row'd down strait upon us, 'till they came so near, that they could hear us speak. Upon this I order'd all my Men to keep close, lest they should shoot any more Arrows, and made all our Guns ready; but being so near as to be within hearing, I made Friday go out upon the Deck, and call out aloud to them in his Language to know what they meant, which accordingly he did; whether they under- 478 ADVENTURES OF stood him or not, that I knew not : But as soon as he had caU'd to them, six of them, who were in the foreihost or nighest Boat to us, turn'd their Canoes from us, and stooping down, shew'd us their naked Backsides, just as if in English, saving your Presente, they had bid us kiss . Whether this was a Defiance or Challenge, we know not ; or whether it was done in meer Contempt, or as a Signal to the rest; but immediately Friday cry'd out they were going to shoot, and unhappily for him poor Fellow; they let fly about 300 of their Arrows, and, to my inexpressible Grief, kill'd poor Friday, no other Man being in their Sight. The poor Fellow was shot with no less than three Arrows, and about three more fell very near him; such unlucky Marksmen they were. I was so enrag'd with the Loss of my old Servant, the Companion of all my Sorrows and Solitudes, that I im- mediately order'd five Guns to be loaded with small Shot, and four with great, and gave them such a Broad-side, as they had never heard in their Lives before, to be sure. ' . They were not above half a Cabl6 Length off when we fir'd; and our Gunners took their Aim so well, that three or four of their Canoes were overset, as we had reason to believe, by one Shot only. The ill Manners of turning up their bare Backsides to us, gave us no great Offence ; neither did I know for certain, whether that which would pass for the greatest Contempt among us, might be undprstood so by them, or not ; therefore in Return, I had only resolv'd to have fir'd four or five Guns at them with Powder only, which I knew would fright them sufficiently : But when they shot at us direflly with all the Fury they were capable of, and especially as they had kill'd my poor Friday, whom I so entirely lov'd and valu'd, and who indeed so well deserv'd it; I not only had been justif/d before God and Man, but would have been very glad, if I could, to have overset every Canoe there, and drown'd every one of them. I can neither tell how many, we kill'd, or how many RO PINS ON CRUSOE, 479 Tce' wounded at this Broad-side; but sure such a Fright and Hurry never was seen among such a Muhitude ; there were 13 or 14 of their Canoes split and overset in all, and the Men all set a swimming; the rest frighted out of their Wits, scour'd away as fast as they could, taking but little Care to save those whose Boats were split or spoiled with our Shot. So I suppose; that they were many of them lost. And our Men took one poor Fellow swimming for his Life, above an Hour after they were all gone. Our small Shot from our Cannon must needs kill and wound a great many: But in short, we never knew any Thing how it went with them ; for they iled so fast, that in three Hours or thereabouts, we could not see above three or four straggling Canoes ; nor did we ever see the rest any more ; for a Breeze of Wind springing up the same Evening, we weighed and set Sail for the Brasils. We had a Prisoner indeed ; but the Creature was so sullen, that he would neither eat or speak ; and W3 all fancy'd he would starve himself to Death : But I took a Way to cure him ; for I made them take him and turn him into the Longboat, and made him believe they would toss him into the Sea again, and so leave him where they found him, if he would not speak : Nor would that do ; but they really did throw him into the Sea, and came away from him ; and then he foUow'd them ; for he swam like a Cork, and call'd to them in his Tongue, tho' they knew not one Word of what he said : However, at last they took him in again, and then he began to be more fradtable ; nor did I ever design they should drown him. We were now under Sail again ; but I was the most disconsolate Creature alive, for want of my Man Friday, and would have been very glad to have gone back to the Island, to have taken one of the rest from thence for my .Occasion, but it could not be ; so we went on. We had one Prisoner, as I have said ; and 'twas a long while be- fore we could make him understand any thing : But, in time, our Men taught him some English^ and he began 48o ADVENTURES OF to be a little tradable; afterwards we enquir'd what Country he came from, but could make nothing of what he said; for his Speech was so odd, all Gutturals, and spoke in the Throat in such an hollow odd Manner, that we could never form a WorJfrom him; and we were all of Opinion, that they might speak that Language as well, if they were gagg'd, as otherwise : Nor could we perceive that they had any Occasion, either for Teeth, Tongue, Lips or Palat ; but form'd their Words, just as a hunting Horn forms a Tune with an open Throat. He told us however, some time after, when we taught him to speak a little English, that they were going with their Kings to fight a great Battle. When he said Kings, we ask'd him how many Kings? He said, they were FIVE NATION, we could not make him understand the Plural S. and that they all join'd to go against Two Nation. We ask'd him, what made them come up to us? He said, to makee to great Wonder look: Where it is to be observ'd. That all those Natives, as also those of Africa, when they learn English, they always add two E's at the End of the Words where we use one, and make the Accent upon them, as makil takli, and the like; and we could not break them of it ; nay, I could hardly make Friday leave it off, tho' at last he did. J — And-jiaw-Lname the poor Fellow once more, I must take my last Leave of him; ( poor honest Friday !) We buried him with all the Decency and Solemnity possible, by putting him into a Coffin, and throwing him into the Sea : And I caus'd 'em to fire eleven Guns for him ; and so ended the Life of the most grateful, faithful, honest, and most affedlionate Servant that ever Man had. We went now away with a fair Wind for Brasil, and in about twelve Days Time we made Land in the Lati- tude of five Degrees South of the Line, being the North Eastermost Land of all that Part of America. We kept on S. by E. in Sight of the Shore four Days, when we made Cape St. Augustine, and in three Days came to an Anchor off of the Bay of All Saints, the old Place of ■ROBINSON CRUSOE. 481 my Deliverance, from whence came both my good and evil Fate. Never Ship came to this Part that had less Business than I had ; and yet it was with great Difficulty that we were admitted to hold the least Correspondence on Shore, not my Planter himself, who was alive, and made a great Figure among them; not my two Merchants Trustees, not the Fame of my wonderful Preservation in that Island, could obtain me that Favour: But my Partner remem- bring, that I had given 500 Moidores to the Prior of the Monastery of the Augustines, and 272 to the Poor, went to the Monastery, and oblig'd the Prior that then was, to go to the Governor, and get Leave for me personally, with the Captain and one more, besides eight Seamen, to come on Shore, and no more ; and this upon Condition absolutely capitulated for, that we should not offer to land any Goods out of the Ship, or to carry any Person away without Licence. , They were so strifb with us, as to landing any Goods, that it was with extream Difficulty that I got on Shore three Bales of English Goods, such as, fine broad Cloaths, , Stuffs, and some Linnen, which I had brought for a Present to my Partner. He was a very generous, broad-hearted Man, tho' like me, he came from little at first ; and tho' he knew not that I had the least Design of giving him any Thing, he sent me on Board a Present of fresh Provisions, Wine, and Sweat-meats, worth above 30 Moidores, including some Tobacco, and three or four fine Medals in Gold: But I was even with him in my Present, which, as I have said, consisted of fine broad Cloath, English Stuffs, Lace, and fine Hollands. Also I deliver'd him about the Value of 100 lib. Sterl. in the same Goods, for other Uses; and I oblig'd him to set up the Sloop, which I had brought with me from England, as I have said, for the Use of my Colony, in order to send the Refreshments I intended to my Plantation. , Accordingly, he got Hands, and finish'd the Sloop in R- C. 31 482 ADVENTURES OF a very few Days, for she was ready fram'd and I gave the Master of her such Instruflions, as he could not miss the' Place, nor did he miss them, as I had an Account from my Partner afterwards. I got him soon loaded with the gmall Cargo I sent them ; and one of our Seamen that, had been on Shore with me there, offer'd to go with the Sloop, and settle there upon my Letter to the Governour Spaniard, to allot him a sufficient Quantity of Land for a Plantation ; and giving him some Clothes, and Tools for his Planting-Work, which he said he understood, having been an old Planter at Maryland, and a Buccaneer into the Bargain. I encouraged the Fellow,_by granting all he desired ; and as an Addition, I gave him the Savage, which we had taken Prisoner of War, to be his Slave, and order'd the Governour Spaniard to give him his Share of every thing he wanted, with the rest When we came to fit this Man out, rj\y old Partner told me, there was a certain very honest Fellow, a Brasil ' Planter of his Acquaintance, who had fallen into' the Dis- pleasure of the Church ; I know not what the Matter is with him, says hej but on my Conscience, I think he is a- Heretick in his Heart, and he has been obliged to conceal himself for fear of the Inquisition ; that he would be very glad of such an Opportunity to make his Escape, with his Wife and two Daughters ; and if I would let them go to the Island, and aUot them a Plantation, he would give them a small Stock to begin with ; for the Officers of the Incjuisition had seiz'd all his Effefls and Estate, and he had nothing left but a little Houshold-Stuff, and two Slaves. And, adds he, Tho' I hate his Principles, yet I would not have him fall into their Hands ; for he would assuredly be burnt alive, if he does. I granted this presently, and join'd my English Man with them, and we conceal'd the Man, and his Wife and Daughters on board our Ship, till the Sloop put out to go to Sea ; and then (having put all their Goods on board the- Sloop, some time before) we put them on board the Sloop, after he was got out of the Bay. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 483 Our Seaman was mightily pleas'd with this new Partner ; and their Stock indeed was much alike rich in Tools, in Preparations, and a Farm, but nothing to begiij with, but as abov.e: However, they carried over with them, which was worth all the rest, some Materials for planting Sugar-Canes, with some Plants of Canes ; which he, I mean, the Portugal Man, understood very well. Among the rest of the Supplies sent my Tenants in the Island, I sent them by their Sloop, three Milch Cows, and five Calves, about 22 Hogs among 'em, three Sows big with Pig, two Mares, and a Stone-Horse. For my Spaniards, according to my Promise, I en- gag'd three Portugal Women to go, and recommended it to them to marry them, and use them kindly. I could have procured more Women, but I remember'd, that the poor persecuted Man had two Daughters, and there was but five of the Spaniards that wanted ; the rest had Wives of their own, tho' in another Country. All this Cargo arriv'd safe, and as you may easily suppose, very welcome to my old Inhabitants, who were now, with this Addition, between sixty and seventy People, besides little Children ; of which, there was a great many. ■ I found Letters at London from them all by the Way of ■ Lisbon, when I came back to England j of which I shall also take some Notice immediately. I have now done with my Island, and all Manner of Discourse about it; and whoever reads the rest of my Memorandums, would do well to turn his Thoughts en- tirely from it, and expefl to read of the Follies of an old . Man, not warn'd by his own Harms, much less by those of other Men, to beware of the like ; not cool'd by almost forty Years Misery and Disappointments, not satisfy'd with Prosperity beyond Expeftation, not made cautious by Afflidlion and Distress beyond Imitation. I had no more Business to go to the East Indies, th^^ a Man at full Liberty, and having committed no Crime, has to go to the Turn-key at Newgate, and desire him to lock him up among the Prisoners there, and starve him. 31-2 484 ADVENTURES OF Had I taken a small Vessel from England, and went direflly to the Island ; had I loaded herj as I did the other Vessel, with all the Necessaries for the Plantation, and for my People, took a Patent from the Governour here, to have secur'd my Property, in Subje£lion only to that oi England ; had I carried over Cannon and Am* munition. Servants and People, to plant, and taking Possession of the Place, fortified and strengthen'd it in ■the Name of England, and increas'd it with People, as I might easily have done ; had I then settl'd my self there, and sent the Ship back, loaden with good Rice, as I might also have done in six Months time, and order'd my Friends to have fitted her out again for our Supply ; had I done this, and staid there my self, I had, at least, adled like a Man of common sense ; but I was possest with a wahdring Spirit, scorn'd all Advantages; I pleased my self with being the Patron of those People I placed there, and doing for them in a Kind of haughty majestick Way, like an old Patriarchal Monarch ; providing for them, as if I had been Father of the whole Family, as well as of the Plantation. But I never so much as pretended to plant in the Name of any Government or Nation, or to acknowledge any Prince, or to call my People Subjefts to any one Nation more than another ; nay, I never so much as gave the Place a Name, but left it as I found it, belonging to no Man; and the People under no Disci- pline or Government but my own; who, though I had Influence over them as Father and Benefaflor, had no Authority or Power, to ^€i or command one way or other, farther than voluntary Consent moved them to comply. Yet even this, had I sta/d there, would have done well enough ; but as I rambled from them, and came there no ; more, the last Letters I had from any of them, was by my Partner's Means ; who afterwards sent another Sloop to the Place, and who sent me Word, tho' I had not the Letter till five Years after it was written, that they went on but poorly, were male-content with their long Stay •there : That Will. Atkins was dead: That five of the ROBINSON CRUSOE. 485 Spaniards were come away, and that tho' they had not been much molested by the Savages, yet they had had some Skirmishes with them ; and that they begged of him to write to me, to think of the Promise I had made, to fetch them away, that they might see their own Country again before they dy'd. But I was gone a Wild-Goose Chase indeed ; and they that will have any more of me, must be content to follow me thro' a new Variety of Follies, Hardships, and wild Adventures; wherein the Justice of Providence may be duly observed, and we may see how easily Heaven can gorge us with our own Desires, make the strongest of our Wishes be our Affli6lion, and punish us most severely with those very Things which we think it would be our utmost Happiness to be allowed in. Let no wise Man flatter himself with the Strength of his own Judgment, as if he was able to chuse any par- ticular Station of Life for himself. Man is a short-sighted Creature, sees but a very little Way before him ; and as his Passions are none of his best Friends, so his particular Affedlions are generally his worst Counsellors. I say this with Respedl to the impetuous Desire I had from a Youth, to wander into the World ; and how evi- dent it now was, that this Principle was preserv'd in me for my Punishment. How it came on, the Manner, the Circumstance, and the Conclusion of it, it is easie to give you Historically, and with its utmost Variety of Particu- lars : But the secret Ends of Divine Power, in thus per- mitting us to be hurried down the Stream of our own Desires, is only to be understood of those who can listen to the Voice of Providence, and draw religious Conse- quences from God's Justice, and their own Mistakes, Be it, I had Business, or no Business, away I went. 'Tis no Time now to enlarge any farther upon the Rea- son, or Absurdity of my own Condudl ; but to come to the History, I was embarked for the Voyage, and the Voyage I went. I should only add here, that my honest and truly pious 486 ADVENTURES OF Clergyman left me here; a Ship being ready to go to Lisbon, he ask'd me Leave to go thither, being still, z.% he observed, bound -never to finish any Voyage he began. How happy had it been for me, if I had gone with him ! But it was too late now. All things Heaven appoints are best. Had I gone with him, I had never had so many Things to be thankful for, and you had never heard of the Second Part of the Travels and Adventures of Robinson Crusoe. So I must leave here the fruitless exclaiming at my self, and go on with my Voyage. From the Brasils, we made diredlly away over the Atlantick Sea, to the Cape de bon Esperance, or as we call it. The Cape of Good Hope; and had a tolerable good Voyage, our Course generally Sozith-Eastj now and then a Storm, and some contrary Winds, but my Disasters at Sea were at an end; my future Rubs and cross Events were to befal me on Shore ; that it might appear the Land was as well prepared to be our Scourge, as the Sea, when Heaven, who direfts the Circumstances of Things, pleases to appoint it to be so. Our Ship was on a Trading Voyage, and had a Supra- Cargo on board, who was to direft all her Motions after she arrived at the Cape; only being limited to certain Numbers of Days, for Stay, by Charter-party, at the seve- ral Ports she was to go to. This was none of my Busi- ness, neither did I meddle with it at all; my Nephew, the Captain, and the Supra-Cargo adjusting all those things between them, as they thought fit. We made no Stay at the Cape longer than was need- ful, to take in fresh Water, but made the best of our Way for the Coast of Coromandel. We were indeed inform'd, that a French Man of War of fifty Guns, and two large Merchant Ships, were gone for the Indies, and as I knew we were at War with France, I had some Apprehensions of them: But they went their Way, and we heard no more of them. I shall not pester my Account, or the Reader, with De- scriptions of Places, Journals of our Voyages, Variations ROBINSON CRUSOE. 487 of the Compass, Latitudes, Meridian-Distances, Trade- Winds, Situation of Ports, and the lilce ; such as almost all the Histories of long Navigation are full of, and makes the Reading tiresome enough, and are perfeflly unprofit- able to all that read it, except only to those who are to go to those Places themselves. It is enough to name the Ports and Places, which we touch'd at, and what occurred to us upon our passing from one to another. We touch'd first at the Island of Madagascarj where, tho' the People are fierce and treacherous, and in particular, very well armed with Lances and Bows, which they use with inconceivable Dexterity ; yet we fared very well with them a while, they treated us very civilly; and for some Trifles which we gave them, such as Knives, Scissars, ^c. they brought us eleven good fat Bullocks, middling in Size, but very good in Flesh; which we took in partly for fresh Pro- visions for our present Spending, and the rest, to Salt for the Ship's Use. We were obliged to stay here some Time after we had furnish'd our selves with Provisions; and I, that was always too curious, to look into every Nook of the World wherever I came, was for going on Shore as fast as I could. It was on the East Side of the Island that we went on Shore one Evening ; and the People, who by the Way are very numerous, came thronging about us, and stood gazing at us at a Distance ; but as we had traded freely with them, and had been kindly used, we thought our selves in no Danger : But when we saw the People, %ve cut three Boughs out of a Tree, and stuck them up at a Distance from us, which it seems, is a Mark in the Country, not only of Truce and Friendship, but when it is accepted, the other Side set up three Poles or Boughs, which is a Signal, that they accept the Truce too ; but then, this is a known Condition of the Truce, that you are not to pass between their three Poles towards them, nor they to come past your three Poles or Boughs, towards you; so that you are perfedlly secure within the three 488 ADVENTURES OF Poles, and all the Space between your Poles and theirs, is allow'd like a Market, for free Converse, Traffick, and Commerce. When you go there, you must not carry your Weapons with you ; and if they come into that Space, they stick up their Javelins and Lannces, all at the first Poles, and come on unarm'd ; but if any Violence is offer'd them, and the Truce thereby broken, away they run to the Poles, and lay hold of their Weapons, and then the Truce' is at an End. It happen 'd one Evening when we went on Shore, that a greater Number of their People came down than usual, but all was very friendly and civil, and they brought in several Kinds of Provisions, for which we satisfied them, with such Toys as we had ; their Women also brought us Milk, and Roots, and several Things very acceptable to us, and all was quiet ; and we made us a little Tent or Hut, of some Boughs of Trees, and lay on Shore all Night, I knew not what was the Occasion, but I was not so well satisfied to lye on Shore as the rest; and the Boat lying at an Anchor, about a Stone-cast from the Land, with two Men in her to take Care of her, I' made one of them come on Shore, and getting some Boughs of Trees to cover us also in the Boat, I spread the Sail on the Bottom of the Boat, and lay under the Cover of the Branches of Trees all Night in the Boat. About two a-clock in the Morning, we heard one of our Men make a terrible Noise on the Shore, calling out for God's Sake, to bring the Boat in, and come and help them, for they were all like to be murther'd ; at the same Time I heard the firing of five Muskets, which was the Number of the Guns they had, and that, three Times, over; for it seems, the Natives' here were not so easily frighted with Guns, as the Savages were in America, where I had to do with them. All this while, I knew not what was the Matter; but rouzing immediately from Sleep with the Noise, I caus'd the Boat to be thrust in, and resolved, with three Fusils we had on board, to land and assist our Men. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 489 We got the Boat soon to the Shore, but our Men were in too much Haste; for being come to the Shore, they plunged into the Water to get to the Boat with all the Expedition they could, being pursued by between three and jour hundred Men. Our Men were but nine in all, and only five of them had Fusils with them ; the rest had indeed Pistols and Swords, but they were of small Use to them. We took up seven of our Men, and with Difficulty enough too, three of them being very ill wounded ; and that which was still worse, was that while we stood in the Boat to take our Men in, we were in as much Danger as they were in on Shore ; for they pour'd their Arrows in upon us so thick, that we were fain to barricade the Side of the Boat up with the Benches, and two or three loose Boards, which to our great Satisfaflion we had by mere Accident or Providence in the Boat. And yet, had it been Day-light, they are it seems such exa6l Marks-men, that if they could have seen but the least Part of any of us, they would have been sure of us. We had by the Light of the Moon a little Sight of them, as they stood pelting us from the Shore with Darts and Arrows; and having got ready our Fire-Arms, we gave them a Volley, that we could hear by the Cries of some of them, that we had wounded several ; however, they stood thus in Battle Array on the Shore till Break of Day, which we suppose was, that they might see the better to take their Aim at us. In this Condition we lay, and could not tell how to weigh our Anchor, or set up our Sail, because we must needs stand up in the Boat, and they were as sure to hit us, as we were to hit a Bird in a Tree with small Shot. We made Signals of Distress to the Ship, which, tho' we road a League off, yet my Nephew, the Captain, hearing our Firing, and by Glasses perceiving the Posture we lay in, and that we fir'd towards the Shore, pretty well under- stood us ; and weighing Anchor, with all Speed, he stood as near the Shore as he durst with the Ship, and then 490 . ADVENTURES OF sent another Boat with ten Hands in her to assist us; but we cali'd to them not to come too near, teUing them what Condition we were in : However, they stood in nearer to us ; and one of the Men taking the End of a Tow-Line in his Hand, and keeping our Boat between him and the Enemy, so that they could not perfectly see him, swam on board us, and made fast the Line to the Boat; upon which we shpp'd our little Cable, and leaving our Anchor behind, they tow'd us out of Reach of the Arrows, we all the while lying close behind the Barricade we had made. As soon as we were got from between the Ship and the Shore, that she could lay her Side to the Shore, she run along just by them, and we pour'd in a Broad-side among them loaden with Pieces of Iron and Lead, small Bullets, and such Stuff, besides the great Shot, which made a terrible Havock amongst them. When we were got on board, and out of Danger, we had Time to examine into the Occasion of this Fray ; and indeed our Supra-Cargo who had been often in those Parts, put me upon it; for he said, he was sure the Inha- bitants would not have touch'd us after we had made a Truce, if we had not done something to provoke them to it. At length it came out, {viz) that an old Woman who had come to sell us some Milk, had brought it within our Poles, with a young Woman with her, who also brought some Roots or Herbs ; and while the old Woman, whether she was Mother to the young Woman or no, they could not tell, was selling us the Milk, one of our Men offer'd some Rudeness to the Wench that was with her, at which the old Woman made a great Noise. However, the Sea- man would not quit his Prize, but carry'd her out of the old Woman's Sight among the Trees, it being almost dark. The old Woman went away without her, and as we suppose, made an Out-cry among the People she came from; who upon Notice, rais'd this great Army upon us in three or four Hours ; and it was great Odds, but we had been all destroy'd. One of our Men was kill'd with a Launce thrown at ROBINSON CRUSOE. 491 him just at the Beginning of the Attack, as he sally'd out of the Tent they had made ; the rest came off free, all but the Fellow who was the Occasion of all the Mischief, who paid dear enough for his black Mistress ; for we could not hear what became of him a great while. We lay upon the Shore two Days after, tho' the Wind presented, and made Signals for him ; made our Boat sail up Shore and down Shore, several Leagues, but in vain ; so we were oblig'd to give him over, and if he alone had suffer'd for it, the Loss had been the less. I could not satisfie my self, however, without ven- turing on Shore once more, to try if I could learn any Thing of him or them ; it was the third Night after the Aftion, that I had a great Mind to learn, if I could by any Means, what Mischief we had done, and how the Game stood on the Indians Side : I was careful to do it in the Dark, lest we should be attack'd again; but I ought indeed to have been sure, that the Men I went with had been under my Command, before I engag'd in a Thing so hazardous and mischievous as I was brought into by it, without my Knowledge or Design. We took twenty stout Fellows with us as any in the Ship, besides the Supra-Cargo and my self, and we landed two Hours before Midnight, at the same Place where the Indians stood drawn up the Evening before. I landed here, because my Design, as I have said, was chiefly to see if they had quitted the Field, and if they had left any Marks behind them of the Mischief we had done them ; and I thought, if we could surprize one or two of them, perhaps we might get our Man again by Way of Exchange. We landed without any Noise, and divided our Men into two Bodies, whereof the Boatswain commanded one, and I the other ; we neither saw or heard any Body stir when we landed, and we march'd up one Body at a Dis- tance from the other, to the Place, but at first could see nothing, it being very dark; till by and by, our Boat- swain that led the- first Party, stumbled; and fell over a 492 ADVENTURES OF dead Body. This made them halt a while, for knowing by the Circumstances that they were at the place, where the Indians had stood, they waited for my coming up. Here we concluded to halt till the Moon began to rise, which we knew would be in less than an Hour, when we could easily discern the Havock we had made among them; we told two and thirty Bodies upon the Ground, whereof two were not quite dead: Some had an Arm, and some a Leg shot off, and one his Head; those that were wounded we suppos'd they had carried away. When we had made, as I thought, a full Discovery of all we could come at the Knowledge of, I was resolv'd for going on Board; but the Boatswain and his Party sent me Word, that they were resolv'd to make a Visit to the Indian Town, where these Dogs, as they call'd them, dwelt, and ask'd me to go along with them; and if they could find them, as still they fancied they should, they did not doubt getting a good Booty, and it might be, they might find Tho. Jeffery there, that was the Man's Name lue had lost. Had they sent to ask my Leave to go, I knew well enough what Answer to have given them; for I would have commanded them instantly on Board, knowing it was not a Hazard fit for us to run, who had a Ship, and Ship-loading in our Charge, and a Voyage to make, which depended very much upon the Lives of the Men ; but as they sent me Word they were resolved to go, and only ask'd me and my Company to go along with them, I positively refus'd it, and rose up, for I was sitting on the Ground, in Order to go to the Boat, One or two of the Men bega;n to importune me to go, and when I re- fus'd positively, began to grumble, and say they were not under my Command, and they would go: Come Jack^ says one of the Men, will you go with me? I'll go for one. Jack said he would, and another followed, and then another: And in a Word, they all left me but one, whom I perswaded to stay, and a Boy left in the Boat ; so the ROBINSON Crusoe: 493 Supra-Cargb and I, with the third Man, went back to the Boat, where we told them we would stay for them, and take Care to take in as many of them as should be left ; for I told them- it was a mad Thing they were going about, and supposed most of them would run the Fate of Thomas Jeffery. They told me, like Seamen, they'd warrant it they would come off again, and they would take Care, b^c. So away they went : I entreated 'em to consider the Ship and Voyage; that their Lives were not their own, and that they were entrusted with the Voyage in some Mea- sure ; that if they miscarry'd, the Ship might be lost for want of their Help, and that they could not answer it to God or Man. I said a great deal more to 'em on that Head, but I might as well have talk'd to the Main-mast of the Ship ; they were mad upon their Journey, only they gave me good Words, and begg'd I would not be angry : That they would be very cautious, and they did not doubt but they would be back again in about an Hour at farthest; for the Indian Town, they said, was not above half a Mile off, though they found it above two Miles before they got to it. Well, they all went away, as above; and tho' the Attempt was desperate, and such, as none but mad Men would have gone about, yet to give them their due, they went about it as warily as boldly: They were gallantly armed, that's true; for they had every Man a Fusil or Musket, a Bayonet, and every Man a Pistol ; some of them had broad Cutlasses, some of them Hangers, and the Boatswain and two more, had Pole-Axes: Besides all which, they had among them thirteen Hand-Grenadoes. Bolder Fellows, and better provided, never went about any wicked Work in the World. When they went out, their chief Design was Plunder, and they were in mighty hopes of finding Gold there ; but a Circumstance which none of them were aware of, set them on Fire with Revenge, and made Devils of them iall. When they came to the few Indian Houses which 494 . ADVENTURES OP they thought had been the Town, which was not above half a Mile off; they were under a great Disappointment ; for there were not above 12 or 13 Houses; and where the Town was, or how big, they knew not: They con- sulted therefore what to do, and were some time before they could resolve : For if they fell upon these, they must cut all their Throats, and it was ten to one but some of them might escape, it being in the Night, tho' the Moon was up; and if one escaped, he would run away, and raise all the Town, so they should have a •whole Army upon them: Again, on the other hand, if they went away, and left those untouch'd (for the People were all asleep) they could not teU which Way to look for the Town. However, the last was the best Advice ; so they re- solved to leave them, and look for the Town as well as they could. They went on a little Way, and found a Cow tied to a Tree ; this they presently concluded, would be a good Guide to them ; for they said, the Cow cer- tainly belong'd to the Town before them, or the Town behind them ; and if they untied her, they should see which Way she went ; if she went back they had nothing to say to her ; but if she went forward, they had nothing to do but to follow her : So they cut the Cord, which was made of twisted Flags, and the Cow went on before them; in a Word, the Cow led them diredlly to the Town, which as they report, consisted of above 200. Houses, or Huts; and in some of these, they found several Families living together. Here they found! all in Silence, as , profoundly secure, as Sleep, and a Country that had never seen an Enemy of that Kind could make them; and first, they call'd another Council, to consider what they had to do ; and in a Word, they resolv'd to divide themselves into three Bodies, and to set three Houses on Fire in three Parts of the Town ; and as the Men came out, to seize them and bind them ; if any resisted, they need not be ask'd what •to do then, and ,so to search the rest of the Houses for ROBrNSON CRUSOE. 495 •plunder ; buf they resblv'd to march silently first, thro' the Town, and see what Dimensions it was of, and if they might venture upon it or no. They did so, and desperately resolv'd that they would venture upon them ; but while they were animating one another to the Work, three of them that were a little before the rest, call'd out aloud to them, and told them they had found Tom. Jeffery,; they all run up to the Place, and so it was indeed; for there they found the poor Fellow hang'd up naked by one Arm, and his Throat .cut ; there was an Indian House just by the Tree, where they found sixteen or seventeen of the principal Indians 'who had been concern'd in the Fray with us before ; and •two or three of them wounded with our Shot ; and our .Men found they were awake, and talking one to another ■in that House, but knew not their Number. The Sight of their poor mangled Comrade so enrag'd 'em, as before, -that they swore to one another they would -be reveng'd, and that not an Indian who came into their Hands should have Quarter, and to Work they went immediately; and yet not so madly as by the Rage and Fury they were in might be expefted. Their first Care was to get something that would soon take Fire ; but 3,fter a little Search, they found that would be to, no Pur- pose; for most of the Houses were low, and thatcli'd with Flags or Rushes, of which the Country is full ; so they presently made some wild Fire, as we call it, by wetting a little Powder in the Palms of their hands, and in a Quarter of an Hour they set the Town on Fire in four or five Places; and particularly that House where the Indians were not gone to Bed. As soon as the Fire began to blaze, the poor frighted Creatures began to rush put to save their Lives ; but met with their Fate in the Attempt, and especially at the Door, where they drove 'em bade, the Boatswain himself killing one or two with his Pole-Axe. The House being large, and many in it, he did not care to go in, but call'd for a Hand-Grenado, and threw it among e'm, which at first frighted 'em ; hut 496 ADVENTURES OF when it turst, made such Havock among 'em, that they cried out in a hideous manner. In short, most of the Indians who were in the open Part of the House, were killed or hurt with the Grenado, except two or three more who press'd to the Door, which the Boatswain and two more kept 'with their Bayonets in the Muzzles of their Pieces, and dispatch'd all who came that Way. But there was another Apartment in the House where the Prince or King, or whatever he was, and several other were, and these they kept in till the House, which was by this time all of a light Flame, fell in upon them, and they were smothered or burnt together. All this while they fir'd not a Gun, because they would not waken the People faster than they could master them ; but the Fire began to waken them fast enough, and our Fellows were glad to keep a little together in Bodies ; for the Fire grew so raging, all the Houses being made of light combustible Stuff, that they could hardly bear the Street between them, and their Business was to follow the Fire for the surer Execution. As fast as the Fire either forc'd the People out of those Houses which were burning, or frighted them out of others, our People were ready at their Doors to knock them on the Head, still calUng and hallooing to one another, to remember Thorn. Jeffery. While this was doing, I must confess I was very uneasie, and especially when I saw the Flames of the Town, which, it being Night, seem'd to be just by me. My Nephew, the Captain, who was rouz'd by his Men too, seeing such a Fire, was very uneasie, not knowing what the Matter was, or what Danger I was in; espe- cially hearing the Guns too ; for by this time they began to use their Fire-Arms ; a thousand Thoughts opprest his Mind concerning me and the Supra-Cargo what should become of us : And at last, tho' he could ill spare any more Men, yet not knowing what Exigence we might be ,in, he takes another Boat, and with 13 Men and himself, .come on Shore to me. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 497 He was surpriz'd to see me and the Supra-Cargo in the Boat with no more than two Men ; and tho' he was glad that we were well, yet he was in the same Impa- tience with us to know what was doing ; for the Noise continu'd, and the Flame encreas'd : In short it was next to an Impossibility for any IMen in the World, to restrain their Curiosity to know what had happen'd, or their Concern for the Safety of - the Men : In a Word, the Captain told me, he would go and help his Men, let what would come. I argu'd with him, as I ' did before with the Men, the Safety of the Ship, the Danger of the Voyage, the Interest of the Owners and Merchants, &"€. and told him, I would go, and the two Men, and only see if we could at a Distance learn what was like to be the Event, and come back and tell him. It was all one, to talk to my Nephew, as it was to talk to the rest before ; he would go, he said, and he only wish'd he had left but ten Men in the Ship ; for he could not think of having his Men lost for want of Help, he had rather lose the Ship, the Voyage, and his Life and all ; and away went he. In a Word, I was no more able to stay behind now, than I was to perswade them not to go ; so in short, the Captain order'd two Men to row back the Pinnace, and fetch twelve Men more, leaving the Long-Boat at an Anchor, and that when they came back, six Men should keep the two Boats, and six more come after us ; so that he left only 16 Men in the Ship; for the whole Ship's Company consisted of 65 Men, whereof two were lost vn, the last Quarrel, which brought this Mischief on. Being now on the March, you may be sure we fe]t little of the Ground we trode on; and being guided by the Fire, we kept no Path, but went direcflly to the Place of the Flame. If the Noise of the Guns was surprizing to us before, the Cries of the poor People were now of quite another Nature, and fiU'd us with Horror. I must confess, I never was at the Sacking a City, or at the Taking a Town by Storm, I had heard of Oliver Crom- R. C, 32 498 ADVENTURES OF well taking Drogheda in Ireland, and killing Man, Woman, and Child: And I had read of Count Tilly, sacking of the City of Magdeburgh, and cutting the Throats of 22000 of all Sexes. But I never had an Idea of the Thing it self before, nor is it possible to describe it, or the Horror which was upon our Minds at hearing it. However, we went on, and at length came to the Town, tho' there was no entring the Streets of it for the Fire. The first Objedl we met with, was the Ruins of a Hut or House, or rather the Ashes of it, for the House was consumed ; and just before it, plain now to be seen by the Light of the Fire, lay four Men and three Women kill'd; and as we thought, one or two more lay in the Heap among the Fire. In short, there were such In- stances of a Rage altogether barbarous, and of a Fury, something beyond what was human, that we thought it impossible our Men could be guilty of it, or if they were the Authors of it, we thought they ought to be every one of them put to the worst of Deaths. But this was not all, we saw the Fire encreas'd forward, and the Cry went on just as the Fire went on ; so that we were in the utmost Confusion. We advanced a little Way farther, and be- hold, to our Astonishment, three Women naked, and crying in a most dreadful Manner, come flying, as if they had indeed had Wings, and after them sixteen or seventeen Men, Natives, in the same Terror and Con- sternation, with three of our English Butchers, for I can call them no better, in their Rear, who, when they could not overtake them, fired in among them, and one that was killed by their Shot, fell down in our Sight. When the rest saw us, believing us to be their Enemies, and that we would murder them as well as those that pursued them, they set up a most dreadful Shriek, especially the Women ; and two of them fell down as if already dead with the Fright. My very Soul shrunk within me, and my Blood run chill in my Veins, when I saw this ; and I believe, had the three English Sailors that pursued them come on, I had ■ROBINSON CRUSOE. 499 made our Men kill them all. However, we took som.e Ways to let the poor flying Creatures know, that we would not hurt them, and immediately they came up to us, and kneeling down, with their Hands lifted up, made piteous Lamentation to us to save them, which we let them know we would : Whereupon they crept altogether in a Huddle close behind us, as for Proteflion. I left my Men drawn up together, and charg'd them to hurt no Body, but if possible to get at some of our People, and see what Devil it was possess'd them, and what they intended to do; and in a Word, to command them off; assuring them, that if they stay'd till Day-light, they would have an hundred thousand Men about their Ears. I say, I left them, and went among those flying People, taking only two of our Men with me; and there was indeed a piteous Spedlacle among them. Some of them had their Feet terribly burnt with trampling and running thro' the Fire, others their Hands burnt ; one of the Women had fallen down in the Fire, and was very much burnt before she could get out again ; and two or three of the Men had Cuts in their Backs and Thighs from our Men pursu- ing ; and another was shot thro' the Body, and died while I was there. I would fain have learned what the Occasion of all* this was, but I could not understand one Word they said ; tho' by Signs I perceived that some of them knew not what was the Occasion themselves. I was so terri- fied in my Thoughts at ' this outrageous Attempt, that I could not stay there, but went back to my own Men, and resolved to go into the Middle of the Town thro' the Fire, or whatever might be in the Way, and put an End to it, cost what it would. Accordingly, as soon as I came back to my Men, I told them my Resolution, and commanded them to follow me, when in the very Moment came four of our Men with the Boatswain at their Head, roving over the Heaps of Bodies they had killed, all covered with Blood and Dust, as if they wanted more People to Massacre, when our Men hal- 32—2 50O ADVENTURES OP loo'd to them as loud as they could halloo, and with ' much ado one of them made them hear ; so that they knew who we were, and came up to us. As soon as the Boatswain saw us, he set up a Halloo like a Shout of Triumph, for having, as he thought, more Help come, and without bearing to hear me. Captain, says he, noble Captain, I am glad you are come! We have not half done yet, villainous Hell-hound Dogs ! I'll kill as many of them as poor Tom. has Hairs upon his Head. We have sworn to spare none of them, we'll root out the very Nation of 'em from the Earth. And thus he run on, out of Breath too with Aflion, and would not give ' us Leave to speak a Word. At last, raising my Voice, that I might silence him a little, Barbarous Dog, said I, what are you doing? I won't have one Creature touch'd more, upon Pain of. ■ Death. I charge you upon you Life, to stop your Hands, and stand still here, or you are a dead Man this Minute. Why, Sir, says he, do you know what you do, or what they have done? If you want a Reason for what we have done, come hither. And with that he shewed me the poor Fellow hanging with his Throat cut. ,1 confess, I was urged then my self, and at another Time would have been forward enough; but I thought they had carried their Rage too far, and I thought of JacoVs Words to his Sons Simeon and Levi. Cursed be their Anger, for it was Fierce; and their Wrath for it was Cruel. But I had now a new Task upon my Hands ; for when the Men I carried with me saw the Sight, as I had done, I had as much to do to restrain them, as I should have had with the other. Nay, my Nephew him- self fell in with them, and told me in their Hearing, that he was only concerned for Fear of the Men being over- powered ; for as to the People, he thought not one of 'em ought to live ; for they had all glutted themselves with the Murder of the poor Man, and that they ought to be used like Murderers. Upon these Words, away run eight of my Men with the Boatswain and his Crew, to complete ROBINSON CRUSOE. sor their bloody Work ; and I seeing it quite out of my Power to restrain them, came away pensive and sad ; for I could not bear the Sight, much less the horrible Noise and- Cries of the poor Wretches that fell into their Hands. I got no Body to come back with me but the Supra- Cargo and two Men ; and with these I walk'd back to the Boats. It was a very great Piece of Folly in me, I con- fess, to venture back, as it were alone; for as it began now to be almost Day, and the Alarm had run over the Country, there stood above forty Men armed with Lances and Bows at the little Place where the 12 or 13 Houses stoodmention'd before ; but by Accident I miss'd the Place, and came direftly to the Sea-side; and by the Time I got to the Sea-side it was broad Day. Immediately I took the Pinnace, and went aboard, and sent her back to assist the Men in what might happen. I observ'd about the Time that I came to the Boat- side, that the Fii-e was pretty well out, and the Noise abated; but in about half an Hour after I got on Board, I heard a Volley of our Mens Fire-Arms, and saw a great Smoke; this, as I understood afterwards, was our Men falling upon the Men, who, as I said, stood at the few Houses on the Way, of whom they kill'd sixteen or seven- teen, and set all those Houses on Fire, but did not med- dle with the Women or Children. By that Time the Men got to the Shore again with the Pinnace, our Men began to appear ; they came drop- ping in, some and some, not in two Bodies, and in Form as they went, but all in Heaps, straggling here and there in such a Manner, that a small Force of resolute Men might have cut them all off. But the Dread of them was upon the whole Country ; and the Men were amaz'd and surpriz'd, and so frighted; that I believe a hundred of them would have fled at the Sight- of but five of our Men. Nor in all this terrible Adtion was there a Man who made any considerable Defence, they were so surpriz'd between the Terror of the Fire, and the sudden Attack of our Men in the Dark, that S02 ADVENTURES OF they knew not which Way to turn themselves ; for if they fled one Way, they were met by one Party; if back again, by another ; so that they were every where knock'd down : Nor did any of our Men receive the least Hurt, except one, who strained his Foot, and another had one of his Hands very much burnt. I was very angry with my Nephew the Captain, and indeed with all the Men, in my Mind, but with him in particular, as well for his afling so out of his Duty, as Commander of the Ship, and having the Charge of the Voyage upon him, as in his prompting rather than cool- ing the Rage of his Men in so bloody and cruel an En- terprize. My Nephew answer'd me very respeflfully ; but told me. That when he saw the Body of the poor Seaman whom they had murder'd in such a cruel and barbarous Manner, he was not Master of himself, neither could he govern his Passion. He own'd, he should not have done so, as he was Commander of the Ship ; but as he was a Man, and Nature mov'd him, he could not bear it. As for the rest of the Men, they were not subjeifl to me at aU, and they knew it well enough ; so they took no No- tice of my Dislike. The next Day we set Sail, so we never heard any more of it: Our Men differ'd in the Account of the Num- ber they kill'd: Some said one Thing, somp another; but according to the best of their. Accounts put altogether, they kill'd or destro^d about 150 People, Men, Women, and Children, and left not a House standing in the Town. As for the poor Fellow Tho. Jeffery, as he was quite dead, for his Throat was so cut, that his Head was half off, it would do him no Service to bring him away, so they left him where they found him, only took him down from the Tree where he was hang'd by one Hand. However just our Men thought this Action, I was against them in it ; and I always, after that Time, told them, God would blast the Voyage ; for I look'd upon all the Blood they shed that Night to be Murther in them": ROBmSON CRUSOE. 503 For tho' it is true that they had kill'd Tho. Jeffery, yet it was as true, that Jeffery was the Aggressor, had broken the Truce, and had violated or debauch'd a young Wo- man of theirs who came down to them innocently, and on the Faith of their publick Capitulation. The Boatswain defended this Quarrel when we were afterwards on Board: He said, it is true, that we seem'd to break the Truce, but really had not, and that the War was begun the Night before by the Natives themselves, who had shot at us, and kill'd one of our Men without any just Provocation ; so that as we were in a Capacity to fight them now, we might also be in a Capacity to do our selves Justice upon them in an extraordinary Manner, that tho' the poor Man had taken a little Liberty with a Wench, he ought not to have been murther'd, and that in such a villainous Manner ; and that they did nothing but what was just, and what the Laws of God allow'd to be done to Murderers. One would think this should have been enough to have warn'd us against going on Shore among Heathens and Barbarians : But it is impossible to make Mankind wise, but at their own Experience ; and their Experience seems to be always of most Use to them, when it is dearest bought. We were now bound to the Gulph of Persia, and from thence to the Coast of Coromandel, only to touch at Surrat: But the Chief of the Supra-Cargo's Design lay at the Bay oi Bengale, where if he miss'd of his Business outward bound, he was to go up to China, and return to the Coast as he came Home. The first Disaster that befel us, was in the Gulph of Persia, where five of our Men venturing on Shore on the Arabian Side of the Gulph, were surrounded by the Arabians, and either all kill'd or carry'd away into Sla- very ; the rest of the Boat's Crew were not able to rescue them, and had but just Time to get off their Boat. I began to upbraid them with the just Retribution of Heaven in this Case: But the Boatswain very warmly 504 ADVENTURES OF told me, he thought I went farther in my Censures than I could shew any Warrant for in Scripture, and referred to the 13 St Luke, Verse 4th. where our Saviour intimates, that those Men, on whom the Tower of Siloam. fell, were not Sinners above all the Galileans: But that which in- deed put me to Silence in the Case, was, That not one of these five Men, who were now lost, were of the Number of those who went on Shore to the Massacre of Mada- gascar; {so I always call'd it, thd' our Men could not bear the Word Massacre with any Patience-^ And indeed, this last Circumstance, as I have said, put me to Silence for the present. But my frequent Preaching to them on this Subjeft had worse Consequences than 1 expefted ; and the Boat- swain, who had been the Head of the Attempt, came up boldly to me one Time, and told me, he found, that I continually brought that Affair upon the Stage, that I made unjust Refledlions upon it, and had used the Men very ill on that Account, and himself in particular; that as I was but a Passenger, and had no Command in the Ship, or Concern in the Voyage, they were not oblig'd to bear it ; that they did not know, but I might have some ill Design in my Head, and perhaps to call them to Ac- count for it, when they came to England; and that there- fore,' unless I would resolve to have done with it ; and also, not to concern my self any farther with him, or any of his Affairs, he would leave the Ship; for he did not think it was safe to sail with me among them. I heard him patiently enough 'till he had done, and ^ then told him, that I did confess I had all along oppos'd the Massacre of Madagascar, for such I would always call it; and that I had on all Occasions spoken my Mind freely about it, though not more upon him than any of the rest: That as to my having no ..Command in the- Ship, that was true; nor did I exercise any Authority, only, took my Liberty of speaking my Mind in Things which publickly concern'd us all; and what Concern I had in the Voyage was none of his Business ; that I was HOBINSON CRUSOE. 505 a considerable Owner of the Ship; and in that- Claim I conceived I had a Right to speak even farther than I had yet done, and would not be accountable to him or any one else, and begun to be a little warm with him. He made but little Reply to me at that Time, and I thought that Affair had been over. We were at this Time in the Road at Bengal, and being willing to see the Place, I went on Shore with the Supra-Cargo in the Ship's Boat, to divert myself, and towards Evening was preparing to go on Board, when one of the Men came to me, and told me, he would not have me trouble my self to come down to the Boat, for they had Orders not to carry me on Board any more. Any one may guess what a Surprize I was in at so insolent a Message ; and I ask'd the Man, who bad him deliver that Errand to me ? He told me, the Cockswain. I said no more to the Fellow, but bad him let them know he had deliver'd his Message, and that I had given him no Answer to it. I immediately went and found out the Supra-Cargo, and told him the Story, adding what I presently foresaw, {viz.) That there would certainly be a Mutiny in the Ship, and entreated him to go immediately on Board the Ship in an Indian Boat, and acquaint the Captain of it : But I might ha' spar'd this Intelligence ; for before I had spoken to him on Shore, the Matter was effected on Board. The Boatswain, the Gunner, the Carpenter; and in a Word, all the inferior Officers, as soon as I was gone off in the Boat, came up to the Quarter-Deck, and desir'd to speak with the Captain, and there the Boatswain making a long Harangue, for the Fellow talk'd very well, and repeating all he had said to me, told the Captain in few Words, That as I was now gone peaceably on Shore, they were loath to use any Violence with me; which, if I had not gone on Shore, they would otherwise have done, to oblige me to have gone : They therefore thought fit to tell him, That as they shipp'd themselves to serve in the Ship under his Command, they would perform it well and faithfully : But if I would not quit the Ship, or So6 ADVENTURES OF the Captain oblige me to quit it, they would all leave the Ship, and sail no farther with him; and at that Word, All, he turn'd his Face about towards the Main-mast, which was it seems the Signal agreed on between them ; at which, all the Seamen being got together, they cry'd out, One and ALL, One and ALL. My Nephew, the Captain, was a Man of Spirit, and of great Presence of Mind ; and tho' he was surpriz'd, you may be sure, at the Thing, yet he told them calmly, that he would consider of the Thing, but that he could do nothing in it 'till he had spoken to me about it. He us'd some Arguments with them, to shew them the Un^ reasonableness and Injustice of the Thing: But it was all in vain, they swore and shook Hands round before his Face, that they would go all on Shore, unless he would engage to them, not to suffer me to come any more on Board the Ship. This was a hard Article upon him, who knew his Obligation to me, and did not know how I might take it ; so he began to talk cavalierly to them, told them that I was a very considerable Owner of the Ship, and that in Justice he could not put me out of my own House ; that this was next Door to serving me, as the famous Pirate Kid had done, who made the Mutiny in a Ship, set the Captain on Shore in an uninhabited Island, and run away with the Ship ; that let them go into what Ship they would, if ever they came to England again, it would cost them dear; that the Ship was mine, and that he could not put me out of it; and that he would rather lose the Ship and the Voyage too, than disoblige me so much ; so they might do as they pleas'd : However, he would go on Shore, and talk with me on Shore, and in- vited the Boatswain to go with him, and perhaps they might accommodate the Matter with me. But they all rejedled the Proposal, and said, they would have nothing to do with me any more, neither on Board, or on Shore ; and if I came on Board, they would all go on Shore. Well, said the Captain, if you are all ROBINSON CRUSOE. so? of this Mind, let me go on Shore and talk with him ; so away he came to me with this Account, a little after the Message had been brought to me from the Cockswain. I was very glad to see jny Nephew, I must confess ; for I was not without Apprehensions, that they would confine him by Violence, set Sail, and run away with the Ship, and then I had been stripp'd naked in a remote Country, and nothing to help myself: In short, I had been in a worse Case, than when I was all alone in the Island. But they had not come that length, it seems, to my great Satisfaflion ; and when my Nephew told me what they had said to him, and how they had sworn, and shook Hands, that they would one and aU leave the Ship, if I was suffer'd to come on Board, I told him, he should not be concern'd at it at all, for I would stay on Shore. I only desir'd he would take Care and send me all my necessary Things on Shore, and leave me a suffi- cient Sum of Money, and I would find my Way to £n£;- laHd, as well as I could. This was a heavy Piece of News to my Nephew ; but there was no Way to help it, but to comply with it: So, in short, he went on Board the Ship again, and satisfy^d the Men, that his Uncle had yielded to their Importu- nity, and had sent for his Goods from on Board the Ship ; so that Matter was over in a very few Hours, the Men return'd to their Duty, and I began to consider what Course I should steer. I was now alone in the remotest Part of the World, as I think I may call itj for I was near three thousand Leagues by Sea farther off from England, than I was at my Island ; only it is true, I might travel here by Land over the Great Mogul's Country to Surratte, might go from thence to Basora by Sea, up the Gulph of Persia, and from thence might take the Way of the Caravans over the Desart of Arabia to Aleppo and Scanderoonj from thence by Sea again to Italy, and so over Land into France, and this put together might be, at least, a So8 ADVENTURES OF full Diameter of the Globe ; but if it were to be measur'd, I suppose it would appear to be a great deal more. I had another Way before me, which was to wait for some English Ships, which were coming to Bengale from Achin on the Island of Sumatra, and get Passage oa Board them for England: But as I came hither without any Concern with the English East-India Company, so it would be difficult to go from hence without their Li- cence, unless with great Favour of the Captains of the Ships, or of the Company's Faflors, and to both I was an utter Stranger. ,. Here I had the particular Pleasure, speakii^ by Con- traries, to see the Ship sail without me, a Treatment I think a Man in my Circumstances scarce ever met with, except from Pirates running away with a Ship, and setting those that would not agree with their Villainy, on Shore. Indeed this was next Door to it, both Ways. However, my Nephew Igft me two Servants, or rather one Com- panion, and one Servant; the first was Clerk to the Purser, whom he engag'd to go with me, and the other was his own Servant. 1 took me also a good Lodging in the House of an English Woman, where several Mer- chants lodg'd ; some French, two Italians, or rather Jews, and one English Man : Here I was handsomely enough entertain'd; and that I might not be said to run rashly upon any Thing, 1 stay'd here above nine Months, con- sidering what Course to take, and how to manage myself. I had some English Goods with me of Value, and a con- siderable Sum of Money, my Nephew furnishing me with a thousand Pieces of Eight, and a Letter of Credit for more, if I had Occasion, that I might not be straiten'd whatever might happen. I quickly dispos'd of my Goods, and to Advantage too ; and, as I originally intended, I bought here some very good Diamonds, which, of all other Things, was the most proper for me in my present Circumstances, because I might always carry my whole Estate about me. After a long Stay here, and many Proposals made for ROBINSON CRUSOE. 509 my Return to England, but none falling out to my Mind, the English Merchant who lodged with me, and witii whom I had contradled an intimate Acquaintance, came to me one Morning: Country-man, says he, I have aPro- jedl to communicate to you, which, as it suits with my Thoughts, may, for ought I know, suit with yours also, when you shall have throughly consider'd it. Here we are posted, says he, you by Accident, and I by my own Choice, in a Part of the World very remote from our own Country ; but it is in a Country, where, by us who understand Trade and Business, a great deal of Money is to be got : If you will put a thousand Pound to my thousand Pound, we will hire a Ship here, the first we can get to our Minds ; you shall be Captain, I'll be Mer- chant, and we will go a Trading Voyage to China; for what should we stand still for? The whole World is in Motion, rouling round and round ; all the Creatures of God, heavenly Bodies and earthly are busy and diligent, Why should we be idle? There are no Drones in the World but Men, Why should we be of that Number? I lik'd his Proposal veiy well, and the more, because it seem'd to be express'd with so much good Will, and in so friendly a Manner: I will not say, but that I might by my loose and unhing'd Circumstances be the fitter to em- brace a Proposal for Trade, or indeed for any Thing else; whereas, otherwise. Trade was none of my Element: However, I might perhaps say with some Truth, that if Trade was not my Element, Rambling was, and no Pro- posal for seeing any Part of the World which I never had seen before, could possibly come amiss to me, It was however, some Time before we could get a Ship to our Minds ; and when we had got a Vessel, it was not easy to get English Sailors ; that is to say, so many as were necessary to govern the Voyage, and manage the Sailors which we should pick up there. After some Time we got a Mate, a Boatswain, and a Gunner English; a Dutch Carpenter, and three Portuguese Fore- 5IO ADVENTURES OF mast Men ; with these we found we could do well enough, having Indian Sea-men, such as they are, to make up. There are many Travellers, who have wrote the History of their Voyages and Travels this Way, that it would be very little Diversion to any Body, to give a long Account of the Places we went to, and the People who inhabit there ; those Things I leave to others, and refer the Reader to those Journals and Travels of English Men, of which, many I find are publish'd, and more pro- mis'd every Day; 'tis enough to me to tell you, That I made this Voyage to Achin, in the Island oi Sumatra, and from thence to Siam, where we exchang'd some of our Wares for Opium, and some Arrack, the first, a Commo- dity which bears a great Price among the Chinese, and which at that Time, was very much wanted there. In a Word, we went up to Suskan, made a very great Voyage, were eight Months out, and return'd to Bengale, and I was very well satisfy'd with my Adventure. I observe, that our People in England, often admire how the Offi- cers which the Company send into India, and the Mer- chants which generally stay there, get such very great Estates as they do, and sometimes come Home worth 60, to 70 100 thousand Pound at a Time. But it is no Wonder, or at least we shall see so much farther into it, when we consider the innumerable Ports and Places where they have a free Commerce; that it will then be no Wonder; and much less will it be so, when we consider, at all those Places and Ports where the English Ships come, there is so much, and such con- stant Demand for the Growth of all other Countries, that there is a certain Vent for the Returns, as well as a Mar- ket abroad, for the Goods carried out. In short, we made a very good Voyage, and I got so much Money by the first Adventure, and such an Insight into the Method of getting more, that had I been twenty Years younger, I should have been tempted to have staid here, and sought no farther, for making my Fortune ; but what was all this, to a Man on the wrong Side of three^ ROBINSON CRUSOE. 511 score, that was rich enough, and came abroad, more in Obedience to a restless Desire of seeing the World, than a covetous Desire of getting in it ; and indeed I think, 'tis with great Justice, that I now call it a restless Desire, for it was so. When I was at Home, I was restless to go abroad ; and now I was abroad, I was restless to be at Home; I say, what Gain was this to me? I was rich enough, nor had I any uneasie Desires about getting more Money ; and therefore the Profits of the Voyage to me, were Things of no great Force, for the prompting me forward to farther Undertakings ; and I thought that by this Voyage, I had made no Progress at all, because I was come back, as I might call it, to the Place from whence I came, as to a Home ; whereas, my Eye, which like that, which Solomon speaks of, was never satisfied •with Seeing, was still more desirous of Wandring and Seeing. I was come into a Part of the World, which I was never in before ; and that Part in particular, which I had heard much of, and was resolv'd to see as much of as I could, and then I thought, 1 might say, I had seen all the World, that was worth seeing. But my Fellow-Traveller and I had different Notions ; I do not name this, to insist upon my own ; for I acknow- ledge his were the most just, and the most suited to the End of a Merchant's Life ; who, when he is abroad upon Adventures, 'tis his Wisdom to stick to that as the best Thing for him, which he is like to get the most Money by. My new Friend kept himself to the Nature of the Thing, and would have been content to have gone like a Carrier's Horse, always to the same Inn, backward and forward, provided he could, as he call'd it, find his Ac- count in it: On the other hand, mine was the Notion of a mad rambling Boy, that never cares to see a Thing twice over. But this was not all: I had a Kind of Impatience upon me to be nearer Home, and yet, the most unsettled Resolution imaginable which Way to go. In the Interval of these Consultations, my Friend, who was always upon 512 ADVENTURES OF the Search for Business, propos'd another Voyage to me ?,mong the Spice Islands, and to bring Home a Loading of Cloves from the Manillas, or thereabouts; Places where indeed the Dutch do trade, but Islands, belonging partly to the Spaniards; tho' we went not so far, but to some other, where they have not the whole Power, as they have at Batavia, Ceylon, &'c. We were not long in pre- paring for this Voyage ; the chief Difficulty was in bring- ing me to come into it : However, nothing else offering, and finding that really Stirring about, and Trading, the Profit being so great, and, as I may say, certain, had more Pleasure in it, and more Satisfa<5lion to the Mind, than sitting still, which to me especially was the unhap- piest Part of Life ; I resolved on this Voyage too, which we made very successfully, touching at Borneo, and seve- ral Islands, whose Names I do not remember, aaid came Home in about five Months. We sold our Spice, which was chiefly Cloves, and some Nutmegs, to the Persian Merchants, who carry'd them away for the Gulph; and making near five of one, we really got a great deal of Money. My Friend, when we made up this Account, smil'd at me : Well now, said he, with a Sort of agreeable Insult upon my indolent Temper; Is not this better than walking about here, like a Man of nothing to do, and spending our Time in staring at the Nonsense and Ignorance of the Pagans ? Why truly, says I, my Friend, I think it is, and I begin to be a Convert to the Principles of Mer- chandizing: But I must tell you, said I, by the Way, you do not know what I am a doing ; for if once I con- quer my Backwardness, and embark heartily, as old as I am, I shall harrass you up and down the World, till I tire you ; for I shall pursue it so eagerly, I shaU never let you lye still. But to be short with my Speculations, a little while after this, there came in a Dutch Ship from Bataviaj she was a Coaster, not an European Trader, and of about two hundred Ton Burthen ; The Men, as they pretended, nOBINSON CRUSOE. 513 -having been so sickly, that the Captain had not Men enough to go to Sea with. He lay by at Bengal, and having it seems got Money enough, or being willing for other Reasons, to go for Europe, he gave publick Notice, that he would sell his Ship : This came to my Ears be- fore my new Partner heard of it ; and I had a great Mind to buy it, so I goes Home to him, and told him of it. He considered a while, for he was no rash Man neither; but musing some Time, he reply' d. She is a little too big; but . however, we will have her : Accordingly we bought the Ship, and agreeing with the Master, we paid for her, and took Possession ; when we had done so, we resolved to entertain the Men, if we could, to join them with those we had, for the pursuing our Business ; but on a sudden, they having receiv'd not their Wages, but their Share of the Money, not one of them was to be found. We en- quir'd much about them, and at length were told, that they were all gone together by Land to Agra, the great City of the MoguFs Residence ; and from thence were to travel to Suratte, and so by Sea, to the Gulph of Persia. Nothing had so heartily troubled me a good while, as that I miss'd the Opportunity of going with them ; for such a Ramble I thought, and in such Company, as would both have guarded me, and diverted me, would have suited mightily with my great Design ; and I should both have seen the World, and gone homewards too ; but I was much better satisfied a few Days after, when I came to know what Sort of Fellows they were; for in short, their History was, that this Man they call'd Captain, was the Gunner only, not the Commander; that they had been a trading Voyage, in which they were attack'd on Shore by some of the Mallayans, who had kill'd the Captain, and three of his Men; and that after the Cap- ■ tain was kill'd, these Men, eleven in Number, had re- solved to run away with the Ship, which they did; and brought her in at the Bay of Bengale, leaving the Mate- and five Men more on Shore, of whom we shall hear fur-- then- 514 ADVENTURES OF Well, let them come by the Ship how they would, we came honestly by her, as we thotight, tho' we did not, I confess, examine into Things so exadlly as we ought, for we never enquired any Thing of the Seamen; who, if we had examin'd, would certainly have faulteir'd in their Account, contradifled one another, and perhaps contra- difled themselves, or one how or other, we should have seen Reason to have suspefled them. But the Man shew'd us a Bill of Sale for the Ship, to one Emanuel Clostershoven, or some such Name ; for I suppose it was all a Forgery, and call'd himself by that Name, and we could not contradifl him ; and being withal a little too unwary, or at least, having no Suspicion of the Thing, we went thro' with our Bargain. We pick'd up some more English Seamen here after this, and some Dutch; and now we resolved for a second Voyage, to the South East for Cloves, S^c. that is to say, among the Philippine and Mollucco Isles : And in short, not to fill this Part of my Story with Trifles, when what is yet to come, is so remarkable ; I spent from first to last six Years in this Country, trading from Port to Port, backward and forward, and with very good Success ; and was now the last Year with my new Partner, going in the Ship above-mention' d, on a Voyage to Chinaj but de- signing first to Siam, to buy Rice., In this Voyage, being by contrary Winds oblig'd to beat up and down a great while in the Straits of Mal- lacca, and among the Islands; we were no sooner got clear of those difficult Seas, but we found our Ship had sprung a Leak, and we were not able by all our Industry to find it out where it was : This forc'd us to make for some Port, and my Partner, who knew the Country better than I did, diredled the Captain to put into the River of Cambodia, for I had made the English Mate, one Mr. Thompson, Captain, not being willing to take the Charge of two Ships upon my self. This River lyes on the North Side of the great Bay or.Gulph, which goes up to Siam. While we were here, and going often on Shore for ROBINSON CRUSOE. SIS Refreshment, there comes to me one Day an English Man, and he was, it seems, a Gunner's Mate, on board an English East-India Ship, which rode in the same River, up at, or near the City of Cambodia j what brought him hitlier, we know not: But he comes up to me, and speaking in English, Sir, says he, you are a Stranger to me, and I to you ; but I have something to tell you, that very nearly concerns you. I looked steadily at him a good while, and thought at first I had known him, but I did not. If it very nearly concerns me, said I, and not your self, what moves you to tell it me.'' I am moved, says he, by the imminent Dan- ger you are in, and for ought I see, you have no Know- ledge of it. I know no Danger I am in, said I, but that my Ship is leaky, and I cannot find it out ; but I purpose to lay her a-Ground to Morrow, to see if I can find it. But Sir, says he, leaky, or not leaky, find it, or not find it, you will be wiser than to lay your Ship on Shore to Mor- row, when you hear what I have to say to you. Do you know Sir, said he, the Town of Cambodia lyes about fifteen Leagues up this River? And there are two large English Ships about five Leagues on this Side, and three Dutch. Well, said I, and what is that to me? Why, Sir, said he, is it for a Man that is upon such Adventures as you are upon, to come into a Port, and not examine first what Ships there are there, and whether he is able to deal with them? I suppose you do not think you are a Match for them. I was amused very much at his Discourse, but not amazed at it, for I could not conceive what he meant. I turn'd short upon him, and said. Sir, I wish you would explain your self. I cannot imagine what Reason I have to be afraid of any Company of Ships, or Dutch Ships, I am no Interloper, what can they have to say to me? He looked like a Man half angry, half pleas'd, and pausing a while, but smiling. Well, Sir, said he, if you think your self secure, you must take your Chance. I am sorry your Fate should blind you against good Advice : But assure your self, if you do not put to Sea immediately, 33^2 Si6 ADVENTURES OF you will the very next Tide be attack'd by five Long-Boats full of Men, and perhaps if you are taken, you'll be hang'd for a Pirate, and the Particulars be examined afterwards. I thought Sir, added he, I should have met with a better Reception than this, for doing you a Piece of Service of such Importance. I can never be ungrateful, said. I, for any Service, or to any Man that offers me any Kindness ; but it is past my Comprehension said I, what they should have such a Design upon me for. However, since you say, there is no Time to be lost, and that there is some villainous Design in Hand against me, PU go on board this Minute, and put to Sea immediately, if my Men can stop the Leak, or if we can swim' without stopping it. But Sir, said I, shall I go away ignorant of the Reason of all this? Can you give me no farther Light into it? I can tell you but Part of the Story, Sir, says he, but I have a Dutch Seaman here with me, and I believe I could perswade him to tell you the rest; but there is scarce Time for it. But the Short of the Story is this, the first Part of which, I suppose, you know well enough, (z/z>.) That you was with this Ship at Sumatra, that there your Captain was murdered by the Mallayans, with three of his Men, and that you or some of those who were on board with you ran away with the Ship, and are since turn'd Pirates. This is the Sum of the Story, and you will be "all seiz'd as Pirates I can assure you, and ex- ecuted, with very little Ceremony; for you know, Mer- chants Ships shew but little Law to Pirates, if they get 'em into their Power. Now you speak plain English, said I, and I thank you; and tho' I know nothing that we have done, like what you talk of, but am sure we came honestly and fairly by the Ship; yet seeing such Work is a-doing as you say, and that you seem to mean honestly, Pll be upon my Guard. Nay, Sir, says he, do not talk of being upon your Guard ; the best Defence is, to be out of the Danger ; if you have any Regard to your Life, and the Lives of all your Men, put out to Sea without fail at High-Water; and as ROBINSON CRUSOE. 517 you have a whole Tide before you, you vi'ill be gone too far out before they can come down, for they come away at High- Water ; and as they have twenty Miles to come, you get near two Hours of them, by the Difference of the Tide, not reckoning the Length of the Way. Besides, as they are only Boats, and not Ships, they will not venture to follow you far out to Sea, especially if it blows. Well, says I, you have been very kind in this, what shall I do for you, to make you Amends? Sir, says he, you may not be so willing to make me any Amends, because you may not be convinced of the Truth of it. I'll make an Offer to you. I have nineteen Months Pay due to me on board the Ship which I came out oi England '\a., and the Dutch Man that is with me, has seven Months Pay due to him ; if you will make good our Pay to us, we will go along with you ; and if you find no more in it, we will desire no more ; But if we do convince you, that we have saved your Lives, and the Ship, and the Lives of all the Men in her, we will leave the rest to you. I consented to this readily, and went immediately on board, and the two Men with me. As soon as I came to the Ship Side, my Partner, who was on Board, came out on the Quarter-Deck, and called to me with a great deal of Joy, O ho? O ho! we have stopped the Leak! we have stopped the Leak ! Say you so, said I, thank God; but weigh the Anchor immediately. Weigh! says he, what do you mean by that? What is the Matter, says he? Ask no Questions, says I, but all Hands to work, and weigh, without losing a Minute. He was surprized; but however, he called the Captain, and he immediately ordered the Anchor to be got up: And tho' the Tide was not quite done, yet a little Land Breeze blowing, we stood out to Sea. Then I called him into the Cabin, and told him the Story at large ; and we called in the Men, and they told us the rest of it. But as it took us up a great deal of Time, so before we had done, a Seaman comes to the Cabin Door, and calls out to us, that the Captain bad him tell us, we were chas'd. Chas'd, Si8 ADVENTURES OF said I, by whom, and by what? By five Sloops or Boats, says the Fellow, full of Men. Very well, said I, then it is apparent there is something in it. In the next Place I ordered all our Men to be called up, and told them, that there was a Design to Seize the Ship, and to take us for Pirates ; and asked them. If they would stand by us, and by one another? the Men answered chearfuUy, that one and all, they would live and die with us : Then I asked the Captain, what Way he thought best for us to manage the Fight with them ; for resist them I was resolved we would, and that, to the last Drop ; he said readily, That the Way was to keep them off with our great Shot, as long as we could, and then to fire at them with our small Arms as long as we could; but when neither of these would do any longer, we should retire to our close Quar- ters ; perhaps they had not Materials to break open our Bulk-Heads, or get in upon us. The Gunner had, in the mean Time, Order to bring two Guns to bear fore and aft out of the Steerage, to clear the Deck, and load them with Musquet- Bullets and small Pieces of old Iron, and what next came to Hand, and thus we made ready for Fight ; but all this while we kept out to Sea, with Wind enough, and could see the Boats at a Distance, being five large Long-Boats, following us with all the sail they could make. Two of those Boats, Which by our Glasses we could see were English, out-saildd the rest and were near two Leagues a-Head of them, and gain'd upon us consider- ably; so that we found they would come up with us: Upon which, we fired a Gun without Ball, to intimate, that they should bring to, and we put out a Flag of Truce, as a Signal for Parley, but they kept crowding after us, till they came within Shot, when we took in our White Flag, they having made no Answer to it, hung out a red Flag, and fired at them with a Shot. Notwithstand- ing this, they came on, till they were near enough to call to them with a speaking Trumpet, which we had on Board ; so we call'd to them, and bid them keep off at their Peril. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 519 It was all one, they crowded after us, and endeavoured to come under our Stern, so to board us on our Quarter ; upon which, seeing they were resolute for Mischief, and depended upon the Strength that followed them, I ordered to bring the Ship to, so that they lay upon our Broad- side, when immediately we fir'd five Guns at them; one of which, had been levelled so true, as to carry away the Stern of the Undermost Boat, and bring them to the Necessity of taking down their Sail, and running all to the Head of the Boat to keep her from sinking ; so she lay by, and had enough of it; but seeing the foremost Boat crowd on after us, we made ready to fire at her in particular. While this was doing, one of the three Boats that was behind, being forwarder than the other two, made up to the Boat which we had disabled, to relieve her, and we could afterwards see her take out the Men ; we call'd again to the foremost Boat, and offer'd a Truce to parley again, and to know what was her Business with us ; but had no Answer, only she crowded close under our Stern. Upon this our Gunner, who was a very dexterous Fellow, run out his two Chase-Guns, and fired again at her; but the Shot missing, the Men in the Boat shouted, wav'd their Caps, and came on : But the Gunner getting quickly ready again, fir'd among them the second Time ; one Shot of which, tho' it miss'd the Boat it self, yet fell in among the Men, and we could easily see, had done a great deal of Mischief among them ; but we taking no Notice of that, war'd the Ship again, and brought our Quarter to bear upon them, and firing three Guns more, we found the Boat was spUt almost to Pieces ; in parti- cular, her Rudder, and a Piece of her Stern was shot quite away, so they handed their Sail immediately, and were in great Disorder: But to compleat their Misfor- tune, our Gunner let fly two Guns at them again ; where he hit them we could not tell, but we found the Boat was sinking, and some of the Men already in the Water. Upon this, I immediately Mann'd out our Pinnace, which 520 ADVENTURES OF we had kept close by our Side, with Orders to pick up some of the Men if they could, and save them from drowning, and immediately to come on board with them ; because we saw the rest of the Boats began to come up. Our Men in the Pinnace followed their Orders, and took up three Men ; one of which was just drowning, and it was a good while before we could recover him. As soon as they were on Board, we crowded all the Sail we could make, and stood farther out to Sea, and we found that when the other three Boats came up to the first two, they gave over their Chase. Being thus deliver'd from a Danger, which tho' I knew not the Reason of it, yet seem'd to be much greater than I apprehended ; I took Care that we would change our Course, and not let any one imagine whither we were going; so we stood out to Sea Eastward, quite out of the Course of all European Ships, whether they were bound to China, or any where else, witffih the Commerce of the Etiropean Nations. When we were now at Sea, we began to consult with the two Seamen, and enquire first what the Meaning of all this should be, and the Dutch Man let us into the Secret of it at once ; telling us, that the Fellow that sold us the Ship, as we said, was no more than a Thief, that had run away with her : Then he told us, how the Cap- tain, whose Name too he told us, tho' I do not remember, was treacherously murdered by the Natives on the Coast of Mallacca, with three of his Men ; and that he, this Dutch Man, and four more, got into the Woods, where they wandered about a great while ; till at length, he in particular, in a miraculous Manner made his Escape, and swam off to a Dtttch Ship, which sailing near the Shore, in its way from China, had sent their Boat on Shore for freshwater; that he durstnot cometothat Part of the Shore where the Boat was, but made shift in the Night, to take the Water farther off, ^nd the Ship's Boat took him up. He then told us, that he went to Batavia, where two cf the Sea-men belonging to the Ship arriv'd, having de- ROBINSON CRUSOE. S2I serted the rest in their Travels, and gave an Account, that the Fellow who had run away with the Ship, sold her at Bengals, to a Set of Pirates, which were gone a Cruising in her; and that they had already taken an English Ship, and two Dutch Ships verj' richly laden. This latter Part we found to concern us direiflly, and tho' we knew it to be false ; yet as my Partner said very well, if we had' fallen into their Hands, and they had had such a Prepossession against us before-hand, it had been in vain for us to have defended our selves, or to hope for any good Quarter at their Hands ; and especially consi- dering that our Accusers had been our Judges, and that we could have expedled nothing from them, but what Rage would have diflated, and an ungoverned Passion have executed: And therefore it was his Opinion, we should go diredlly back to Bengals, from whence we came, without putting in at any Port whatever ; because there, we could give a good All^punt of our selves, could prove where we were when the Ship put in, whom we bought her of, and the like; and which was more than all the rest, if we were put to the Necessity of bringing it before the proper Judges, we should be sure to have some Jus- tice, and not be hang'd first, and judg'd afterwards. I was sometime of my Partner's Opinion; but after a little more serious thinking, I told him, I thought it was a very great Hazard for us to attempt returning to Bengals, for that we were on the wrong Side of the Straits of Malaccas and that if the Alarm was given, we should be sure to be Way-laid on every Side, as well by the Dutch oi Batavia, as the English else where; that if we should be taken, as it were running away, we should even con- demn our selves, and there would want no more Evi- dence to destroy us. I also asked the English Sailor's Opinion, who said, he was of my Mind, and that we should certainly be taken. This Danger a little startled my Partner and all the Ship's Company; and we immediately resolved to go away to the Coast of Tonguin, and so on to th.e Coast of 52 3 ADVENTURES OF China, and pursuing the first Design as to Trade, find some Way or other to dispose of the Ship, and come back in some of the Vessels of the Country, such as we could get. This was approved of as the best Method for our Security; and accordingly we steered away N.N.E. keeping above fifty Leagues off from the usual Course to the Eastward. This however put us to some Inconveniencies ; for first the Winds, when we came to the Distance from the Shore, seem'd to be more steadily against us, blowing almost Trade, as we call it, from the East, and E.N.E. so that we were a long while upon" our Voyage, and we were but ill provided with Vifluals for so long a Voyage; and which was still worse, there was some Danger that those English and Dutch Ships, whose Boats pursued us, whereof some were bound that Way, might be got in before us, and if not, some other Ship, bound to China, might have Information of us from them, and pursue us with the same Vigour. I must confess, I was now very uneasy, and thought my self, including the, late Escape from the Long- Boats, to have been in the most dangerous Condition that ever I was in thro' all my past Life ; for whatever ill Circumstances I had been in, I was never pursued for a Thief before ; nor had I ever done any Thing that merited the Name of Dishonest or Fraudulent, much less Thievish. I had chiefly been my own Enemy, or as I may rightly say, I had been no Body's Enemy but my own : But now I was embarrass'd in the worst Condition imaginable ; for tho' I was perfedlly innocent, I was in no Condition to make that Innocence appear: And if I had been taken, it had been under a supposed Guilt of the worst Kind; at least, a Crime esteemed so among the People I had to do with. This made me very anxious to make an Escape, tho', Xvhich Way to do it, I knew not, or what Port or Place we should go to; My Partner seeing me thus dejedted, tho' he was the most concern'd at first, began to encourage ROBINSON CRUSOE. 523 me ; and describing to me the several Ports of that Coast, . told me he would put in on the Coast of Cochinchina, or the Bay of Tonquin, intending to go afterwards to Macao, a Town once in the Possession of the Portuguese, and where still a great many European Families resided, and particularly the Missionary Priests usually went thither, in Order to their going forward to China. Hither then we resolv'd to go ; and accordingly, tho' after a tedious and irregular Course, and very much straitned for Provisions, we came within Sight of the Coast very early in the Morning; and upon Refledtion upon the past Circumstances we were in, and the Danger if we had not escaped, we resolv'd to put into a small River, which however had a Depth enough of Water for us, and to see if we could, either over Land, or by the Ship's Pinnace, come to know what Ships were in any Port thereabouts. This happy Step, was indeed our De- liverance ; for tho' we did not immediately see any Euro- pean Ships in the Bay of Tonquin, yet the next Morning there came into the Bay two Dutch Ships, and a third without any Colours spread out, but which we believ'd to be a. Dutch Man, pass'd by at about two Leagues Dis- tance, steering for the Coast of China; and in the After- noon went by two English Ships steering the same Course; and thus, we thought, we saw our selves beset with Enemies, both one Way or other. The Place we were in was wild and barbarous, the People Thieves, even by Occupation or Profession ; and tho' it is true we had not much to seek of them, and except getting a few Provisions, car'd not how little we had to do with them, yet it was with much Difficulty that we kept our selves from being insulted by them several Ways. We were in a small River of this Country, within a few Leagues of its utmost Limits Northward; and by our Boat we coasted North-East to the Point of Land, which opens the great Bay of Tonquin j and it was in this beating up along the Shore, that we discover'd, as above, that in a Word, we were surrounded with Enemies. 524 .' ADVENTURES OF The People we were among, were the most barbarous of all the Inhabitants of the Coast ; having no Correspond- ence with any other Nation, and dealing only in Fish, and Oil, and such Gross Commodities ; and it may be particularly seen, that they are, as I said, the most, bar- barous of any of the Inhabitants, (z'z'2.)that among other Customs they have this as one, {yiz^ That if any Vessel have the Misfortune to be shipwreck'd upon the Coast, they presently make the Men all Prisoners or Slaves ; and it was not long before we found a Spice of their Kindness this Way, on the Occasion following. I have observed above, that our Ship sprung a Leak at Sea, and that we could not find it out ; and however it happen'd, that, as I have said, it was stopp'd unex- pefledly in the happy Minute of our being to be seiz'd by the Dutch and English Ships in the Bay of Siam ; yet as we did not find the Ship so perfedlly fit and sound as we desir'd, we resolved, while we were in this Place, to lay her on Shore, take out what heavy Things we had on Board, which were not many, and to wash and clean her Bottom, and, if possible, to find out where the Leaks were. Accordingly, having lighten'd the Ship, and brought all our Guns and other moveable Things to one Side, we try'd to bring her down, that we might come at her Bot- tom ; but on second Thoughts we did not care to lay her dry on Ground, neither could we find ouf a proper Place for it. The Inhabitants who had never been acquainted with such a Sight, came wondering down to the Shore, to look at us ; and seeing the Ship lye down on one Side in such a Manner, and heeling in towards the Shore, and not seeing our Men who were at Work on her Bottom, with Stages, and with their Boats on the Off-side, they pre- sently concluded, that the Ship was cast away, and so lay fast on the Ground. On this Supposition they came all about us in two or three Hours time, with ten or twelve large Boats, having ROBINSON CRUSOE. .525 some of them eight, some ten Men in .a Boat, intending, no doubt, to have come on Board, and plundered the Ship ; and if they had found us there, to have carry'd us away for Slaves to their King, or whatever they call him ; for we knew nothing who was their Governour. When they came up to the Ship, and began to row round her, they discover'd us all hard at Work on the Out-side of the Ship's Bottom and Side, washing, and graving, and stooping as every Sea-faring Man knows how. They stood for a while gazing at us, and we, who were a little surpriz'd, could not imagine what their De- sign was; but, being willing to he sure, we took this Opportunity to get some of us into the Ship, and others to hand down Arms and Ammunition to those that were at Work to defend themselves with, if there should be Occasion; and it was no more than Need; for in less than a quarter of an Hour's Consultation, they agreed, it seems,. that the Ship was really a Wreck, that we were all at Work endeavouring to save her, or to save our Lives by the Help of our Boats; and when we handed our Arms into the Boats, they concluded, by that Motion, that we were endeavouring to save some of our Goods. Upon this they took it for granted we all belong'd to them ; and away they came down upon, our Men, as if it had been in a Line of Battle. Our Men, seeing so many of them, began to be frighted; for we lay but in an ill Posture to fight, and cry'd out to us to know what they should do : I immedi- ately call'd to the Men who work'd upon the Stage, to slip them down, and get up the Side into the Ship ; and bad those in the Boat to row round and come on board : And those few of us, who were on board, worked with all the Strength and Hands we had, to bring the Ship to Rights. But however, neither the Men upon the Stage, or those in the Boats, could do as they were ordered, be- fore the Cochinckineses were upon them, and two of their Boats boarded our Long-Boat, and began to lay hold of the Men as their Prisoners. 526 ADVENTURES OF The first Man they laid hold of was an English Sea- man ; a stout strong Fellow, who having a Musket in his Hand, never offered to fire it, but laid it down in the Boat, like a Fool, as I thought. But he understood his Business better than I could teach him ; for he grappled the Pagan, and dragged him by main Force, out of their own Boat into ours ; where taking him by the two Ears, he beat his Head so against the Boat's Gunnel, that the Fellow died instantly in his Hands; and in the mean time, a Dutch Man, who stood next, took up the Musket, and with the But-end of it, so laid about him, that he knock'd down five of them, who attempted to enter the Boat. But this was doing little towards resisting thirty or forty Men, who fearless, because ignorant of their Danger, began to throw themselves into the Long-Boat, where we had but five Men, in all, to defend it. But one Accident gave our Men a complete Viftory, which de- serv'd our Laughter rather than any Thing else. And that was this. Our Carpenter being preparing to grave the Out-side of the Ship, as well as to pay the Seams, where he had caulk'd her to stop the Leakes, had got two Kettles just let down into the Boat; one fiU'd with boiling Pitch, and the other with Rosin, Tallow, and Oil, and such Stuff, as the Ship- Wrights use for that Work. And the Man that attended the Carpenter, had a great Iron Ladle in his Hand, with which he supplied the Men that were at Work, with that hot Stuff. Two of the Enemy's Men entred the Boat just where this Fellow stood, being in the Fore-sheets; he immediately saluted them with a Ladle full of the Stuff, boiling hot, which so burnt and scalded them, being half naked, that they roared out hke two Bulls, and enraged with the Fire, leap'd both into the Sea. The Carpenter saw it, and cried out, Well done. Jack, give them some more of it : And stepping forward himself, takes one of their Mops, and dipping it in the Pitch-Pot, he and his Man threw it among them so plen- tifully, that in short, of all the Men in the three Boats, ■ ROBINSON CRUSOE. 527 there was not one that was not scalded, and burnt with it in a most frightful and pitiful Manner, and made such a howling and crying, that I never heard a worse Noise, and indeed nothing like it; for it is worth observing. That though Pain naturally makes all People cry out; yet every Nation has a particular Way of Exclamation, and making Noises as different from one another, as their Speech. I cannot give the Noise these Creatures made, a better Name than Howling, nor a Name more proper to the Tone of it ; for I never heard any Thing more like the Noise of the Wolves, which as I have said, I heard howl in the Forest on the Frontiers of Lan- guedoc. I was never pleas'd with a Viflory better in my Life ; not only as it was a perfefl Surprize to me, and that our Danger was imminent before ; but as we got this Vidtory without any Blood shed, except of that Man, the Fellow killed with his naked Hands, and which I was very much concerned at ; for I was sick of killing such poor savage Wretches, even tho' it was in my own Defence, knowing they came on Errands which they thought just, and knew no better. And that tho' it may be a just Thing, because necessary, for there is no necessary Wickedness in Na- ture, yet I thought it was a sad Life, in which we must be always obliged to be killing bur Fellow-Creatures to preserve our own; and .indeed I think so still; and I would even now suffer a great deal, rather than I would take away the Life, even of the Person injuring me. And I believe, all considering People, who know the Value of Life, would be of my Opinion ; at least, they would, if they entred seriously into the Consideration of it. But to return to my Story. All the while this was doing, my Partner and I, who managed the rest of the Men on board, had with great Dexterity brought the Ship almost to Rights ; and having gotten the Guns into their Places again, the Gunner caU'd to me, to bid our Boat get out of the Way, for he would let fly among them. I called back again to him, and bid him not offer 528 . ADVENTURES OF to fire, for the Carpenter would do the Work without him, but bad him heat another Pitch-Kettle, which our Cook, who was on Board, took Care of. But the Enemy- were so terrified with what they had met with in their first Attack, that they would not come on again. And some of them that were farthest off, seeing the Ship swim, as it were upright, begun, as we supposed, to see their Mistake, and give over the Enterprize, finding it was not as they expecfled. Thus we got clear of this merry Fight ; and having gotten some Rice, and some Roots, and Bread, with about sixteen good big Hogs on Board, two Days before, we resolv'd to stay here no longer, but go forward whatever came of it; for we made no Doubt but we should be surrounded the next Day with Rogues enough, perhaps more than our Pitch-Kettle would dis- pose of for us. We therefore got all our Things on Board the same Evening, and the next Morning were ready to sail. In the mean time, lying at an Anchor at some Distance, we were not so much concern'd, being now in a fighting Pos- ture, as well as in a sailing Posture, if any Enemy had presented. The next Day having finish'd our Work with- in Board, and finding our Ship was perfedlly heal'd of all her Leaks, we set Sail We would have gone into the Bay of Tonquinj for wfe wanted to inform our selves of what was to be known concerning the Dutch Ships that had been there ; but we durst not stand in there, because we had seen several Ships go in, as we suppos'd, but a little before; so we kept on N. E. towards the Isle of Formosa, as much afraid of being seen by a Dutch or English Merchant Ship, as 3. Dutch or English Merchant Ship in the Mediterranean is of an Algerine Man of War. When we were thus got to Sea, we kept out N. E. as if we would go to the Manillas or the Philipine Islands; and this we did, that we might not fall into the Way .of any of our European Ships ; and then we steer'd North ftill we came to the Latitude of 22 Degrees, 30 Min. by ROBINSON CRUSOE. 529 fhich Means we made the Island of ForntasO, direflly, rhere we came to an Anchor, in order to get Water and resh Provisions, which the People there, who are very ourteous and civil in their Manners, supply'd us with rillingly, and dealt very fairly and punftually with us in 11 their Agreements and Bargains ; which is what we did ot find among other People ; and may be owing to the lemains of Christianity, which was once planted here by Dutch Missionary of Protestants, and is a Testimony of 'hat I have often obserVd, viz. That the Christian Re- gion always civilizes the People, and reforms their Man- ers, where it is receiv'd, whether it works saving Effedls pon them or no. From hence we sail'd still North, keeping the Coast of 'hina at an equal Distance, till we knew we were beyond 11 the Ports of China, where our European Ships usually ame ; being resolv'd, if possible, not to fall into any of leir Hands, especially in this Country, where, as our ircumstances were, we could not fail of being entirely lin'd ; nay, so great was my Fear in particular, as to my eing taken by them, that I believe firmly, I would much ither have chosen to fall into the Hands of the Spanish .) to have Rest and Plenty, should be a Voluntier in new Sorrows, by my own vnhappy Choice; and that I, who escaped so "many Dangers in my ROBINSON CRUSOE. 539 Youth, should now come to be hang'd in my old Age, and in so remote a Place, for a Crime I was not in the least inclin'd to, much less really guilty of; and in a Place and Circumstance, where Innocence was not like to be any Proteflion at all to me* After these Thoughts, something of Religion would come in; and I would be considering, that this seem'd to me to be a Disposition of immediate Providence, and ' I ought to look upon it, and submit to it as such; that although I was innocent as to Men, I was far from being innocent as to my Maker; and I ought to look in and examine, what othef Crimes in my Life, were more ob- vious to me ; and for which, Providence might justly in- fli such as in England might sell for about 30 or 40 Shil- lings; and he had two Slaves followed him on Foot, to drive the poor Creature along. He had a Whip in his Hand, and he belaboured the Beast as fast about the Head, as his Slaves did about the Tail; and thus he rode by us with about ten or twelve Servants; and we were told he was going from the City to his Country Seat, about Half a League before us. We travelled on gently, but this Figure of a Gentleman rode away before us, and we stopp'd at a Village about an Hour to refresh us. When we came by the Country Seat of this great Man, we saw him in a little Place, before his Door, eating his Repast. It was a Kind of a Garden, but he was easy to be seen, and we were given to understand that the more we look'd on him, the better he would be pleased. He sat under a Tree, something like the Palmetto Tree, which effedlually shaded him over the Head, and on the South-side, but under the Tree also, was placed a large Umbrello, which made that Part look well enough. He sat lolling back in a great Elbow-Chair, being a heavy corpulent Man, and his Meat being brought him by two Women Slaves : He had two more, whose Office, I think, few Gentlemen in Europe would accept of their Service in, {viz.) One fed the Squire with a Spoon, and the other held the Dish with one Hand, and scraped off what he let fall upon his Worship's Beard and Taffaty Vest, while the great fat Brute thought it below him to employ his own Hands in any of those familiar Offices, which Kings ROStNSON CRUSOE. 553 and Monarchs would rather do, than be troubled with the clumsy Fingers of their Servants. I took this Time to think what Pains Mens Pride puts them to; and how troublesome a haughty Temper, thus ill-manag'd, must be to a Man of common Sense ; and leaving the poor Wretch to please himself with our look- ing at him, as if we admired his Pomp, whereas we really pitied and contemned him, we pursu'd our Journey ; only Father Simon had the Curiosity to stay to inform himself what Dainties the Country Justice had to feed on, in all his State, which he said, he had the Honour to taste of, and which was, I think, a Dose that an English Hound would scarce have eaten, if it had been offered him, (viz.) a Mess of boil'd Rice, with a great Piece of Garlick in it, and a little Bag fill'd with Green Pepper, and another Plant which they have there, something like our Ginger, but smeUing like Musk, and tasting like Mustard: All this was put together, and a small Lump or Piece of lean Mutton boil'd in it; and this was his Worship's Repast, four or five Servants more attending at a Distance. If he fed them meaner than he was fed himself, the Spice e;xcepfed, they must fare very coarsely indeed. As for our Mandarin, with whom we travell'd, he was respefted like a King ; surrounded always with his Gen- tlemen, and attended in all his Appearances with such Pomp, that I saw little of him but at a Distance, but this I observ'd, that there was not a Horse in his Retinue, but that our Carriers Pack- Horses in England seem to me to look much better; but they were so cover'd with Equi- page, Mantles, Trappings and such like Trumpery, that you cannot see whether they are fat or lean : In a Word, we could see scarce any thing but their Feet and their Heads. I was now light-hearted, and all my Trouble and Per- plexity that I have given an Account of being over, I had no anxious Thoughts about me, which made this Journey the pleasanter to me, nor had I any ill Accident attended me, only in the passing or fording a small River, my SS4 ADVENTURES OF Horse fell, and made me free of the Country, as they call it, that is to say, threw me in. The Place was not deep, but it wetted me all over ; I mention it, because it spoil'd my Pocket-Book, wherein I had set down the Names of several People and Places which I had Occasion to re- member, and which, not taking due Care of, the Leaves rotted, and the Words were never after to be read, to my great Loss, as to the Names of some Places I touch'd at in this Voyage. At length we arriv'd at Peking; I had no Body with me but the Youth, whom my Nephew, the Captain, had given me to attend me as a Servant, and who proved very trusty and diligent ; and my Partner had no Body with him but one Servant, who was a Kinsman: As for the Portuguese Pilot, he being desirous to see the Court, we gave him his Passage, that is to say, bore his Charges for his Company, and to use him as an Interpreter ; for he understood the Language of the Country, and spoke good French, and a little English : And indeed, this old Man was a most useful Implement to us every where; for we had not been above a Week at Peking, when he came laughing. Ah, Seignior Inglese, says he, / have something to tell you will make your Heart glad. My Heart glad, says I, What can that be ? I donH kno-m anything in this Country can either give tne Joy or Grief to any great Degree. Yes, yds, said the old Man in broken English, mcike you glad, me sorrow j sorry he would have said. This made me more inquisitive. Why, said I, will it make you sorry? Because, said ht,you have brought m,e here 25 Days Journey, and will leave me to go back alone, and which way shall I get to my Port afterwards without a Shif), without a Horse, without Pecune? So he called Money, being his broken Latin, of which he had Abundance to make us merry with. In short, he told us there was a great Carravan of Muscovite and Polish Merchants in the City, and they were preparing to set out on their Journey by Land to Muscovy within four or five Weeks, and he was sure we ROBINSON CRUSOE. 555 would take the Opportunity to go with them, and leave him behind to go back all alone. I confess, I was sur- priz'd with his News, a secret Joy spread it self over my whole Soul, which I cannot describe, and never felt before or since, and I had no Power for a good while to speak a Word to the old Man; but at last I turn'd to him: How do you know this, said I, are you sure it is true? Yes, says he, I met this Morning in the Street an old acquaint- ance of mine, an Armenian, or one you call a Grecian, who is among them ; he came last from Astracan, and was designing to go to ToHquin where I formerly knew him, but has alter'd his Mind, and is now resolv'd to go with the Carravan to- Muscow, and so down the River Wolga to Astracan. Well, Seignior, says I, do not be uneasy about being left to go back alone ; if this be a Me- thod for my Return to England, it shall be your Fault if you go back to Macao at all. We then went to consulting together what was to be done, and I ask'd my Partner What he thought of the Pilot's News, and whether it would suit with his Affairs ? He told me he would do ■ just as I would, for he had settled all his aifairs so well at Bengal, and left his Effedls in such good Hands, that as we had made a good Voyage here, if he could vest it in China Silks, wrought and raw, such as might be worth the Carriage, he would be content to go to England^ and then make his Voyage back to Bengal, by the Com- paay's Ships. Having resolv'd upon this, we agreed, that if our Por- tugal Pilot would go with us, we would bear his Charges to Muscow or to England if he pleas'd ; nor indeed were we to be esteem'd over generous in that part neither, if we had not rewarded him farther, for the Service he had done us was really worth all that, and more ; for he had not only been a Pilot to us at Sea, but he had been like a Broker for us on Shore : and his procuring for us the yapan Merchant, was some hundred of Pounds in our Pocket : So we consulted together about it, and being willing to gratify him, which was indeed but .doing. him^ SS6 ADVENTURES OF Justice, and very willing also to have him with us besides, for he was a most necessaryMan on all Occasions, we agreed to give him a Quantity of coin'd Gold, which, as I compute it, came to about 175 Pounds Sterling between us, and to bear all his Charges, both for himself and Horse, except only a Horse to carry his Goods. Having settled this among our selves, we call'd him to let him know what we had resolv'd ; I told him, he had complain'd of our being to let him go back alone, and I was now to tell him we were resolv'd he should not go back at all : That as we had resolv'd to go to Europe with the Carravan, we resolv'd also he should go with u§, and that we call'd him, to know his Mind. He shook his Head, and said, it was a long Journey, and he said no Pecune to carry him thither, or to subsist himself when he came there. We told him, we believ'd it was so, and therefore we had resolv'd to do something, for him, that should let him see how sensible we were of the Service he had done us, and also how agreeable he was to us ; and then I told him what we had resolv'd to give him here, which he might lay out as we would do our own ; and that as for his Charges, if he would go with us, we would set him safe a-shore, (Life and Casualties excepted) either in Muscovy or England, which he would, at our own Charge, except only the Carriage of his Goods. He feceiv'd the Proposal like a Man transported, and told us he would go with us over the whole World ; and so, in short, we all prepar'd our selves for the Journey. However, as it was with us, so it was with the other Mer- chants, they had many Things to do, and instead of being ready in five Weeks, it was four Months and some odd Days, before all Things were got together. It was the Beginning of February, omx Stile, when we set out from Peking; my Partner and the old Pilot had gone Express back to the Port where we had first put in, to dispose of some Goods which we had left there ; and I with a Chinese Merchant, whom I had some Knowledge of at Nanguin, and who came to Peking on his own ROBINSON CRUSOE. 557 Affairs, went to Nanquin, where I bought ninety Pieces of fine Damasks, with about two hundred Pieces of other very fine Silks, of several Sorts, some mix'd with Gold, and had all these brought to Peking against my Partrier's Return. Besides this, we bought a very large Quantity of Raw Silk, and some other Goods, our Cargo amounting in these Goods only to about three thousand five hundred Pounds Sterling, which, together with Tea, and some fine , Callicoes, and three Camels Loads of Nutmegs and Cloves, ■ loaded in all eighteen Camels for our Share, besides those we rode upon ; which with two or three spare Horses, and two Horses loaded with Provisions, made us in short 36 Camels and Horses in our Retinue. The Company was very great, and, as near as I can remember, made between three and four hundred Horse, and upwards of a hundred and twenty Men, very well armed and provided for all Events : For as the Eastern Carravans are subjedled to be attacked by the Arabs, so are these by the Tartars; but they are not altogether so dangerous as the Arabs, nor so barbarous when they prevail. The Company consisted of People of several Nations, such as Muscovites chiefly; for there were above sixty of them who were Merchants or Inhabitants of Muscow, though of them, some were Livonians, and to our par- ticular Satisfadlion, five of them were Scots, who appeard also to be Men of great Experience in Business, and Men of very good Substance. When we had travelled one Day's Journey, the Guides, who were five in Number, call'd all the Gentlemen and Merchants, that is to say, all the Passengers, except the Servants, to a great Council, as they call'd it. At this great Council every one deposited a certain Quantity of Money to a common Stock, for the necessary Expense of buying Forage on the Way, where it was not otherwise to be had, and for satisfying the Guides, getting Horses, and the like. And here they constituted the Journey, as they call it, viz. they named Captains and Officers, to 5S8. ADVENTURES OF draw us all up, and give the Command in case of an Attack, and gave every one their Turn of Command : Nor was this forming us into Order any more than what we found needful upon the Way, as shall be observed in its Place. The Road all on this Side of the Country is very populous, and is full of Potters and Earth-makers, that is to say. People that tempered the Earth, for the China Ware; and as I was coming along, our Portugal Pilot, who had always something or other. to say to make us ttierry, came sneering to me, and told me, he would shew me the greatest Rarity in all the Country, and that I should have this to say of China, after all the ill-humoured Things I had said of it, that I had seen one Thing which was not to be seen in all the World beside. I was very importunate to know what it was. At last he told me it was, a Gentleman's house built all with China Ware. Well, says I, are not the Materials of their Building the Produft of their own Country ; and so is all China Ware ; is it not? No, no, says he, I mean it is an House all made of China Ware, such as you call it in England j or, as it is called in our Country, Porcellain, Well, says I, such a Thing may be. How big is it? Can we carry it in a Box upon a Camel? If we can, we will buy it. Upon a Camel ! says the old Pilot, holding up both his Hands, why there is a Family of thirty People in it. I was then curious indeed to see it, and when I came to it, it was nothing but this. It was a Timber-House, or a House built, as we call it in England, with Lath and Plaister, but all the Plaistering was really China Ware, that is to say, it Was plaistered with the Earth that makes China Ware. The Outside, which the Sun shone hot upon, was glaz'd, and looked very well, perfect white, and painted with blue Figures, as the large China Ware in England is painted, and hard, as if it had been burnt. As to the Inside, all the Walls,' instead of Wainscot, were lined up with hardned and painted Tiles, like the little square ROBINSON CRUSOE. 559 Tiles we call Galley-Tiles in England, all made of the finest China, and the Figures exceeding fine indeed, with extraordinary Variety of Colours mixed with Gold, many Tiles making but one Figure, but joined so ajtifici^l^th^ Mortar being made of the same Earth, that it was very hard to see where the Tiles met. The Floors of the Rooms were of the same Composition, and as hard as the earthern Floors we have in use in several Parts of Eng- land, especially Lincolnshire, Nottinghamshire, Leicester- shire, &c. as hard as a Stone, and smooth, but not burnt and painted, except some smaller Rooms, like Closets, which were all as it were paved with the same Tile. The Ceihng, and in a Word, all the plaistering Work in the whole House were of the same Earth ; and after all, the Roof was covered with Tiles of the same, but of a deep shining Black. This was a China Warehouse indeed, truly and literally to be called so ; and had I not been upon the Journey, I could have stay'd some Days to see and examine the Particulars of it. They told me there were Fountains and Fish-ponds in the Garden, all pav'd at the Bottom and Sides with the same, and fine Statues set up in Rows on the Walks, entirely formed of the Porcellain Earth, and burnt whole. As this is one of the Singularities of China, so they may be allowed to excel in it ; but I am very sure they excel in their Accounts of it ; for they told me such in- credible Things of their Performance in Crockery Ware, for such it is, that I care not to relate, as knowing it could not be true. They told me in particular, of one Workman that made a Ship with all its Tackle, and Masts, and Sails, in Earthern Ware, big enough to carry fifty Men. If he had told me, he launched it, and made a Voyage to Japan in it, I might have said something to it indeed; but as it was, I knew the whole of the Story; which was in short, asking Pardon for the Word, that the Fellow lied. So I smiled, and said nothing to it. This odd Sight kept me two Hours behind the Caravan, S6o ADVENTURES OF for which, the Leader of it for the Day, fined me about the Value of three Shillings, and told me, if it had be^ three Days Journey without the Wall, as it was three Days within, he must have fined me four times as much, and inade me ask Pardon the next Council Day. So I promised to be more orderly; for indeed I found after- ward the Orders made for keeping all together, were absolutely necessary for our common Safety. In two Days more, we pass'd the great China Wall, made for a Fortification against the Tartars; and a very great Work it is, going over Hills and Mountains in a needless Track, where the Rocks are impassable, and the Precipices such as no Enemy could possibly enter, or indeed climb up, or where if they did, no Wall could hinder them. They tell us, its Length is near a thousand English Miles, but that the Country is five hundred in a strait measured Line, which the Wall bounds, without measuring the Windings and Turnings it takes. 'Tis a,bout four Fathom high, and as many thick in some Places. I stood still an. Hour, or thereabout, without trespass- ing our Orders, for so long the Caravan was in passing the Gate J I say, I stood still an Hour to look at it on every Side, near, and far off ; I mean, that was within my View. And the Guide of our Caravan, who had been extolling it for the Wonder of the World, was mighty eager to hear my Opinion of it. I told him it was a most excellent Thing to keep off the Tartars; which he hap- pened not to understand as I meant it, and so took it for a Compliment : But the old Pilot laughed. O Seignior : Inglese, says he, you speak in Colours. In Colours, said I, What do you mean by that? Why, you speak what looks white this Way, and black that Way; gay one Way, and dull another Way. You tell him it is a good Wall to keep out Tartars? You tell me by that, it is i good for nothing but to keep out Tartars, or it will keep out none but Tartars. I understand you. Seignior Inglese, . I understated you, says he, but Seignior Chinese under- stood you his own way. ROBINSON CRUSOE. 561 Well, says I, Seignior, do you think it would stand out an Army of our Country People, with a good Train of Artillery ; or our Engineers, with two Companies of Miners ; would not they batter it down in ten Days, that jan Army might enter in Battalia, or blow it up in the Air, Foundation and all, that there should be no Sign of it left? Ah, ah, says he, I know that. The Chinese ^a.TAeA mightily to know what I said, and I gave him Leave to tell him a few Days after, for he was then almost out of their Country, and he was to leave us in a little time after- ward ; but when he knew what I had said, he was dumb all the rest of the Way, and we heard no more of his fine Story of the Chinese Power and Greatness, while he stay'd. After we had pass'd this mighty Nothing call'd a Wall, something like the Piils Wall, and so famous in Northumberland, and built by the Romans, we began to find the Country thinly inhabited, and the People rather confined to live in fortified Towns and Cities, as being subjeift to the Inroads and Depredations of the Tartars, who rob in great Armies, and therefore are not to be resisted by the naked Inhabitants of an open Country. And here I began to find the Necessity of keeping together in a Carravan as we travelled ; for we saw several Troops of Tartars roving about ; but when I came to see them distiniflly, I wonder'd more that the Chinese Empire could be conquer'd by such contemptible Fellows; for they are a meer Hoord or Crowd of wild Fellows, keeping no Order, and understanding no Discipline, or manner of Fight. Their Horses are poor lean starved Creatures, taught nothing, and fit for nothing ; and thisr we said, the first Day we saw them, which was after we entered the wider Part of the Country. Our Leader for the Day, gave Leave for about sixteen of us to go a hunting, as they call it ; and ^hat was this but hunting of Sheep : However, it may be call'd hunting top ; for the Creatures are the wildest and. swiftest of Foot that ever I saw of their Kind ; only they: 36 S6.2 ADVENTURES OF will not run a great Way> and you are sure of Sport when you begin the Chase ; for they appear generally thirty or forty in a Flock, and like true Sheep, alvp-ays keep together when they fly. In Pursuit of this odd sort of Game, it was our Hap to meet with about forty Tartars j whether they were hunting Mutton as we were, Or whether they look'd for another Kind of Prey, I know not ; but as soon as they saw uSj one of them blew a kind of Horn very loud-, but with a barbarous Sound, that I had never heard before, and by the Way, never care to hear again : We all sup- pos'd this was to call their Friends about them, and so it was ; for in less than half a Quartet of an Hour, a Troop of forty or fifty more appear' d, at about a Mile Distance ; but our Work was over first, as il happen'di One of the Scats Merchants of ilf«j^(7whappen'd to be amongst us, and as soon as he heard the Horn, he told us in short, that we had nothing to do, but to fcharge them imrriediately Without Loss of Time ; and drawing uS up in a Line, he asked if we were resolv'd? We told him, we were i-Kidy to follow him ; so he rode diredlly up to them. They stood gazing at us like a meer Crowd, draVm up in lio Order, nor shewing the Face of any Order at all ; but as soon as they saw us advance, they let fly their Arrows, which however miss'd us very happily. It seems they mistook not their Aim, but their Distance; for their Arrows all fell a little short of us, but TJi^ith so true an Aim, that had we been about twenty Yards nearer, we must have had several Men wounded, if not kill'd. Immediately we halted; and tho' it was at a great Distance, we fii^d, and sent them Leaden Bullets for Wooden Arrows, fiSUowing our Shot full Gallop, to fall in among them Sword in Hand, for so our bold Scot that led us direfted. He was indeed but a Merchant, but he behav'd with that Vigour and Bravery on this Occasion, and yet, with such a cool Courage too, that I never saw any Man in Aflion fitter for Command. As soon as we (Same "up to them, we fir'd our Pistols in their Faces, and liOM/NSOJV CRUSOE. 563 then drew; but they fled in the greatest Confusion , im- aginable. The only Stand any of them made, was on our Right, where three of them stood, and by Signs caU'd the Test ,to come back to them, having a kind of Semiter in their Hands, and their Bows hanging it their Backs. Our brave Commander, without asking any Body to follow hini, gallops up dose to them, and with his Fuzee knocks one of them off his Horse, kUl'd the second with his Pistol, and the third ran away; and thus ended our Fight : But we had this Misfortune attending it, (■z'zV.) That all our Mutton that we had in Chase, got away. We had not a Man kill'd or hurt ; but as for the Tartars, there wag about five of them kill'd,: Who were wounded, we knew not ; but this we knew, that the other Party was so frighted, with the Noise of our Guns, that they made off, and nev